AMATEUR XXX STORIES

-

ALPHABETICAL SEX STORY LISTINGS:

A - B - C - D - E - F - G - H - I - J - K - L - M - N - O - P - Q - R - S - T - U - V - W - X - Y - Z

ETIENNE movies she and Roger watched when

This story may not be reproduced in any form for profit without the written

permission of the author. This story may be freely distributed with this

notice attached. The author may be contacted at rkhaan@ix.netcom.com.

Copyright 1996-1999, Robert B. Morton II, all rights reserved.

Disclaimer

For those individual not of legal age to read this where they live,

shame on you! For those folks who may be offended by this writing, all I

can say is caveat lector... you have been warned. The following is a work

of fiction and the usual statements about bearing any resemblance to people

or places, living or dead, being coincidental, etc., apply here.

ETIENNE: DREAMING OF THINGS TO COME

Part I, Chapter One

Lorne Williams studied the activity around him with care, noting the

security people for the visiting VIPs were obvious. As general manager of

one of the largest research centers in the country, Lorne was used to VIPs

coming and going. Still, today was different.

His boss, Geoff Levin, MD, Ph.D., was bringing Carlton Pharmaceuticals'

board of directors in to show off their multi-billion-dollar investment.

Shaking his head at the type of ass-kissing Dr. Levin was apparently

doing, Lorne stepped back into his office, which overlooked the reception

area on one side and the area known as Lab One. He studied his handsome

face in the in full length mirror behind the door as he closed it and

noticed a new gray hair nestled among the waves of black.

At 40 years old, he was not only the youngest man in his position; he

was the only Black in Carlton's upper management. As he contemplated the

reason for the errant hair, the phone rang. Crossing to his desk, he

picked up the handset, surprised to hear the voice of his 16-year-old

daughter, Etienne.

"Eti, what's going on?" he asked. "Is everything okay?"

"Oh, yes," she answered. "I just wanted you to know I'm home from

school and to ask you about dinner."

Lorne could picture his little girl, all smiles and becoming quite a

pretty young lady. Ever since his wife, Eleanor, died, his work and

Etienne was all that mattered to him.

"Sure, honey," he finally said. "At home or would you like to have a

date with a tired, old doctor?"

She giggled, but said, "Tired, huh? Dinner at home will be fine, then.

I'll start on the salad and I'll see you later."

He smiled at the thought of Eti bustling around the kitchen. Since they

did not require his presence at the meeting being held in Lab One, he

buzzed his secretary and told her he was leaving for the day. He also let

her know if Levin needed him, they could reach him at home.

The ride home was quicker than usual; before long, he was turning onto

the main drive of Cascade Falls, a quiet upper-middle class housing

development. He remembered the day the house was completed and the joy on

Ellie's face when he finally showed it to her. Keeping the house a secret

was difficult while they were building it, but somehow he managed to hide

the construction costs from the household budget program.

Closing the garage door behind him, Lorne entered the house and looked

around, a feeling of pride swelling inside him. He remembered his poor

roots and marveled from time to time how hard work could pay off.

Turning into the kitchen, he saw Etienne hard at work slicing tomatoes

for the salad and humming a tune he couldn't recognize. He could smell

steaks broiling and he was slightly embarrassed when his stomach growled, a

reminder that he had missed lunch due to the project startup procedure.

At 16, Etienne had large, firm breasts and her mother's full lips. Her

wide hazel-brown eyes stood out against her light brown skin, framed by her

long, jet-black hair. How much she resembles her mother, he thought as he

cleared his throat. Etienne turned at the sound and when she saw her

father, the smile spread quickly across her face.

"Dinner will be ready in a few minutes, so you have time to get cleaned

up before we eat."

Hmm. Bossy, too - just like her mother.

Part I, Chapter Two

All during dinner, he couldn't seem to keep his eyes off Etienne,

surprised to feel his cock beginning to grow hard. It served to remind him

he didn't really have time for sex since Ellie died - between his job and

raising Etienne, where could time be found? More, he realized his erection

was growing larger the more he looked at Eti. Her voice brought him back

to the present.

"...And I got an A on my science test." Her voice trailed off as she

noticed the odd look on her father's face. "Dad? What's wrong?"

Without saying anything, Lorne stood suddenly, forgetting his now raging

hard on. Etienne's eyes grew large at the sight of the huge bulge in her

father's pants, her young pussy instantly getting hot and wet.

A friend at school, Cindy Harrison, had once bragged her father spent a

lot of time between her legs. Of course, Eti didn't believe her one bit.

One night during a slumber party, however, she had gotten up to go to the

bathroom and, on the way there, she heard the sounds of someone moaning

softly.

Following the sounds to the den, she noticed the door was opened

slightly and peeked in - and saw Cindy being fucked with gusto by her

father. Eti was both shocked and fascinated by the scene before her.

Cindy's face was twisted with the effort of containing her father's ramming

cock inside her young, tight pussy. Having never seen a man's penis

before, the sight of it awed her as Mr. Harrison continued his plunging in

and out of Cindy with deep, swift strokes lifting her off the edge of the

desk.

Flushed with excitement, Eti slowly backed away from the lurid scene,

very much aware of an ache that suddenly appeared between her own legs.

She hurried off to the bathroom and back to her sleeping bag and, after a

while, she was fast asleep. Nevertheless, her dreams were of large, hard

dicks.

Her mind snapped back to the present. Her father was saying, "...so,

I'll just go to bed. Don't forget your homework and remember to put the

dishes away."

Etienne just nodded and watched her father walk away, the residue of

emotions still fresh in her mind. She completed her after-dinner chores

mechanically and soon found herself at her desk, trying to focus on her

notes for the upcoming algebra test. She found her concentration wasn't

complete, the algebraic symbols momentarily losing their meaning.

Eti was frustrated and she was very much aware of the source of the

frustration. Sighing, she crossed the room to her bed, stretched out and

let her thoughts take control.

Eti's mind opened to the scene of her father getting up from the table,

the bulge in his pants clearly defined. Just the thought of the sight set

her blood on fire. No matter how hard she tried to clear her mind, the

picture hovered there.

It bothered her to the point where, even wrapped in the comfort of her

bed, she couldn't get comfortable. Her hand slipped under her shirt and

she absently toyed with a nipple. With her other hand, she undid her

jeans, her fingers entwining the lush forest of hair. She often felt

embarrassed at the crop of dark, curly hair framing her mound. She let her

finger slide further down and she began to rub her clit, another prominent

feature she often wished she didn't have - but it didn't matter right now.

She continued to massage her now-erect nipples with one hand, the other

rubbing her clit with greater urgency, her pleasure increasing. Etienne

stopped long enough to wriggle out of her restricting jeans, letting her

spread her long legs wider.

The improved access to her wetness was just what the doctor ordered, as

she left her nipples to spread herself wider, slipping two fingers inside.

She imagined the huge imprint in her father's pants was inside her instead

of her fingers, a thought which increased the heat inside her.

Mouth open, eyes slightly closed, Etienne worked her young pussy
feverishly as her climax built. She saw in her mind her father's ass

rising and falling rhythmically as he fucked her until, finally, she

exploded. She gasped as the sensation hit her hard, causing her to tremble

with the release.

Etienne found this was what she needed, as she curled up feeling warm

and, at least, momentarily sated, she drifted off.

* * *

Lorne stepped back, closing the door just as quietly as he had opened

it. He had gone to Eti's room to apologize for not being very social at

dinner. As he was about to knock on the door, Lorne heard the sounds of

Eti's labored breathing and wondered if she was crying because of his rude

behavior.

Turning the knob gently, he looked in and saw his daughter fingering

herself, lost in her own pleasure. The sight of his little girl's fingers

sliding effortlessly in and out of her love nest cause him to have an

immediate erection. Butterflies appeared in his stomach and his knees felt

weak as he wondered what she was imagining. His own thoughts were running

rampant as he watched her, noticing how large her clit was as she rubbed it

furiously, reminding him again how much Etienne reminded him of her mother.

Lorne watched as Eti climaxed, her young body trembling with such

energy, her breasts shaking with each wave rushing through her. As she was

curling up, he silently closed the door and stood there, shaking. He went

back to his own bedroom, his thoughts wild and what he just witnessed.

Realizing his own need for release, he quickly undressed, his cock

springing free from restraint.

His hand found his erection instantly and began the slow massaging

action to which he'd become accustomed to. Eti, naked and open, flashed in

his mind as he stroked his cock, wondering what it would be like to take

her like the woman she was quickly becoming. The thought shamed him and

inflamed his passion that much more as his strokes were getting longer and

faster.

Lorne threw his head back and let out a long moan as he felt the

beginnings of his own orgasm. With the picture of Eti's clit in his mind,

he came, the long white spurts crossing the room and landing on the

carpeting. He continued to stroke his spasming manhood, thinking it's been

too long, much too long.

Lorne walked to his bathroom to get a towel and began cleaning up. He

felt the heat of shame intermixed with the flush of release on his face as

he knelt to remove the now-cooling sperm from the rug. He started the

shower, feeling the sudden need to be clean.

The water stung him but relaxed him as its heat penetrated his tense

muscles. Reaching for the soap, he reflected on his feelings about

Etienne. Surprised he was even capable of thinking about Eti in sexual

terms; the taboos of his youth instantly took their place in his mind,

screaming their warning of wrongness.

However wrong, Lorne couldn't deny his thoughts were somewhat exciting.

Hell, who was he fooling? Just the thought of sliding his cock into his

"little girl" was such a rush he felt both excited and ashamed

simultaneously. He was becoming confused, his thoughts warring with his

feelings. He remembered how embarrassed he felt whenever Ellie asked him

to change Eti as a baby. Obviously, he'd seen more than his share of

pussy, but this was somehow different. He would complete the task, always

coming away from it a little shaken and never really knowing why.

Turning off the shower, he began the task of drying himself while trying

to clear the jumble of thoughts in his head. Lorne knew he should focus on

his work; he was sure after today's presentation, the secret project in Lab

One would require some reworking, especially after Levin got through

fucking up things.

Shaking his head at the workload he was sure to face in the morning, he

killed the lights and left the bathroom - and found Eti standing in the

bedroom doorway.

Mouth open, Lorne was surprised because it wasn't like Eti to just come

into his room without announcing herself first. In fact, he was so shocked

at seeing her there, he completely forgot the fact he hadn't covered

himself! Wrapping the towel around himself and regaining some measure of

composure, he crossed to his dressing table and began combing his damp

hair.

"So," he began. "What brings you here at this late hour?"

"I think we need to talk about something," she answered.

"Okay. Sit and tell me what's on your mind, Peaches."

Etienne grinned at the use of her nickname. He only called her that

when he wanted to lighten what may be a serious conversation.

Without preambles, Eti said, "You were watching me, weren't you?"

Lorne flinched; he didn't think she had heard the door close.

"Uh, well, not really," he finally answered. "I came to apologize and

when you didn't answer my knock, I thought something may have been wrong."

"So you stuck your head in?" she asked.

Lorne nodded, clearly embarrassed.

"I didn't hear you knock, but I thought I heard the door close."

"Well, I thought I had been quiet about it."

They sat silently for a few moments. Eti had her fears confirmed and

Lorne, well, he felt like peeping Tom. Eti then made the biggest decision

of her young life. Clearing her throat, she said, "I guess, then, my

watching you evened up the score." She waited for the shit to hit the

proverbial fan.

Lorne closed his eyes, a silent "oh, shit" escaping his lips - and his

face felt incredibly hot. "You saw that, huh?"

Eti nodded and sat back to wait for the angry outburst.

Lorne just sat there, looking for all the worlds like a condemned man.

He couldn't think straight and he really needed to think clearly to deal

with this situation. His daughter, however, was a little short on

patience; she wanted to get this over with as quickly as possible. She was

wondering what sort of punishment he'd give her when he said, "So. How do

we deal with this?"

Not being exactly what she expected to hear, Eti blinked, not knowing

how to answer. Her mind was racing; she knew how she'd like to deal with

it. The sight of her father standing in the middle of the room, stroking

his large, hard dick was still fresh in her mind. It was everything she

dreamed it could be and, oh, how she wanted it.

Upon realizing she had heard the door close, Eti sat immediately,

knowing it could have only been one person there. "He saw you," her mind

screamed, and she was scared. "Still," her mind whispered, "isn't it what

you wanted all along?"

Eti tried to shake the whispers out of her head, all the time knowing it

was the truth. She had decided to go to him and tell him. When she got to

his room, she noticed the door was ajar, so she peeked in. Just in time to

see her father furiously jerking his cock, his hand a blur.

Eti stood transfixed in the doorway as Lorne continued the rapid

movement. Suddenly, she saw him stiffen, his hand now moving as if he'd

lost all rhythm and stifled a gasp when she saw the first long spurt of

semen exploding from the swollen head of his dick. spurt after spurt shot

from his heaving manhood as she heard her father gasp. Even from where she

was standing, she could hear his load as it hit the carpeted floor.

As Lorne moved to the bathroom, Eti realized she had actually stepped

into the room. Fear glued her where she stood as he came out of the

bathroom with a towel. Eti knew had he just knelt where he stood, she

would be caught. However, Lorne turned his back to the doorway, cleaned up

his spent seed, and returned to the bathroom.

When Eti heard the shower running, she moved to escape - and found she

couldn't, for some reason. Her knees were weak and shaking as she grabbed

the door's edge for support. She had no idea how long she stood there with

her mind swimming but, as she regained her composure, her father had

stepped back into the bedroom proper.

"Shit," she thought. "I never heard the water stop!" She was caught,

like an insect in amber. Etienne snapped back to the here and now,

noticing her father's concerned look.

"Is there something wrong, Peaches?" he asked. "I asked you a question

and you were a million miles away."

"I'm okay." She responded. Eti was aware of a whole squadron of

butterflies who suddenly appeared in her stomach.

"Well?" asked her father, his concern deepening.

"Now is our chance!" her mind whispered. "It's now or never!"

Clearing her throat, she said, "What I want to do about this is, um..."

"Go ahead, say it!" The voice continued to tease her.

"I want to fuck you!" she blurted out finally. One part of her mind was

totally shocked at her outburst while the part of her, the one consumed

with lust for this man, was very much pleased.

Lorne, too, was of two minds, one part stunned at his daughter's words,

one part thinking that it wouldn't be a bad idea. Where was the moisture

in his mouth? His mouth was so dry! He blinked, as if it would instantly

solve the problem.

"Uh, Eti," he began. "Do you know what you're saying?" Inwardly, he

hoped she did. Under his towel, he could feel his cock beginning to stir

in anticipation.

Eti, for her part, was doing some thinking of her own. Gathering her

resolve, she moved toward the bed where her father was sitting. "That's

it! Go get it. You know you want it and so does he!"

She approached her father, her fear slipping away at every step. She

stood before him and looked into his eyes and saw his want and his morality

clashing inside him. Etienne made up her mind, knowing somehow she

couldn't walk away now.

Part I, Chapter Three

In the mysterious way only women seem to know about, Etienne pulled the

oversized T-shirt she had been wearing over her head in one continuous

motion, revealing her young body. Her large breasts were considered a

curse for her - but now she was hoping her father would like them.

"Yes, I know exactly what I am saying," she finally answered.

Lorne was frozen in place at the sight of his little girl's

well-developed body. He drank in her large breasts in a glance, his eyes

moving down to her flat belly and stopping at the tufts of dark hair
covering her mound. He could even see the head of her unusually large

clit, thinking her mother's hadn't been so pronounced.

"This is... Peaches, this is wrong," he croaked.

Eti remained silent as she stepped closer to Lorne. Now mere inches

away, she reached down and, in one deft movement, stripped him of his

towel, exposing his now raging erection. She marveled at how large and

thick it looked close up. She watched it throb with every beat of his

racing heart.

Lorne tried to stand but Etienne was standing too close to him. His

eyes frantically searched for the swiped towel, hoping to covering his

embarrassment, but it was on the other side of the room.

"No, Peaches; we can't..." his protest sounding weak in his ears.

"We can, dear father. And we will." With those words, Etienne knelt

before him until his cock was in her face. She reached up and tried to

encircle it with her hand, but it was too large for her small hand.

Lorne struggled to free himself as he watched her head dip to capture

the head of his cock in her mouth.

"Yes, oh, yes!" the voice in her head screamed as she covered the

plum-shaped cock head, her tongue fluttering across the slitted opening.

She had always dreamed of doing this, often practicing with lollipops and

bananas in her room. Ah, but this was the real thing, not a piece of candy

or fruit.

Growing bolder, she let her mouth slide further down his shaft slowly.

She gagged slightly as the head of his massive cock reached the back of her

throat. Backing off, the feeling quickly disappeared.

Lorne could only watch with a mixture of horror and pleasure, as his

baby, his little darling, began to suck him, her head bobbing gently. He

could tell this was new for her, but he didn't care. This was so very

wrong and felt so very good!

Lorne's excitement rushed through him as her inexperienced mouth worked

on him. She looked up at him and the sight of his hard blackness

penetrating her mouth was too much for him. He was coming and he tried to

move her head.

Eti could feel the tremors in his cock. As she looked up at him, the

tremors got stronger and she could feel his hand trying to move her off her

captured prize. "He's going to come," the voice in her head said. She

held her position despite his efforts to steal her treat from her.

Lorne struggled against his daughter. He couldn't believe that he

couldn't free himself until finally, Lorne realized he didn't want to be

freed. He relaxed a little and a moan of pleasure escaped his lips. His

hips began to fuck her hot, moist mouth with short, gentle strokes.

Eti's mouth strained to hold his thrusting meat. Her jaws were

beginning to ache, but she was determined to have this. With both hand

around his thick shaft, she slid them up the shaft, feeling the bunched

skin against her widely spread lips.

Lorne was bucking out of control, his legs moving as if they had a mind

of their own, his head violently moving back and forth as Eti sucked and

jerked his dick. He stiffened as he started coming, the intensity almost

causing him to pass out.

"Oh, yes!" he breathed as his balls emptied their load into her mouth.

Eti wasn't prepared for the copious volume of liquid lust pouring from

the slit of his cock. When her father's body went stiff, she instinctively

moved her mouth back to cover only the bulbous head of his cock. She could

feel each spurt on her tongue, hot and salty. He was coming so much it

started leaking through the seal of her lips, trailing down her chin and

neck.

As he softened, Etienne lifted her head, licking his seed from her lips

and looked at her father, now sprawled across the bed, trembling as if he

were cold. Climbing on the bed next to him, she could see the beads of

perspiration on his forehead and upper lip. His eyes opened and, after a

few seconds, they focused on her.

She smiled at him, feeling good and very wicked. Lorne blinked several

times, clearing his vision until he could only see one Eti instead of two.

He started to speak, but Eti silenced him with a kiss, her tongue

snaking between his lips in an instant. His mouth softened beneath hers as

he returned the kiss, tentatively at first, but with increasing desire.

Lorne could taste his sperm on her lips as their tongues battled against

each other. The depth of her own passion was quickly overcoming Eti as her

father rolled her over onto her back, their lips still locked tightly

together.

Lorne was in command now, and he planned on taking full advantage of it.

Breaking the kiss, he ran his tongue down the side of her face to the spot

behind her ear, stopping along the way to nibble at her earlobe. Eti's

arms wrapped around his neck as he nuzzled her neck, licking and sucking
her sweet flesh gently. He was mumbling incoherently as he worked his way

to her breasts, so full and soft.

Capturing a nipple between his lips, he sucked at it while his fingers

sought and found her incredibly large clit. He grabbed it between two

fingers and began to jerk her clit, surprised at how much it felt like a

cock.

Her hips rose to meet his probing fingers, waves of ecstasy flowing over

her as he sucked each of her nipples in turn, his tongue tracing crazy

patterns over them.

Lorne was growing impatient; he had to taste her! With some reluctance,

he abandoned her more than ample breasts. Spreading her legs, he opened

his beautiful flower, exposing her wetness. He could easily see her young
cunt lips were spread slightly and her clit, so large and full, easily

stuck out a good inch or two from her juicy lips.

Eti could feel her father's breath on her pussy as drew closer. Her

eyes closed and she tried to relax as much as she could. His tongue

touched her clit and it was if something electrical had landed there.

With a near savage grunt, Lorne dove into his daughter's cunt, licking

and sucking her young pussy like a starving man. He barely noticed that

Eti had spread her legs wider, giving him more access to her blossoming

womanhood. He sucked her clit, thinking this is what it must feel like to

suck a cock, as his tongue raced around the head of her clit, feeling it

grow harder between his lips.

Lorne ran his tongue into her virgin cunt, sliding between the gaping

flesh. He probed deep into her, tasting the clean fresh taste of her sex.

Eti thrashed uncontrollably on the bed as her father ate her. Her hand

reached out and found his cock, now hard again, and moved herself so that

she could suck him. Feeling her mouth on him again filled Lorne with more

energy and he doubled his efforts, sucking her clit furiously as she fucked

his face.

The new lovers ate each other like this for some time, each savoring the

new but wrong feelings of what they were doing.

Etienne experienced an orgasm so intense that she felt as if she

couldn't breathe. She released his straining cock from her mouth as she

thrust her hips against his face, riding out her orgasm.

Lorne was surprised as Eti came, a hot rush of liquid so strong and so

unexpected it got up his nose, stopping his breathing and stinging his

nostrils. Despite this, he continued to suck her clit, feeling it

quivering in his mouth.

He moved quickly to position himself between her open legs. What he

wanted to do was to rush in strongly; however, Etienne was still a virgin,

so he had to be careful not to rip her open.

Sensing his hesitation, Eti looked up at him, her eyes wild with lust.

"DO IT!" she screamed. "DO IT NOW!"

The harshness of her words shook him and, without a further thought,

plunged into his daughter's unproven flesh. He felt his cock spread her

wide and deep, until he pressed against her maidenhead. Without

hesitation, he thrust forward savagely, passing through her cherry easily

until he was deep inside her.

Eti grunted with the force of his entry, the sharp pain blazing through

her as she lost her cherry. The pain was intense, but subsided as quickly

as it had appeared. She felt her father's hand cradle her ass, lifting her

slightly as the last couple of inches of hard maleness slid into her. She

felt stuffed, never imagining that it could feel this good.

Lorne fucked slowly at first, giving his Peaches time to adjust. He

looked into her eyes and, as they met, he knew that this was what he'd

always wanted.

"You okay?" he asked.

Eti smiled back at him and nodded, her deepest desire becoming a

reality.

He returned her nod and began to fuck her with gusto. All he wanted to

do was to please her as he drove his hardness into her. Lorne looked down

and could see his thickness as it withdrew, covered with her juices and, to

his shock, a little blood. His stroke faltered, guilt plainly written

across his face.

"Don't worry, Dad," she said, reading his expression. "I'm fine. Just

fuck me, please!"

Shaking his head, he resumed his movement inside her, his own passion

now growing with leaps and bounds. Gone were any feelings of guilt; all he

knew was Eti felt good under him.

Eti wrapped her legs around her father as best she could, holding on to

him tightly as he fucked her, her breasts shaking everywhere with the force

of his thrusts inside her. He filled her totally and completely, to the

point where it was both painful and pleasurable. Their grunts and groans

of pleasure filled the room, their sweat mingling with the other juices as

Lorne rode his little girl hard. His lips found hers and they shared a

deep kiss, tongue flitting here and there. The sounds of breathing were

heavy in each other's ears as they continued to kiss.

Eti whispered in her father's ear, "Fuck me, Daddy. Fuck your little

girl!"

Lorne really didn't need encouragement, but he aimed to please her.

Taking a deep breath, he cut loose on her, his hips moving swiftly, their

bodies impacting at their junction of love.

His strokes quickened and Eti could feel his cock swell inside her,

stretching her beyond her limits while feeling the first spurt of his sperm

splash her insides. It was so hot it triggered her own release.

A growl started in Lorne's throat as he pumped his seed into her, his

hips losing their once steady rhythm. Eti could feel his excess escape her

stretched cunt, dribbling down the crack of her ass.

"Yes, damn it, yes!" she shouted as she felt the last spurt come from

his cock.

Lorne was growing soft inside her. Spent and sated, he leaned forward

to kiss her hungrily. "I love you, Peaches," he said, feeling very warm

and rather fuzzy.

"I love you, too, Daddy." She answered sleepily. "Thank you."

Exhausted and pleased, the new lovers slept.

Part I, Chapter Four

Lorne was dreaming. He was holding his dear Ellie in his arms, feeling

warm and content knowing she was there with him. He smiled as he felt

Ellie snuggle up to him, feeling her warm breath against his shoulder.

Lorne turned his head and opened his eyes - and looked into Etienne's

sleeping face!

Coming fully awake, Lorne slowly disengaged himself from the sleeping

form next to him and got out of the bed. It took him a few moments to

remember why Eti was here and, when he did finally remember, a wave of

anguish flowed over him.

"You did it, you really did it, didn't you," a little voice in his head

asked.

He trembled at the thought of what had happened here last night. He

took a few steps backwards, as if trying to remove himself from the scene

of the crime. His thoughts were now chaotic, the implications clear in his

mind as he realized he'd done the unthinkable, committed the ultimate sin.

As he backed up, he bumped into the chair next to his dressing table,

knocking it over. It thumped to the floor, the sound partially muffled by

the thick carpeting. It was enough to awaken Etienne.

Eti sat up slowly and stretched, her movements almost catlike in nature.

She rubbed the sleep from her eyes and looked around the room. When she

spotted Lorne, a smile spread across her face. However, Eti's smile

quickly disappeared when she saw the frightened look on his face, feeling

his fear as clearly as if it were her own.

Failing to stand the chair upright, Lorne sat on the floor, feeling sick

of mind and body. He saw Eti looking at him, concern etched on her face.

Swallowing hard, he finally spoke.

"Morning, Peaches," he began. "Sorry about the noise."

"Forget that," Eti answered. "What's wrong with you?"

"Me? Nothing. What makes you think there's something wrong?" he lied.

Eti, to her credit, saw right through his deception.

"You look like you saw the proverbial ghost," she observed. "Don't tell

me you're feeling bad about last night. Please don't tell me that."

The guilty look on his face told her this was exactly what he was

feeling. Climbing out of the bed, she went to him.

Lorne had to notice how her breasts bounced with each step she took, her

lithe muscles rippling slightly. She sat next to him and he moved away

from her without thinking about it, his fear increasing. Eti reached for

him, causing him to flinch. Frowning, she grabbed his arm and, somehow,

managed to pull him to her.

Lorne refused to meet her eyes, his shame blanketing him like a shroud.

Etienne took his face in both hands and forced his head around.

"Look at me!" she demanded, gripping his face tighter when he tried to

turn away. "Look at me, damn you!"

Slowly, he turned his head at the force of her words. He could see the

anger flashing in her eyes, but made himself look at his flesh and blood.

"You think you defiled me, don't you?"

He nodded.

"Well, you didn't. You did what we both wanted."

Part of Lorne's mind had to admit that he had wanted her.

Eti continued. "I've always wondered what it was like to be with you,

always wondered why mother was always so happy with you. Now, I finally

know."

The mention of her mother ran through him like an electric shock. It

never occurred to him Eti may have overheard their lovemaking sessions. He

sat up straighter, his resolve returning. "So, you were listening in on

us, were you?"

Seeing he had come back from whatever Hell he had sent himself, Eti

smiled. "Well, it wasn't like you two were the most quiet of people," she

retorted playfully.

Lorne smiled despite himself, remembering Ellie's passionate moans.

"Yeah, keeping quiet wasn't one of our main concerns. Peaches... ," he

began.

Eti cut him off. "There's no need to apologize. I wanted it just as

much as you did. Now, come here." Eti reached down and found his manhood

and began to bring it to full arousal. Lorne relaxed as his daughter
stroked him. Turning his head slightly, he sucked at the closest nipple to

him, feeling it grow instantly erect between his lips.

At his touch, a moan slipped from her and she increased her hand

movements, alternating her grip, giving Lorne new sensations. Freeing her

nipple from his hungry mouth, she went to work on his stiff member,

engulfing the now enormous head.

He sighed, and lay back to enjoy the attention Eti was paying to him.

With her newfound skills, she sucked him with confidence, relishing the

feel and taste of him. Feeling a little left out, he slid down and

positioned her over his mouth and lowered her to his lips, feeling her

swelling clit enter his mouth. Eti moaned around his shaft, the vibrations

sending a curious feeling through him.

Their bodies slick with the sweat of their efforts, father and daughter
enjoyed each other, both lost in the indescribable pleasure. Their love

was taboo, but neither really cared, for this moment was theirs, for now

and forever.

Part I, Chapter Five

Lorne was ecstatic, his pleasure beyond words. He could feel Eti's

pending orgasm as she moved against his eager tongue and lips, grinding her

large clit against his chin while his masterful tongue plunged in and out

of her, lapping up her musky juices.

As her father ate her, Eti tried to swallow more of his burgeoning tool,

but found that, for now, she couldn't quite manage it. So, working as best

she could, she increased her efforts, licking up and down the shaft of the

large, veined monster in her hands. Her tongue moved back to the

mushroom-shaped head, lapping up the large dewdrop that had appeared there.

It was like nectar to her.

All she ever really wanted.

Sitting up, Etienne screwed her overheated flesh into her father's

mouth, using his massive erection to balance herself. She could feel her

clit, hard and throbbing, sliding quickly between his lips, teasing his

tongue with fleeting touches.

This was quickly becoming too much for her; Lorne could feel her

miniature cock stiffen then jerk spasmodically as she came, her hot fluids

literally flowing from her, drowning him. Above him, Eti shrieked as the

waves of pleasure swept over her repeatedly, each jolt causing her to shake

violently.

Suddenly weak from the intensity of cumming, Eti rolled off Lorne's

soaked face, shivering as if cold. Before she could recover, her father
rolled her over onto her stomach and, raising her ass, entered her in one

swift, deft movement. Eti nearly passed out from being filled with so much

so fast.

Lorne wasn't really concerned; all he could concentrate on was the

joyous feeling of Eti's pussy stretched around his thickness. "So hot, so

wet," his lust-crazed brain said to him. He fucked his darling Peaches

with long, fast strokes, pulling all the way out until only the thick head

remained inside her. He grunted with pleasure as he plunged deeply into

her, the force of his reentry shoving her forward on the floor.

Etienne was drunk with pleasure, feeling her father moving inside her.

The pain wasn't as bad as last night and, it seemed she was actually

getting used to his gigantic love muscle. She could hear her father groan

as he fucked her, delighted he was enjoying her so much.

Lorne reached around and under Eti until he could finger her clit,

rubbing it in time with his strokes. Eti responded by shoving her ass back

against him harder, the duality of sensations bringing her closer. Lorne

quickened his pace, his own need for release growing more intense.

Releasing her clit, Lorne grabbed her ass with both hands, spreading her

further. He looked down and watched as he buried himself deeply into her,

her lips spread wide. With one movement of his hips, he watched as the

last inch or two disappeared inside her and he felt his cock-head bump into

the opening of her womb.

Eti gasped as he hit the bottom of her. She could have never imagined

feeling so full; it was if he had somehow bypassed the confining walls of

her cunt and had entered her stomach.

Being this deep triggered her released and she cried out before she even

realized it, her young cunt clutching his invading tool tightly. Lorne,

upon feeling himself squeezed so tightly, felt his cock swell inside her,

and held on for dear life as he emptied himself into her in great heaves.

He shook uncontrollably as he continued to come, his eyes rolling back into

his head. His mouth, although open, issued a silent scream of pleasure as

she bucked under him.

Spent, he fell on top of her as she collapsed under both his weight and

the intensity of her own release. Mindful of the difference in their

weights, Lorne somehow managed to prop himself up on his elbows, while the

last precious drops of his seed emptied into her.

Unable to maintain his position, Lorne skillfully rolled off Etienne and

lay beside her panting and smiling. "What a way to start my day," she

finally said.

Lorne could only smile and nod in agreement, wistfully hoping the day

could continue like this but knowing that he'd better be getting on his way

to the lab and Eti off to school.

Sitting up, he playfully slapped her bottom, noticing the way it jiggled

for a few seconds. "Okay," he said. "It's off to the lab for me and

school for you, so let's hit it."

Eti groaned in fake displeasure, but moved to comply with his wishes.

"Oh, okay," she complained. "I'm going. Will you drop me off at school?"

As he moved off to shower, Lorne said, "Of course I will, Peaches. I'll

be ready in a few minutes, so you'd better hurry."

After showering and dressing, Lorne dropped Eti off at school. Giving

her a peck on the cheek, he drove off, heading for his office, whistling

happily.

Part I, Chapter Six

Lorne was in great spirits when he arrived at Carlton Pharmaceuticals.

He strolled past the receptionist and noticed, for the first time, how

lovely she was. The woman was surprised when Lorne spoke to her, her eyes

momentarily going wide.

"Good morning, Dr. Williams," she said after recovering. "Dr. Levin

wants to see you in Lab One when possible." She handed him the written note

left by Geoff.

"Okay, fine." He said after confirming the verbal message. "Call Dr.

Levin and tell him I'll be there just as soon as I hang up my coat."

She nodded and he headed off in the direction of his office, silently

wondering what Geoff could possibly want. Entering his office, he tossed

his jacket on a visitor's chair and crossed to the window which overlooked

Lab One. From there, he could see Levin frantically waving his hands in

the air and pointing at the genetic splicer. Frowning, Lorne realized he'd

better get down there before Geoff had a stroke, while wondering what could

have possibly gone wrong.

Lorne had to pass through a pretty sophisticated bio-filtering system

that scanned him for any contaminants on his person and removed them.

Although the scanning beam was harmless to the person being scanned, Lorne

had discovered that the beam caused a tickling sensation on his skin.

The scan completed and a green light went on, signaling that he could

now enter the sterile Lab One environment. The inner lab door opened and

Lorne went into the lab proper. Finding Geoff Levin wasn't hard - all he

had to do was listen.

"... oh sure, the sub-processing routine worked fine, but the phased

links failed to pass along the genetic code of the sample for slicing!"

Coming up along a side of him, Lorne smiled in an attempt to disarm the

angry doctor. "Geoff, what is the problem?" he began.

"Problem?" Levin sputtered. "My problem is your pet gene splicer isn't

getting the information properly from the digital sub-processors, that's

what my problem is!"

Lorne looked at Gene Edwards, the team member who designed the digital

interface between the sub-processors and the splicer.

"Gene?" he asked.

"Well," the bearded cyberneticist started, "the sub-processor was

working at analyzing the genetic structure of the sample in the splicer and

before the analysis was completed, the splicer just started doing its

thing."

Lorne nodded and asked, "Your analysis of the problem?"

"A simple matter of one module being out of alignment," came the answer.

"Once the safety monitors detected the error, the process stopped and the

self-diagnostics reported the misalignment, just as designed."

Lorne thought Gene sounded a bit huffy, but he really didn't blame him.

Levin was a topnotch administrator but he really didn't know how things

worked as well as he should have. "Was the module replaced?" Lorne asked.

"Yes and once we replaced it, the system recycled itself. The process

completed itself, again as programmed. Total downtime was five minutes."

Gene looked in Levin's direction as he spoke, the pride clearing showing in

his voice.

After a moment, Lorne nodded and spoke.

"I see. Thanks, Gene."

Before Levin could say a word, Lorne grabbed him by the arm and steered

him toward the room's exit. "A word with you, Geoff?" he said, dragging

the sputtering man behind him.

Once back in his office, Lorne spoke.

"Now. Just what in the hell are you trying to do to my people? Gene

Edwards is one of the top cyberneticists in the country. I don't know what

you said to him, but we need him here with us, not running off to Petrie

Chemicals."

As he sat behind his desk, Lorne fumed. Levin was a good man, but prone

to panic. Like himself, Geoff Levin was a widower trying to raise a

daughter of his own.

"You know that the board was in here yesterday to see the results of the

project. While showing the splicer, the damned thing went berserk! I had

to do some fast talking to convince the board that everything was under

control!"

Levin waited for Lorne to respond, watching the man for reactions.

Levin knew the board of directors hadn't really noticed the processor

failure, but he figured acting like a lunatic kept the staff on its toes.

Lorne turned and started his computer, noticing the correct startup

sequence. After entering his password, he got to his mailbox, looking for

some word from the board members on yesterday's demo.

Geoff gave Lorne an impatient look. "Well? What are you doing?" he

said, pointing at the monitor.

Lorne simply held up a finger as he scanned the notice concerning the

demo. He saw the board had overwhelmingly supported the program and was

pushing toward Phase II completion. Turning back to Levin, he smiled

broadly.

"Geoff," he began. "You are full of shit. The board approved Phase II;

why were you jumping on my people?"

Levin produced his own smile, saying "Just doing my job. Listen, I'm

having a party tonight and you're invited. Oh, bring Eti with you; she can

keep my Kymber company while us old folks pat each other on the back."

As both stood and shook hands, Levin added, "Oh. The party starts at

eight. Be there or be square." With a wave, Geoff left.

Lorne sat back in his chair, feeling totally pleased with himself. He

and his team had worked for six long years and it finally paid off.

Reaching for his phone, he called home to leave Eti a message on the

answering machine, telling her about the invitation and asking her to call.

That done, Lorne Williams, MD, Ph.D., settled in for a good day's work.

Part I, Chapter Seven

Eti saw the message light flashing when she came into the house.

Crossing to the phone, she rewound the machine and listened to her father's

message. She frowned at word of the party invitation because she had a

different kind of party in mind. Yet any chance to see Kymber Levin again

would be worth the aggravation.

The message ended and Eti went to prepare for the party. While looking

in her closet for something appropriate to wear, her mind reviewed her

relationship with Geoff Levin's daughter.

Both went to the same school and Kymber was older by only a few months.

Of course, their fathers were both widowers and they worked for the same

company. Importantly, though, they shared the same secret desires.

Except, of course, Eti had realized most of hers.

She had a few hours to go before having to get ready, so she settled

into her homework, completing her tasks with her usual precision. She sat

at her desk and, after a moment of thought, reached for her phone and

called Kymber. Kymber Levin answered on the second ring.

"Hello, Levin residence."

Eti smiled, thinking of how snotty Kymber sounded whenever she answered

the phone. She knew, however, that Kymber was anything but snotty.

"Hi, Kymmie, it's Eti!"

"Eti!" Kymber exclaimed. "You coming tonight?"

"That's why I called," Eti answered. She could envision Kymber's smile

matching her own. "Kymmie, we have to talk," Eti said, all business now.

"Hmm. This sounds quite serious," Kymber replied.

"It is, believe me."

Kymber looked at the phone, a frown creasing her usually smooth

forehead. She and Etienne were the very best of friends so Kymber knew if

Eti said it was serious, it really was. "Okay," she finally said. "When

you get here, we'll go to my room and talk."

"That's fine," Eti responded. "I'll see you then."

Etienne hung up after saying goodbye and stretched out on her bed,

thinking about the last conversation they had. Well, maybe it really

wasn't talking, but they said some things, either way.

Closing her eyes, she could still feel Kymber's tongue on her clit and

how thrilling and scary the experience was.

They were studying together and had been at it for hours. Kymber had

decided they'd been working too hard and deserved a break. After a raid on

the Levin refrigerator for munchies and cold drinks, they returned to the

room and fell into the usual talk into which young women get.

Eti remembered prattling about something when she happened to notice

Kymber looking at her. She felt a chill rush through her because she

noticed that Kymber's gaze was a bit more intense than just a casual look.

She had asked Kymber if there was anything wrong, but she never

answered. Instead, Kymber crossed the short distance between them, never

taking her eyes off Eti, until they were practically nose to nose. Eti

swallowed nervously and tried to speak - but discovered her mouth as dry as

she could ever remember.

Kymber continued her silence, gazing into Eti's eyes. Eti found that

she couldn't look away. For what seemed to last an eternity, Eti's hazel

eyes and Kymber's green eyes were locked together.

Without warning, Kymber leaned forward until their lips met. Eti's

mouth opened slightly in surprise, allowing Kymber's tongue to slip in.

Kymber held Etienne's head in place as she kissed her deeply. Eti found

herself returning the kiss, something which really shocked her. Without

thinking, her arms gathered Kymber closer, feeling a hot rush flowing

through her.

Eti felt herself being gently pushed backward, until she was lying down,

their soulful kiss uninterrupted. Kymber was kissing her face and ears

and, with her weight pressing down on her, Eti was helpless. She could

feel Kymber's hand massaging her breast and, strangely, it felt good.

Scary, but good.

Again their eyes locked, allowing Eti to read... something. She wasn't

quite sure what she saw in her friend's emerald eyes. While Etienne was

occupied with studying Kymber's eyes, the other young woman had succeeded

in removing Eti blouse and bra, plus her own!

Kymber had lowered her mouth to Eti's nipple, sucking gently. All Eti

could do was to hold on, not really understanding what was happening to

her, but knowing what was going to happen. She also thought she should

stop her friend, while also knowing she would let things play out.

Eti heard the zipper of her jeans being released and felt the coolness

of the room's air on her now-naked skin. Kymber continued her assault on

Eti's body. She felt light kisses on her stomach, the girl's tongue

tracing lazy patterns here and there, sending shivers the entire length of

Eti's body.

Somehow, Kymber managed to wriggle out of her own jeans without stopping

her steady advance. Eti, looking through partially closed eyes, could see

one silken globe of the other girl's firm ass as she turned herself. Eti

felt her legs being parted and lifted slightly, the cool air between her

hot legs somehow increasing her excitement. She felt Kymber's breath on

her sex, warm and moist thinking this couldn't be happening.

And knew it was happening as she felt the first flick of Kymber's tongue

on her clit. A moan escaped Eti's lips as the fluttering tongue explored

her secrets. She could hear Kymber's moans of delight as she tasted her

victim, muttering something about it being so big and so hard.

Kymber began to suck Eti's engorged clit, her tongue moving crazily over

the sensitive head, driving Eti insane with pleasures before which she'd

never known. Eti could feel something happening within her, a building of

feelings that were now screaming for release. To her horror/pleasure, Eti

could feel her hips moving in rhythm to Kymber's licking and sucking.

To make things even more bizarre, Kymber was straddling her face,

exposing her curly, musky dampness. Eti felt a sense of panic as Kymber

lowered herself onto Eti's mouth. Instinctively, Eti opened her mouth,

allowing Kymber's clit to slide between her parted lips. Eti sampled the

taste of her friend. Sharp and tangy, but not in the least unpleasant.

Curiously, she noticed how hot it was between Kymber's legs.

The two young women lay in the 69 position, hips pumping, moans filling

the room. Not being able to withstand the mounting pressure, Eti came

first. The impact sent the young woman trembling out of control. Eti

reached down and held Kymber's face tightly to her pussy, practically

fucking the other girl's face.

It quickly became too much for Kymber as she came, bringing a muffled

scream from her. Kymber instantly drenched Eti's face in a hot fluid that

flowed in unbelievably long spurts. She didn't have time to wonder what it

was, as the hot, sweet tasting juice filled her mouth to overflowing. She

felt Kymber slip her thumb inside Eti's own juicy snatch - stopping at her

maidenhead - which started her coming again, her own hot juices shooting

into Kymber's willing mouth.

Eti lay on her bed, still remembering how delicious it felt. She

recalled the look on Kymber's face when they finally separated. Kymber's

face was slick with Eti's juices and the young woman was flushed with

pleasure. For a long minute, neither woman spoke. Finally, Kymber broke

the silence, apologizing repeatedly.

Kymber had explained that she had always wanted to make love to Eti and

apologized again. It surprised Eti to see tears in Kymber's eyes and, if

she felt any anger toward her friend, sympathy quickly replaced it.

It took a while for Eti to convince her friend that everything was okay,

but she managed to let her know that it was all right. Eti had to admit

she had enjoyed herself, more than she would have expected. She told

Kymber this, making the young woman stop crying and relax.

Part I, Chapter Eight

The sound of the front door closing startled Etienne from her memories

and hearing her father's footsteps. She glanced at the clock, realizing

angrily she'd foolishly wasted precious preparation time with her lewd

memories. She hurriedly shed her clothing and raced for the shower,

calling out to her father she'd be ready in twenty minutes.

Lorne raised an eyebrow as he heard the shower start, wondering what Eti

could have possibly been doing that she was just getting showered.

"Honey," he called. "You'd better make it fast; we roll out of here in a

half an hour!"

Eti hurried out of the shower, toweling off as quickly as possible. She

went to her closet and pulled out the first dress she saw, a low-cut,

celery green item that left much to the imagination. She knew her father
would probably give her some static about the dress, but she'd worry about

it later.

Ten minutes later, she stood in the foyer, waiting for her father. As

Lorne came down the steps, Eti noticed how handsome he was in a dark blue

suit. Lorne noticed the dress Eti was wearing, thinking it revealed too

much of her body. However, they were running late and knew there was no

time to change.

They filled the drive to the Levin's home with small talk about how each

other's day went. As he drove, Lorne had to notice how Eti's hemline

allowed a good view of her shapely thighs. Smiling to himself, Lorne was

thinking about the lovely treasure rested between those thighs. Well, at

least he thought he was smiling to himself because he noticed his daughter
looking at him with a questioning look.

"What's so funny?" she asked.

"Huh? Oh, nothing, nothing at all. I was just thinking about something

pleasant."

Having said that, he fell silent, leaving Eti wondering what could be so

pleasant to have him smiling in such a manner. She could remember times

when he wouldn't smile and, when he did, it never reached his eyes. This

smile, however, was genuine and although she didn't know why, she was glad

he could find something to smile about.

They finally arrived at Geoff's home. Upon finding a place to park,

Lorne escorted Eti inside. The first thing Eti noticed was there were

adults everywhere, remembering her father never did mention what kind of

party to which they were going. A frown crossed her features and it didn't

escape Lorne's scrutiny.

"I know you didn't expect this kind of party," he began. "Still, I

figured it would give you and Kymber a chance to do some catching up. It's

been a long time since you last saw each other."

Upon hearing her friend's name, she brightened. "I'll try to find her.

You really don't mind, do you?" she asked.

Lorne shooed her away with a wave. "Go on, find Kymber and have a good

time. When I'm ready to leave, I'll let you know." With a bright smile,

Eti set off in search of Kymber.

Kymber Levin was in her room, pouting. She hated it when her father
held these ass-kissing parties because none of the other stuffed shirts

thought to bring their kids with them. She shook her head in frustration,

her long, dark red mane flowing like blood before settling back into place.

Kymber jumped up and paced around the room knowing that before long, her

father would be pounding on the door to drag her out to meet his coworkers

and other people with whom she'd rather have nothing to do. Kymber stopped

in front of her dressing table and her frustration grew, realizing she

hadn't even finished dressing for this joke. Before she could cross to her

closet, she heard a knock on the door.

"Probably some schmuck who can't find the fucking bathroom," she fumed.

Crossing the room swiftly, she yanked the door open, not caring she only

wore her bra and panties. "This should give them something to talk about!"

The door opened to reveal Eti Williams and Kymber's foul mood

immediately vanished. "Eti!" she cried. "You made it! Come in!"

Eti was a bit confused at her friend's exuberant welcome, but stepped

inside so Kymber could close the door. Without breaking her stride, Kymber

grabbed her by the hand and pulled her over to the bed, where she sat.

After a moment, Eti sat beside her.

"So," Kymber began. "What was so important?"

Etienne hesitated for a moment, not sure if she could trust the

red-haired, green-eyed woman sitting next to her. She looked up into

Kymber's eyes and saw concern in them instead of curiosity. Taking a deep

breath, she told her what took place between her and Lorne, not leaving out

any detail.

Kymber sat and listened as patiently as she could. Eti could see Kymber

was dying to flood her with questions and appreciated Kymber's attention

while she told it like it was.

Finally, her tale told, she sat back and waited for Kymber's response.

Kymber surprised Eti with her response; instead of the verbal outburst she

expected, she saw a tear flowing down her cheek.

Kymber said, after wiping her face, "Oh, my. I am so happy for you!"

Not exactly the response Eti expected. Still, she felt buoyed by her

friend's acceptance of her situation.

Kymber took Eti's hands and held them, squeezing gently. Kymber was

alive with energy - as they held hands, Kymber was bouncing on the bed

until the whole thing was shaking.

"Kymber!" Eti exclaimed, looking at the bed.

Kymber flushed bright red with embarrassment and settled her bouncing

down to a manageable quiver.

"I don't know what else to say," Kymber said, her eyes sparkling.

"Just tell me you understand," Eti responded. Kymber could only nod

and, before the silence could grow any further, Kymber spoke. "Well! What

shall we do? It looks like the grownups will be at it for a while."

Etienne knew what she wanted to do, but wasn't sure how to go about it.

Suddenly, it came to her: Why not give Kymber a taste of her own medicine?

Since they were still holding hands, Eti used it to her advantage. With a

gentle but sudden motion, she drew Kymber into her embrace and kissed her,

surprising the supple redhead.

Before Kymber could respond, Eti reached around and unfastened the other

girl's bra, freeing her ample breasts. The bra went sailing across the

room as Eti's hand began to massage her friend's breasts, paying particular

attention to her nipples, now growing hard.

Kymber gasped at Eti's touch, sending a shiver through her. Before she

could offer any resistance - not that she was going to resist to begin

with, Kymber felt Eti's mouth close on one erect nipple, her tongue

circling the hot flesh there.

The two women stopped long enough for Eti to undress and, as she did,

Kymber watched in appreciation. When she finished undressing, Eti pushed

her friend onto her back muttering, "What's good for the goose..."

Kymber relaxed, offering herself to her sexy friend. "Take me," she

whispered. Eti complied. Lying next to Kymber, she again lowered her

mouth to a nipple, sucking eagerly, while allowing her free hand to find

it's way between the young woman's thighs. Kymber's legs parted wide,

allowing easy access to her treasures. Eti's fingers found Kymber's clit

and she began to stroke it. She dipped a finger into the young woman to

moisten her fingertip and continued her assault.

Kymber's back arched at the contact and another moan escaped her lips.

She thought, "She's not holding back... "

Unable to stay patient, Eti abandoned Kymber's breasts and she buried

her head between the hot woman's legs, lapping at her cunt hungrily.

Kymber went wild, unable to contain herself. She raised her legs higher

and held Eti's head to her hot lushness, feeling Eti's tongue and lips work

at her. "For someone who only did this once," she thought, "she's driving

me crazy!"

Eti ate her friend, allowing all the scents and other sensations to

carry her away. Lovingly, she licked her, feeling Kymber's passion

increase with every touch. She felt Kymber tremble, which only encouraged

Eti into a higher level of activity. She inserted two fingers into the

girl's sopping wet cunt and another finger found its way into the girl's

tight back hole, going in up to the second knuckle.

The combined sensations were too much for Kymber and she exploded, a

near silent cry escaping her parted lips. She panted heavily as wave after

wave washed over her. Eti, for her part, was very busy trying to keep up

with the hot, gushing liquid pouring into her face and mouth. The two

horny women positioned themselves so that each could enjoy the other. Eti

came almost immediately as Kymber sucked her large clit hard, flicking her

tongue over it rapidly. They continued to love each other, oblivious to

everything, caring about nothing.

Part I, Chapter Nine

Most of the party guests had gone, leaving Lorne and Geoff pretty much

alone.

"Hey, Lorne, thanks for coming. You were just as big a part of this as

I was."

Lorne waved off the accolades and said, "Hey, I'm just glad I could be a

part of all of this."

The two men fell silent and, comically, did an identical thing: They

were looking for their respective daughters. Practically speaking

simultaneously, both asked, "Have you seen..." Realizing their gaff, they

grinned foolishly for a moment.

Geoff said, "They're probably still in Kymber's room, running off at the

mouth. You know how women are. Come on, I'll show you where they are."

They set off toward Kymber's room, going over some highlights of the

party. Reaching the room, Geoff was about to knock on the door - and

hesitated.

Lorne, became immediately concerned, asked, "What's wrong?"

"Nothing, I think. I don't hear them in there; maybe they're out by the

pool."

Quietly, Geoff turned the door knob. The door was unlocked and opened

silently. Both fathers craned their heads so they could discreetly look

into the room, shocked at what they saw.

Lorne saw his little Eti with her head buried between Kymber's long

legs. His mouth opened at the sight and he could hear Kymber's astonished

father breathe, "What the hell... ?" Both men stepped into the room, and

closed the door; neither young woman appearing to hear the slight sound the

catch made.

Lorne spared a glance at Geoff, expecting to see anger and/or disgust on

his face. Instead, the spectacle before him transfixed Geoff. Lorne

couldn't help noticing he wasn't the only one paying attention. Geoff had

a very noticeable bulge in his pants; not that he could blame him because

what he was seeing turned him on as well.

Lorne decided. Without looking at the other man, he began to undress,

removing his clothes as quietly as he could. As much as he respected Geoff

and Kymber, his lust was overpowering. Totally naked, he started toward

the bed, stopping only to look back at Geoff with a questioning look.

Geoff took one look at the young women on the bed, looked at the naked

Lorne Williams, and hurriedly stripped, almost falling over in his haste.

Now naked the men approached the bed; when they were within reach of

either woman, Lorne broke the silence. "May we join you?"

The results were electric! Both women sat up, their eyes wild with

lust.

"D-d-dad!" they stuttered in unison.

Without an answer, Lorne replaced Kymber between Eti's legs and began to

eat the young vixen with gusto. Lorne replaced whatever shame he may have

felt with lust and desire. Geoff Levin was frozen in place, his alcohol

induced haze not allowing his brain to believe what his eyes were seeing.

Here before him lay his daughter, her nude body glistening with a coat of

perspiration. Their eyes met and the elder Levin refused to believe what

he saw in Kymber's eyes.

Lust. Pure, unbridled lust. He was aware of his own passion growing

stronger within him as he watched his co-worker indulge in the pleasures

the young Etienne had to offer. The sights and sounds astonished him. He

would have never thought something like this could be happening, here in

his own home!

Gathering his resolve, he stepped forward to stop the action - and was

stopped dead in his tracks as Kymber's hot mouth wrapped itself around his

swollen member. Then again, whatever he was going to do, it could wait.

It had been a very long time. . .

Closing his eyes and bending his knees slightly, the elder Levin groaned

loudly as the young woman's tongue flicked across the tip of his cock. As

she pleasured him, Geoff couldn't help thinking where his daughter had

learned such a thing, not to mention who had taught her. He'd have to talk

to her about this later, but for now, he didn't care.

Kymber took him deep into her mouth, sending a shiver through him that

buckled his knees. "You'd better lie down, Dad," said Kymber with a smile.

Geoff looked around the spacious bed for somewhere to stretch out.

However, Lorne and Eti were involved in an energetic sixty-nine, the

younger woman's head bobbing with a quick, but steady rhythm. He stretched

out next to Eti and Lorne in a position which would allow him to watch the

young woman work on her father.

His own daughter had other ideas, swinging herself on top of him,

matching the position of the couple next to them. Without hesitation,

Kymber lowered her moist thatch of red hair to his mouth. Geoff didn't

need any further encouragement as he began to lick the tangy juices he

found there.

The four lovers continued this way, lost in the depths of their own

private passions. Years of experience, however, began to take their toll

on the young women as the two fathers plied every skill they possessed,

causing the young women to lose their concentration. Both were caught up

in their own intense orgasms brought on by the masterful tongues invading

their bodies.

Without warning, the women traded places. Geoff suddenly found his head

surrounded by a pair of lovely dark thighs, facing an even darker mound of

hair, along with the biggest clit he'd ever seen. As Eti lowered her hot

slit, it surprised Geoff to feel her clit slide between his lips. As he

sucked on the delicious morsel, he couldn't keep from feeling like he was

sucking a man's cock.

With the change of partners, the action continued. Lorne's tongue was a

flurry of activity, going from Kymber's soaking wet pussy to her puckered

ass. He did this so quickly the hot redhead couldn't keep up with the

different sensations as she sucked at the huge black meat deep in her

throat.

Kymber had always heard stories about Black men being well-endowed - and

here was the living proof. She had trouble closing her hand around the

hot, thick meat as she worked the large, bulbous head between her lips.

Kymber could even feel the man's pulse coming from the distended veins that

ran the length of his member.

The room filled with the sounds of sucking and slurping, experience took

its toll on youthful enthusiasm again. Eti sat straight up on Geoff's

face, grinding her hips furiously as she rode out yet another intense

orgasm. Leaning forward, she embraced her soul sister and their lips met

as the two women were subjected to wave after wave of pleasure.

Exhausted, they rolled off the men, trying to catch their breath. Fat

chance. Before they could utter a word of protest, each woman suddenly

found their legs in the air as the men slid between them, Lorne with

Kymber, Geoff with Eti.

Kymber gasped as Lorne slid into her, feeling the huge thickness of the

man spreading her wider than ever before. She felt a momentary pang of

jealousy as she looked at her dearest friend, who was handling Geoff's

entry with relative ease. Kymber had never felt so full before - but then

again, she'd never had a fully grown man before. The boys she had

experimented with were not even close in matching this man's skill and

size.

With a grunt, Lorne filled the girl with his cock and, after giving her

a few seconds to adjust to his invasion, began to fuck her slowly with

deep, even strokes. He smiled as he heard Eti cry out, thinking his old
buddy was really giving it to his daughter. All things being fair, he

should at least return the favor, right? He increased his movement inside

the dazzling red-haired beauty, causing her emerald green eyes to widen in

surprise.

Geoff was sure he was in heaven as he fucked the young Black woman

furiously, consumed in his fiery lust. Eti's cunt clung to his cock

tightly, bringing him closer to his own orgasm. Eti could feel the man's

cock tremble inside her and, with great concentration, clamped her pussy
around the invading cock meat. Geoff rewarded Eti by releasing his seed,

the hot splashes coating her insides. She looked up at the coming man, his

face coming close to matching the deep red color of his hair as he emptied

himself into her.

Lorne could hear the two lovers next to him and doubled his efforts

inside Kymber. The inexperienced young woman was beyond doing anything

except holding on to him tightly as he assaulted her once tight love hole.

Kymber was beginning to wonder just how long this man could keep up this

pace, when she felt him swelling inside her, stretching her overfilled cunt
even further.

"He's coming," she thought and braced herself.

With a loud grunt, Lorne thrust deeply inside Kymber, meeting the

entrance of her womb as his thick cock exploded inside her with surprising

force. Jet after jet of the hot sticky fluid flowed into her, so much she

could feel it running down the crack of her ass.

He continued to come as Lorne continued to fuck her deeply, his cock

still rock hard in spite of just coming. Kymber cried out, begging him to

stop, but Lorne was beyond stopping. The events of the evening had

awakened something in him and Lorne was determined to see it through to the

very end.

Geoff watched with amazement as he watched the other man's huge cock

sliding in and out of his daughter. Eti had come to Kymber's side,

whispering words of encouragement to her friend while massaging her

breasts. The man's ass, rising and falling hypnotized Geoff, the muscles

taut as cables. Without even thinking about it, he positioned himself

behind Lorne. When his ass came up on a stroke, he grabbed the man's hips

and with a motion that surprised everyone, slid into the Black man's ass,

taking advantage of the slick juices covering his own maleness.

With a grunt, Geoff buried himself quickly into Lorne, causing the

younger man to come again. Kymber was spent and completely worn out as Eti

helped the poor young woman from under her father and sat back to watch the

scene unfold.

Geoff fucked Lorne like a maniac, ramming his cock rapidly into the

man's ass. Reaching around his victim, he grabbed the younger man's cock -

and was shocked to find it was still very much erect. He stroked Lorne's

meat as he fucked him and, after a few more strokes, emptied his swollen

balls into the man's ass.

Rolling off Lorne, Geoff prepared himself for what he knew must happen

next. He didn't have to wait long, as he felt his ass being lifted by two

powerful hands. After a moment of probing, Lorne entered the man, looking

forward to exacting a type of revenge on his boss and long time friend.

Lorne rode him hard, his face contorted with the effort. Geoff cried out

in a rare mix of pain and pleasure as the large cock buried itself deeper

into his body, wondering if he had made a mistake in being so bold.

The long evening and multiple ejaculations had taken its toll on Lorne.

As much as he would have liked to continue fucking his boss' ass, he

couldn't hold back any longer. Quickening his pace, he reamed the man
until he exploded deep inside him. Feeling Lorne's release inside him,

Geoff also came, his seed splashing against the other man's stomach.

Slowly, Lorne pulled out and rolled onto his back, totally exhausted.

The two women, recovering from the surprising event which had just taken

place, snuggled into the arms of their respective fathers.

Eti was sure this wouldn't be the last time the four of them would be

together like this. With sleepy eyes, she looked at her friend, who was

already asleep in her father's arms and, with a smile, settled in to dream

of more fun to come.

ETIENNE: DISCOVERY

Part II, Chapter One

"What are you thinking about?"

Lorne Williams turned away from the curtain of rain splattering against

the window. "Oh, hi, Peaches. I wasn't really thinking about anything in

particular."

Etienne joined him at the window as a brilliant flash of lightning lit

up the sky, followed by a bass rumble of thunder. "Really? I'm surprised.

You've been standing there for the last ten minutes."

"Just appreciating the beauty and raw power of Nature, dear."

"Uh huh. I suppose you expect me to believe this."

Lorne placed his arm around her shoulders. With a smile he said, "It

would help."

"I'm sure it would. Now, you gonna tell me what's on your mind?"

Lorne remained silent, unsure if he should risk mentioning the thoughts

which had plagued him over the last couple of months.

Eti took a long look at her father's face. She was, of course, very

much aware there was something very important on his mind and had finally

decided to approach him. Seeing he wasn't going to volunteer, Eti changed

her tack.

"I'm trying to remember something." Lorne looked in her direction, his

eyebrows arched questioningly. "I remember someone telling me a long time

ago it helps to talk about the things which bother you."

"What makes you think something's bothering me?"

"To begin with, you've barely said more than 'hi' to me over the last

two months. You've been sitting around the house doing nothing. To top it

off, you've this lost look about you, like you're not sure which way up

is."

Inwardly, Lorne winced - he had hoped Eti hadn't noticed. Wanting to

end this conversation, he decided to take the offensive. "Seems to me

you've got it all figured. Tell you what - you tell me what's wrong and

I'll either agree or disagree. Deal?" Satisfied, he leaned against the

window sill.

Eti, however, was ready for this bit of evasive action. "I think this

has something to do with the party at Kymber's house."

As if scripted, a gigantic bolt of lightning tore across the sky,

creating a stroboscopic effect as Lorne's smug look fell onto the floor and

shattered into a million pieces.

"I thought so." Nodding to herself, Eti went into the kitchen. After a

few seconds, Lorne followed.

"Okay, okay. I admit it's been on my mind." Lorne sat at the table,

propping his head up on his forearms.

Etienne placed a steaming cup of coffee in front of him before taking a

seat. After taking a sip of her herbal tea, she looked at her troubled

father.

"I thought we had gotten past the moral difficulties after the first

time."

"Me, too - it was the party which had me rethinking things."

"Which part in particular? Me and Kymmie? Or was it me and Geoff?"

"The whole night served to put things in a different light for me."

Etienne nodded and said, "It did for me as well. How does the party

relate to us?"

"Us? I don't understand."

"We've made love three times, Dad. The last time was at the party."

The elder Williams answered with silence. Secretly, he had hoped this

topic wouldn't surface. Eti, however, wasn't going to be put off so

easily. "Well?"

"Well, what? What do you want me to say?"

"You could begin by telling me why."

"It's a lot easier said than done, Peaches."

"Try. I think you owe me on this. You make me feel like you don't love

me."

"Come with me." Lorne got up from the table and went to the living room.

Sitting on the love seat, he patted the empty space next to him.

"Okay," he said as Etienne settled down next to him. "You wanted to

know why, so here it is. It's not as if I don't love you; I love you more

than ever before. Not a night goes by where I'm not thinking about having

you next to me."

Eti opened her mouth to speak, only to be stopped by an upraised hand.

"Please let me finish. I'll answer your questions later."

"Despite my feelings and, yes, my desire for you, I had to think about

your future. You deserve a chance to meet someone your own age, someone

who shares your interests. So, I decided to fade into the background,

figuring you'd lose interest and strike out on your own."

"I see. Did it ever occur to you that I wouldn't want anyone else?"

"Honestly? No, it didn't."

"How could you decide like this without asking me?"

"Etienne, I'm your father. It's my job to decide your life."

"Maybe, but it is my life, Dad! Don't I have a say in it?"

"Yes, you do. I just thought..."

Eti moved closer. "Well, you thought wrong. What I want is you - it's

all I ever wanted since our very first time."

"What about that boy - what's his name?"

Etienne looked puzzled for a moment. "Who? Darryl?"

"Yeah, that's his name. I thought you two had something going on."

"Darryl's a good friend, Dad. Don't get me wrong - he'd take me to bed

in a flat, skinny second if I were to give him a chance. However, I had to

ask myself something."

"What?"

"If he'd be what I want in a lover. Experience does count in this, you

know."

Lorne nodded, remembering his youthful difficulties with various young
women. "The boy has to learn somehow! If women never give him the chance,

he'll never learn."

"True enough. However, you should know just how much women hate being

disappointed when making love."

He did, indeed. "So you're saying given the choice, you prefer

experience."

"Quite so, dear father. You not only bring years of experience to the

bed, but another important ingredient - love. Darryl doesn't love me even

if he thinks he does. Before you say it, I know he could learn to love me,

but I want love now, not somewhere down the road."

"There are older men." Lorne knew he was fishing as he said this.

"You're right, there are. I decided after the party I'd rather deal

with the devil I know rather than the one I don't."

"Are you calling me a devil, young lady?"

"I'm calling you the man I love and the only man I want. Now, if you

happen to be a devil, then so much the better."

Lorne was deep in thought for several minutes as he ran options through

his mind. One prominent though was his happiness in finding out Eti still

wanted him.

"Dad?"

"Yes, Eti?"

"Make love to me? Right here, right now? I need you..."

Part II, Chapter Two

Until now, making love was the last thing on his mind. Upon hearing

Etienne's plea, his desire for this lovely creature filled and energized

him. Blood rushed to fill his member quickly, leaving him feeling a little

lightheaded.

Without a word, he slid off the love seat into a kneeling position in

front of Eti and undid her pants. Etienne raised herself slightly and

Lorne removed both pants and panties with one movement. Gently but with

mounting urgency, he slipped her pants over her ankles and tossed them

aside.

Eti felt a slight chill as goose bumps appeared on her exposed flesh,

unsure if it was because of the coolness of the room or her own

anticipation. Sliding down until her bottom was hanging off the edge of

the cushion, she draped her legs over his shoulders to allow him access to

her flesh.

Lorne made himself comfortable between her legs and drew closer to her

essence, feeling her heat, noticing the young woman was already moist.

Taking a deep breath, he drew his tongue across the hood of her clitoris.

Etienne gasped as his tongue rasped across the swelling bud of flesh.

Her body stiffened and arched in response - but only for a moment before

she melted against his touch. Slowly, she moved against the invading wedge

of wet muscle as it traveled the length of her slit, which was growing

wetter by the second. She sighed as the tip of Lorne's tongue parted her

soaked inner lips and lodged itself in her vaginal opening.

As Lorne worked his tongue into her, he could feel a trickle of juice

escape her hot, musky flesh. Stiffening his tongue, he plunged deeper into

her until he could feel the ridges of her canal. He licked the smooth

contours for a moment before returning his attention to her erect clitoris,

which had come out of its fleshy hiding place. A low growl flowed from him

as his lips captured the spongy head before sliding down the thick shaft.

He pursed his lips and sucked hard, exulting in the feel of her erect

member throbbing in his mouth. Lorne backed off a bit and ran his tongue

along the underside of his daughter's oversized clit, causing her to buck

harder against his face.

He was conscious of his own hardness, straining against the fabric of

his clothing. Rising to a kneeling position, Lorne unfastened his pants,

tugging his underwear down just enough to free his turgid member. It

sprang from its confinement and seemed to grow larger.

Dimly aware of her father's movement, Eti was lost in a sea of lust.

She moved hard against his mouth as his tongue worked its magic on her. As

it flicked from one sensitive spot to another, she tried to get it to stay

in one place - without success. The fleshy invader just wouldn't be denied

as it continued to bring her closer to climax. Opening her eyes to slits,

she could see her father's head moving frantically between her legs,

sucking her for all he was worth. Something shifted inside her as Etienne

felt the downward rush which only meant one thing.

Lorne could feel the change in Eti's passion. The once-steady thrusts

against his face were quickly falling off-pace, her hips bucking wildly

against him. He latched onto her clitoris one more time, sucking it hard

and running his tongue around the head as fast as he could. Eti's clit

jerked strongly in the grip of his mouth and lips; Eti froze in mid-thrust

as Lorne gave the head one slow lick, then another, allowing the tip of his

tongue to just lay across her swollen member. The first spurt of juice

came hard and fast. Her body relaxed only for a split second before the

next jet flowed from her. Orgasmic bliss caught Eti in its grip as her

orgasm pounded into her relentlessly.

Lorne raised his head from the soaking wetness of her, wiping his mouth

with the back of his hand. He took in the view of his daughter as the last

wave of pleasure washed over her. Without hesitation, he positioned the

thick knob of his cock against her opening, not wanting to give her a

chance to recover. He thrust into her, splitting her open along the length

of his shaft until he was buried inside her.

Eti's eyes flew open at the sudden penetration, her mouth forming an "O"

which matched the surprised look on her face as her father's thick tool

impaled her fully and easily. She could hear his grunt of pleasure as he

tried to get every inch inside her.

"Oh, Daddy," she cried.

"Hmm?"

"I love you so much! God, I've missed this."

Lorne leaned forward and sucked an erect nipple into his mouth, and Eti

fell silent. He withdrew until just the head remained inside her gripping

flesh and fucked her slowly, feeling her muscles' attempt to draw him

deeper.

Etienne's face was a mask of frustration. "Stop teasing me, Daddy," she

protested. "Please don't tease me. I want to feel you deep inside, so

damn bad!" Lorne gave a little smile at her bit of vulgarity and continued

his slow, maddening pace - but allowing more of himself to slide into her

sweet confines.

"YES!" she cried. "Give it to me, you bastard!" Lorne's smile widened

as another inch or so made its way into her. Etienne's fingers dug

painfully into his shoulder as he moved inside her with the same slow pace.

"Ooohh!" she hissed. "More! Give me more, damn you!" Lorne was clearly

enjoying his daughter's plight. He allowed her legs to drop down until her

knees were in the crook of his elbows, reaching under her with both hands.

Lorne put one hand under her quivering backside and the other in the middle

of her back. Bracing himself, Lorne stood and lifted her in one motion,

causing his full length to drive into her. Eti wrapped her arms around his

neck and clung to him, unable and unwilling to resist. Spreading his feet

into a wider stance, Lorne grabbed two hands full of her firm bottom and

began sliding her along the full length of his cock, pounding his steely

flesh into her with hard, fast strokes.

"Oh, fuck me, Daddy!" Eti cried as another orgasm punched through her.

Each downward thrust caused her breasts to jiggle crazily as held onto him

for dear life. "Now! Fill me with your love! I need it, NOW!"

Eti could feel her father's cock grow thicker inside her as he used

shorter, faster strokes to trigger his own release.

The tight feeling in his sac was tremendous as Lorne crossed over the

threshold, sending his creamy offering deep inside his loving daughter.

"Ugh! Yes, yes, yes!", he cried, feeling his knees buckle. He quickly -

but carefully - lowered their joined bodies to the floor, fucking into her

hard, his prick still emptying itself into her. With his lust fully in

control, he withdrew from her overworked slit and turned her onto her

stomach, only to ram into her again.

Etienne gasped as her father's hardness reentered her steamy vagina,

spreading her wide. She raised her ass slightly and he penetrated her

deeper. Strangely, she was appreciative yet amazed at his stamina as she

felt the knob of his still-erect member crash into her womb.

"Oh, Peaches," he said, feeling his thickness invade her again. "Oh,

how I've needed this." Lorne couldn't get enough of her sweet, delicious

body as he plowed into her with long strokes. Getting to his knees and

using them to spread her legs further apart, Lorne looked between them,

utterly fascinated at the sight of his cock literally turning her pussy
inside-out at every stroke. He pulled back and watched as the swollen knob

of his penis appeared. He let it rest there for a moment before sending it

again into her depths. Buried deep within her, he reached around and under

her, his fingers finding her clitoris. Grasping it between thumb and

forefinger, he began a frenzied jerking motion that made Etienne's back

arch.

"NO!" she screamed as the dual sensations raced through her. Eti tried

to escape the onslaught only to find herself unable to move. It didn't

take long before another mind-numbing climax jolted her. She felt his pace

slow as he released his grip on her tender clit, wondering if the pleasure

would ever stop and praying it didn't.

With his hands covered in their gooey fluids, Lorne placed a thumb at

the tight entrance to her anus, massaging the enticing opening gently -

before plunging it into her. Lorne felt her collapse under him but held

Eti firmly in place with his free arm around her waist.

Having two orifices filled simultaneously was too much for Eti as her

orgasm took hold of her. As Lorne's thumb reamed her, his cock began to

swell inside her again. She could feel the tremors racing along the veined

monster inside her as he exploded inside her. Lorne fell forward, consumed

by the pleasure/pain of his climax. His thumb popped out of her bottom

wetly as he braced himself on shaky arms, continuing to empty his love into

her.

Etienne felt his softening maleness as it slid from her, tears of joy

streaming down her cheeks. If she had any negative thoughts about his love

and desire for her, this act of love sent such thoughts to an early grave.

Lorne was coming down from the orgasmic high on which he'd been. He

trembled slightly as his sore muscles began protesting at being so badly

abused. "That's okay - nothing a hot shower can't handle," he though.

Looking to his left, he spotted Eti's prone form on the thick carpeting.

"Peaches?"

A light snore answered him, so he reached over and shook her. "Peaches,

come on. Let's go to bed."

Etienne groaned at the interruption in her moment of afterglow. "Do I

have to?"

"Yes, unless you like sleeping on the floor." Lorne offered a hand to

the slowly rising Etienne, who used it to pull herself upright.

Holding hands, the two climbed the stairs. Reaching the top, Eti

started to turn right toward her room, only to be jerked to a stop. "Where

are you going?" her father asked.

"To my room, where else would I be going?"

"I thought you'd, well, sleep with me tonight. That's if you don't

mind."

Etienne gave her father a loving, if sleepy, smile. "Sure, why not?"

Returning her smile, Lorne said, "I figured if we're going to be full

time lovers, we may as well sleep in the same bed." Wrapping an arm around

her shoulder, they entered the bedroom, the door closing with a click.

Part II, Chapter Three

Eti squirmed in her seat, still a little sore from the previous

evening's activity. "I suppose it's something I'll have to get used to,"

she thought. At the front of the room, the physics teacher was saying

something about the upcoming commencement ceremonies, now only two weeks

away.

"I'm glad we're finally getting out of here," a voice whispered in her

ear. Startled, Etienne turned toward the source and found herself looking

into Darryl Hill's black eyes. Darryl's complexion was darker than her

own; along with the short-cropped black hair, his eyes appeared not to have

pupils.

"What? Oh, I'm sorry, Darryl - I wasn't paying attention."

"Nothing new about that - you hardly ever pay attention to me."

Eti ignored the sarcastic remark. "You know that's not true."

The bell rang, signaling the change in classes. Eti tried to lose

herself in the bustling throng, hoping to avoid continuing the discussion

with Darryl. He was attractive enough, but...

"Hey! Wait up!"

Darryl caught up with her, saying, "Look, I'm sorry for the crack I made

in there. You do pay attention to me, even if it's just friendly."

Etienne didn't miss the hidden remark in that statement. "We're

friends, Darryl; why shouldn't it be friendly?"

"I think you know what I mean, Eti. I'd like to get to know you

better."

Etienne stopped and turned to face him. "Darryl, damn, I like you, but

it just isn't possible."

Darryl looked crestfallen. "There's someone else."

"You could say that. Sorry."

The young man wasn't to be put off so easily. "What would it take to

convince you to leave him?"

Eti had to stifle a laugh. "More than you could ever imagine, I'm

afraid. Look, Darryl, I'm not trying to be rude or anything, but I'm

pretty happy with the way things are in my life right now. I'm sure you

understand."

"Yeah, I understand," he said, clearly not understanding. "Well, you

can't blame a guy for trying! See ya around, okay?"

"Okay. Darryl?"

"Yeah?"

"Thanks for understanding. You're a good friend."

His ego a bit bruised, Darryl nodded and headed for class. Eti watched

him round the corner before entering the classroom, feeling guilty over

rejecting his advances.

* * *

"How was school today?" Lorne posed the usual question while checking on

the bread baking in the oven.

"Oh, about the same as usual. Graduation is in two weeks and we're just

trying to tie up the loose ends."

Something about her answer made Lorne turn and look at Eti. "Is there

something wrong?"

"Wrong? What could be wrong?" Eti continued setting the table, almost

knocking over a glass of water.

"You seem distracted. I trust your grades are okay?"

"They couldn't be better! Well, the "B" I got in calculus could have

been better, but I'm happy with it."

"Then what's the problem, Peaches?"

Eti sat at the table. "I had a little run-in with Darryl Hill today.

He likes me."

"I see. Anything you want to talk about?"

"He wants me to leave the guy I'm seeing now and start a relationship

with him." Etienne looked up at her father, a glint of amusement in her

hazel eyes.

"Does he, now? What did you tell him?"

"Told him I'm happy with my life right now."

"Why so glum, then?"

"Darryl's cute and I really do like him. He just seems so...

childish."

Alarms started flashing in Lorne's mind. "Childish, eh? As compared to

what?"

The young woman blinked in momentary confusion. "Well, compared to

you."

"Do you think that's fair? You're not giving the boy a chance to prove

himself."

In his heart, however, Lorne was hoping Darryl would continue to fail in

his attempts to win Eti's heart - a thought which surprised him.

"You're right. It probably isn't fair to him. You told me a long time

ago once I decided, I should stick to it. I've decided you are all I

need."

"I can truly appreciate it. What if you're wrong?"

"If I'm wrong, then it's something I'll have to live with - and I would

have learned some thing." Eti locked her gaze onto her father's handsome

face. "Are you suggesting I give Darryl a chance to make me happy?"

"I'm suggesting you should think over all the options, that's all. What

you do about it is entirely up to you, dear. Let's eat."

Dinner progressed at an unusually slow and quiet pace. During the meal,

Lorne stole glances in Eti's direction, watching the battle being waged

inside her. It tore him, too, in some places; Lorne didn't want to lose

her, but he did not want to hinder her search for happiness.

* * *

Eti stepped into the shower and tried to relax as the hot needles of

water first stung, then soothed her tense muscles. Hair, once carefully

styled earlier in the day, became limp strands of ebony as she immersed

herself in the refreshing stream. She sighed as the wet warmth found its

way to every part of her body, all the while thinking how unfair life could

be.

Reaching for the soap, she quickly worked up lather while wishing she

could wash away her confusion this easily. Leaning against the wall,

Etienne allowed herself to relax even further, her hands absently massaging

her breasts, her nipples instantly responding to her touch. As the water

streamed along the shape of her body, Eti tried to conjure Darryl's image

in her mind, imagining his hands on her breasts, his lips on hers.

She allowed a hand to part her inner folds to massage the ache running

along the hardening shaft of her clit, the image in her mind becoming

vivid. Oh, yes, she could easily imagine Darryl doing this to her, melting

the core of her being. Again, in her mind, Darryl broke the kiss and she

opened her eyes to look at him.

Eti found her father looking back at her. The daydream dissolved,

leaving reality - and some rapidly cooling water - in its place. Etienne

knew what she had to do. Without bothering to dry off, Eti quickly left

her bedroom, a trail of damp footprints in her wake. Reaching her father's

room, she looked in and found him sitting on the bed reading.

Lorne looked up from the sheaf of papers, surprised to find a very damp

- and very perturbed - Etienne standing not two feet away. Keeping his

surprise hidden behind a mask of calm, Lorne spoke.

"No towel in your bathroom?", nodding at the droplets of water

glistening on her belly.

Eti instinctively looked at herself a moment of confusion crossing her

face before her head snapped up, resuming her piercing gaze. "I was just

in the shower."

Lorne felt a bubble of laughter welling inside him. "So I see."

Etienne ignored the remark and continued. "I was daydreaming about

Darryl. In my daydream, he was touching and kissing me. When I opened my

eyes, it wasn't Darryl - it was you."

"So?" Lorne prompted when his daughter fell silent.

Eti sat next to him on the bed, placing her damp head on his shoulder.

"I realized it's you I really want. Darryl's probably a great guy - but

I'm just not interested."

As Eti snuggled against him, Lorne knew one of his fears was coming to

the front. One thing he had considered a problem (of sorts) was spoiling

his daughter with his love and affection. For him, the intimacy found in a

relationship was an old hat, not so for his young daughter.

Eti looked up at her father, noticing his silence. "Dad?"

"Hmm?"

"Is something wrong? You seem a little distant."

"Just thinking, Peaches."

"Good things, I hope," she replied, her hand finding his dormant

maleness and began to awaken it.

At her touch, Lorne shifted his position to allow her better access.

Over the last few months, he had been lying to himself, knowing he needed

to love Etienne in every way possible - and denying it at every turn. As

she massaged him to full erection, he knew further denial and resistance

would be useless.

"Lie back, man of mine," Eti whispered. Obediently, Lorne stretched out

on the bed while Eti freed his cock, feeling the softness of her hand

against his hot flesh.

"So proud and majestic," she said. Etienne held her father's maleness

in her fist, drawing the silky skin up over the bulbous head and releasing

it. Smoothly, Eti lowered her mouth to him and licked her tongue across

the head, collecting the drop of clear dew which had appeared there.

Lorne groaned softly as Eti's tongue roamed lazily along the veined

shaft of his manhood, shivering as she found yet another sensitive spot.

With each stroke of her hand, his resistance melted away; with each touch

of her tongue, his love for her grew.

Eti took half his length into her mouth easily, savoring the salty taste

and feeling the tremors along the shaft. She allowed herself an inward

smile. It wouldn't take long to get her loving father to fountain his

seed. Eti let her teeth scrape along his quivering tool teasingly and was

rewarded with a strained gasp. Taking a deep breath, she began to work his

cock in earnest, increasing her speed and pressure on him. Eti caught by

him surprise, feeling his cock swell suddenly.

Lorne felt the swelling and the gut-wrenching feeling of impending

ejaculation simultaneously. He wanted to explode in Eti's mouth and,

while, he didn't, wanting the insane feeling to last forever. Lorne's

breath came in great gulps as he tried to ward off the inevitable - and

failed.

Etienne moaned as the first flows of his seed poured into her mouth,

warm and musky. She swallowed quickly to make room for the next spurt,

finding herself unable to keep up. So she allowed her mouth to fill with

the slick fluid, consuming it at her leisure as Lorne gave in to his

orgasm.

Lorne was barely aware of Eti removing her mouth from him, raising his

head enough to see her while mounting his semi-erect tool. His initial

orgasm left him feeling strangely weak and helpless and he could only watch

as the knob of his maleness disappeared into the folds of her slit,

followed by the full length of his shaft.

"Ahhh," Eti moaned. Now fully seated on him, she paused for a moment

feeling the tingle of excitement flow through her at being filled with him

- though he has not as hard as he was a moment ago. "However," she

thought, "that will soon change!" Bracing herself with her arms against his

chest, she settled into a rhythm allowing her to slide along his cock, now

slick with her own juices - but not allowing it to fall from the grasping

muscles of her vagina.

"Oh, you feel so good inside me," she said, picking up speed. Infused

with passion, Eti felt the heat at her center like a glowing coal.

"Feels... so... good," she grunted, punctuating each word with hard,

downward thrusts of her pelvis. Eti could feel him stiffening inside her,

spreading her walls with his thickness. Her hips undulating with snakelike

smoothness, she availed herself of his manhood, delighting in the pleasure

of pleasing him. Eti could feel Lorne trying to replace her motion with

one of his own and she looked down at him.

"Oh, no, my love! Just be still and let me love you. I need this so

much!" Her voice trailed off as an orgasm spread through her, leaving a

gentle comfort in its wake. It also left her wanting more of the elusive

feeling. Etienne continued to ride him as tiny ripples of pleasure

continued to flow through her, the precursors of an orgasm to end all

orgasms.

It hit her like a punch, stopping her dead in her tracks. Lorne could

feel the tremendous ripples that ran along her inner muscles. Hot liquid

splashed at the junction of their bodies as her pussy clamped down on him.

"NO! I'm not ready!" she screamed, much too late. It consumed her easily,

leaving no nerve untouched until, spent, she collapsed onto him, still

trembling in the aftermath. When she felt Lorne's arms surround her, Eti

knew she had taken on too much.

Lorne lifted and turned Eti easily. With her legs wrapped high around

his waist, he began to move inside her. The incredible slickness of her

sheath made his passage into her center easy and effortless. His cock felt

as if it were six inches in diameter and harder than granite as he plunged

into her deeply.

"My turn now, darling," he said. Lorne penetrated her deeply again as

the pressure wave built inside him, burning him with its intensity as he

spilled his love into her.

"Oh! Yes!" Eti cried out as Lorne filled her, Passion's fire searing

her nerve endings. Again pushed over the precipice, her orgasm flowed over

her relentlessly, electrifying her very soul. Locked together, father and

daughter moved along the same path, each lost in their separate feelings.

Yet, both knew their joining wasn't limited to just the physical. Lorne

could sense Etienne's joy, sharp and fresh in his mind as if it were his

own. It washed over and soothed him, carrying away any doubts he had about

the rightness or wrongness of their love. Oh, yes, he could love her fully

and in every way possible.

Lorne withdrew from her slowly, relishing the feeling. Etienne reached

up and touched his face with a hand which trembled slightly. "I love you,

Dad."

"I love you, too, Peaches," he replied as his daughter snuggled close to

him. Instantly, Etienne was happily asleep - and snoring lightly. Lorne

allowed himself a wry grin while feeling very good about himself and their

relationship.

Part II, Chapter Four

Graduation day. Eti paced the living room nervously while an amused

Lorne looked on. "Will you sit for a moment? You're starting to make me

tired!"

Eti came to a halt and looked at her father. "I'm sorry, Dad. I don't

know why I'm so edgy. It's just another day."

"Well, you don't graduate from high school every day, but I know what

you mean." Lorne smiled. "Hell, I was so nervous the day I graduated I

forgot to put a belt on. Never noticed it until they called my name."

"What happened?"

"I got up and started across the stage, feeling the butterflies in my

stomach and knowing your grandparents were out there in the audience

watching me. As the principal handed me my diploma, my pants fell down!"

Eti smothered a laugh. "You must have been terribly embarrassed."

"Embarrassed? An understatement, my dear; believe me. They still talk

about it at the class reunions."

Lorne looked at his watch. "Okay, Peaches - time to go!"

* * *

"...really going to miss those guys," Eti was saying as she climbed out

of the car.

"Well, you'll see them again at the first class reunion," Lorne replied

as he looked up the street.

Etienne noticed it and asked, "What are you looking for?"

"Huh? Oh, nothing. Come on, I've got something for you."

"I hope it isn't a party - I thought we agreed not to have one!"

"No, not a party, but it's important. Come on!" Lorne opened the door

for Eti stopping only to take another look up and down the street before

following.

Once inside, he led Eti to the patio and handed her a small package.

"Here you go - the first present."

Etienne felt her eyes fill with tears. "You didn't have to get me

anything!", she said, fumbling at the wrapping paper. Seeing her

difficulty, Lorne took it from her and exposed the long, black velvet case.

Eti opened the lid, revealing a gold tennis bracelet, encrusted with

diamonds and emeralds. Her eyes went wide with surprise.

"It's beautiful!" she exclaimed. "I've always wanted one!"

"I remembered," Lorne replied, feeling a lump in his throat. "Here, let

me put it on," fastening the bracelet around her wrist. "Now for gift

number two." Reaching into another pocket, he produced another wrapped box.

"What's this?"

Lorne flashed her a smug look. "Open it and find out."

Eti was puzzled, wondering what it could be. She made quick work of the

wrapping paper and opened the box. Her puzzled look deepened.

"A nameplate? I don't get it."

"Keep looking; there's something else there."

Eti removed the nameplate and found a square of plastic which not only

had her name on it, but also included a picture of her. "This is an ID

card from Carlton... " Realization dawned on her. "You got me a job!

But, how..."

"Getting you the job was easy - getting the picture wasn't. You start

in three weeks for the systems administration department. You'll have to

work hard, but I know you can handle it."

Eti hugged her father, the tears freely flowing down her cheeks. "I

don't know how to thank you for all of this."

"Hey, what are fathers for?" Lorne was saying just as the doorbell rang.

"I'll get it."

As Lorne went to answer the door, Eti felt so much love for him as the

sun reflected its light off the polished gold bracelet. Hearing her

father's footsteps, she looked up.

"Who was it?" she asked.

"Just a delivery. You wanna see what came?"

Hand in hand, the two walked around the outside of the house. As they

rounded the last corner, Eti stopped dead in her tracks as she took in the

sight of the new car parked in the driveway.

"I figured since you have a new job, you needed a new car to get you

there."

* * *

Etienne grimaced as Lorne drove into her, the pleasure/pain sweeping

through her. Her hands were claws on his back, raising little welts. In a

distant corner of her mind, she somehow knew no other man could ever make

her feel this way. It felt so right, yet deliciously sinful! The young
woman allowed herself to be turned into yet another position and felt the

stabbing pressure of Lorne's entrance. She sighed as the thick shaft

spread her wide, her juices easing its passage into her nether regions.

"You okay, babe?"

"Mm, oh, yes. Perfect."

Satisfied, Lorne resumed his thrusts inside her. He loved the way her

vagina clung to him, feeling the coarseness of her pubic hairs as they

scraped along the exposed portions of his penis. Lorne lifted her legs

higher and plunged deeper into her warmth, feeling a trickle of juice

splashing against his sac as she came again. Lorne could feel the

tightness in him and his brow furrowed in concentration as his increased

his speed inside her, hammering at her sex.

"Ooh, yes! You're getting harder inside me. Fill me, lover! Give it

to me!"

He gave one last, deep thrust into his daughter, crying out as his seed

flowed into her. Smooth strokes became jerky ones as he emptied his love

into her in long, hot spurts that sent chills through him that ran from

head to toe.

Spent and softening inside her, Lorne arranged their bodies for comfort

as Eti showered him with soft kisses, still grinding her sex against him.

"Dad?"

"Yes, Eti?"

"I love you. You make me feel so alive when we make love like this."

Lorne felt a warm glow spread through him at her words. "I love you

too, Peaches," he answered, holding her closer. "Are you happy?"

"Am I?! I wish I could tell you how I feel right now. There aren't any

words to describe it."

Lorne tilted his head back and looked into her hazel eyes and saw the

truth of her words. "I know what you mean. I never thought I'd be happy

again. You've changed all of that." He laughed. "You've changed me."

Eti cuddled against him as his now cooling sperm continued to seep from

her. "Changed you? How?"

Lorne's smile widened. "If someone had told me six months ago that I'd

be lying here feeling wonderful after making love to you, I would have

throttled them." He shrugged. "Nevertheless, here I am. I do know one

thing, though."

"What's that?"

"If I didn't love you, none of this would have ever happened."

"You have any regrets?"

"Regrets? Only that I didn't to this before now! You've made me

realize I had been neglecting your needs and my own."

"You just didn't do this for my sake?" she asked.

"Hell, no! Well, maybe. . . I guess something inside me knew I'd been

without love and happiness for so long. It wasn't until after the party I

had to confess that I missed not having someone to love." He frowned.

"That didn't come out right, did it?"

Eti laughed softly. "Don't worry. I know what you meant. However, I

did notice something."

"What might that be?"

"You were having the time of your life." Unbidden, a burst of laughter

escaped from Etienne.

"What's so funny?"

"You should have seen the look on your face when Geoff..."

Lorne felt the burn of embarrassment flood his face, thankful for his

dark coloring and the dim light in the room. "Oh, that."

"I didn't know you were that kinky."

"I'm not!" he protested. "I was just as surprised as you were!

Although, I have to admit it felt pretty good." Lorne sat up.

"Hey! What about you! You and Kymber looked pretty cozy when we came

in."

It was Eti's turn to be thankful for the low light. "Ah, well..." she

started, realizing she didn't have an answer for him.

"I thought so. You think I'm kinky. . ." Lorne feigned being indignant.

"The pot calls the kettle black."

Silence enveloped them as they took stock of the events which had

brought them to this point. Lorne felt better about things now that he'd

accepted this new way of life. His fears of somehow stifling Eti were

unfounded, another thing his mind could put to rest.

Etienne knew she had no regrets, echoing her father's sentiment that

this should have happened way before it did. "Still," she thought, "Things

happen when they're supposed to." Through incest, Eti had learned of the

strength and depths of her own ability to love and be loved. Before all of

this, the man lying next to her was just her father. Now, she realized, he

was much more than that. Knowing she was only seeing the tip of the

iceberg that was her father, she felt great comfort in knowing there was

more to learn.

As sleep claimed her, Eti knew life was good, and getting better.

ETIENNE: THE BEST OF EVERYTHING

Part III, Chapter One

Pressure, friction, motion, anxiety, calm. One moment, fullness, the

next, emptiness. Etienne Williams experienced all these sensations as the

hard penis invaded her body again, restoring the feeling of fullness. She

held her breath as her weight nearly doubled, pressed into the firm but

yielding mattress as the man above her increased his movement inside her.

Wet, slurping sounds mingled with their breathing adding their special

arousal factors to the heavy, heady scents generated during lovemaking.

Eti sighed with contentment as the thick, hard cock filled her

completely, feeling the engorged head collide with the entrance of her

womb. The man's mouth captured an erect nipple, sending another pleasurable

sensation through her to be added to those already present. The young
woman added her own movements to those of the man, thrusting her hips

upward to meet his, causing him to grunt in appreciation.

The man's strokes were getting longer and faster, the force of his body

meeting hers caused her full breasts to move in perfect counterpoint to his

thrusts. Eti lifted her shapely legs higher, to give the man greater

access to her sweltering sex. "Soon," she thought. "It's got to be soon!"

as her senses were becoming overloaded, her body literally rebounding from

the bedding, only to be met by the man's savage thrusts, their bodies

slapping together wetly.

More friction, the woman felt more heat as she felt a very familiar

tingling. A deep thrust by the man, causing the tingling to increase

twofold. Another long, deep, thrust - the feeling quadrupled and her eyes

closed tightly in anticipation of what was to happen next.

The man's strokes, once sure and steady, were becoming erratic as his

thick tool grew larger inside her. Her own sex was already contracting

sporadically, sending rippling waves of moist flesh against the smooth

hardness inside her. A white hot, intense explosion ripped through her,

causing her inner muscles to clamp down tightly on the invading meat.

Darkness also clamped down on her, her breathing barely noticeable. Then

she felt the first spurts of the man's seed, hot and sticky inside her.

Etienne floated on the edge of consciousness as the man hammered his

spurting cock into her as if he could get further into her body. The

frantic pounding sensation triggered another release somewhere deep inside

her, further pushing down the veil of darkness, causing her to shake as if

electrocuted.

Eti could hear low keening - hers? - as she flooded the man's shaft

with her own love offering, her overheated sex clamping down on him

repeatedly. Another contraction, another splash of juices to mix with his

as, finally, the intensity began to subside, leaving her with a drained,

tingly feeling. The man's last spurts of semen flowed into her as he

collapsed against her, breathing heavily.

"You know, " she said, her voice cracking slightly, "You should really

think about bottling this. We would be rich beyond our dreams!" The man
propped himself up on one elbow, looking down at her smiling face.

Laughing, he replied "There wouldn't be much to sell - you'd buy it all

up for yourself."

"That's true," she admitted, settling into the warm, fuzzy feeling, all

that remained of her orgasm. Eti could feel the man's now-soft cock fall

out of her, releasing a slow tricking of semen that flowed from her gaping

vagina, following the crack of her firm bottom.

With a deft movement, Lorne Williams flipped over onto his back beside

his daughter. "I don't know about you, but I could use something to eat."

Eti slapped her father playfully. "Like you haven't had enough to eat

already!" She sat up, causing her full breasts to stand out, the nipples

still hard. She turned and looked lovingly at her father as he stretched,

his dormant maleness lying across the crease where leg met the abdomen.

"Come on, lazy one," she said with mock sternest. "We have to get

cleaned up. Kymber's flight will be arriving soon." Lorne watched

appreciatively as Eti went to the bathroom to start the shower. He

delighted in seeing the very shapely curves of her body and wondered, for

the millionth time, how he could be so lucky to have a daughter like her.

Hearing the running water, he got up with reluctance, not wanting the

moment to end.

Etienne was already in the shower, the hot, soapy water flowing over her

medium brown skin. As he joined her, Lorne again took stock of his Nubian

goddess, noting how a trail of bubbles curled under one breast and traveled

down her side to the swell of her hips. Lorne could feel himself becoming

aroused again as Etienne turned to soap his chest.

Feeling his returning erection against her tummy, Eti looked down. "Oh,

no! We don't have time for this, my friend!" she said to his maleness as

Lorne grew longer and harder. She looked back at her father, grinning.

"I can't help it if he likes you," Lorne complained half heartedly while

reaching for the soap. The slippery bar to fell from its holder, clunking

loudly against the tub before coming to rest behind Eti.

"I got it," she said. As she turned and bent over to retrieve the

errant soap, she realized her mistake. Before she could stand, she felt

the bulbous head of his cock split her still-swollen labia. A gasp escaped

her lips as Lorne plunged half his length into her, spreading her wide

again. Instinct caused her to push back against his advance, again filling

her.

"We... don't... have... time..." she said as Lorne worked himself

into her, holding her hips steady. That warm, golden feeling she'd come to

love over the last three years replaced any further protests.

The water stung Lorne's chest and splashed onto Eti's upturned bottom,

washing away the last of the soap. He spread her cheeks, allowing him to

view his thickness as he plunged into his daughter. He marveled at the

contrast of their skin color, Lorne being darker than his 19-year-old

partner. Lorne was deep into the sensations offered by the young woman's

body, thrusting easily into her sex when the water suddenly turned cold,

shocking him into ejaculating. The warmth of Eti's love sheath, and the

brisk cold of the water battled for supremacy as he emptied himself into

her.

Holding on to the towel bar, Eti could feel her father inside her,

giving her the sweetest of feelings, when the water went cold. The sudden

change in temperature caused her slippery nest to contract hard around him,

the splashing sounds of her release getting lost in the sounds of running

water. She pushed back hard against him, grinding her hips in time with

his thrusts, as he released his seed into her.

As the water grew colder, causing her to shiver, Eti leaned forward and

shut off the water, Lorne's half-erect cock slipping out of her, still

spasming. She turned at looked at the handsome, Black scientist. "You're

insatiable and I love you! I hope we're not late."

Lorne leaned forward and placed his mouth on hers, cutting off any

further comments. Breaking the deep kiss, Lorne said, "Me, too, but it was

worth it!"

Lorne and Etienne stepped from the shower into the relative warmth of

the bathroom and dried each other off. Eti's nipples continued to stand

out as Lorne dried her breasts and worked his way down. She stood

contentedly, feeling his strong hands against her as he dried her. One

hand spent a little extra time at the triangle of black hair nestled

between her legs, while the other probed its way into the crevice of her

firm bottom. She trembled slightly as the towel brushed across her

puckered back hole, adding to the delicious feelings already present.

Grabbing her towel, she returned the favor with an appreciative smile on

her lovely features. Her hazel brown eyes, feasted upon her father's

muscular chest, idly noting that even at 43, he was in remarkable shape.

She made her way down his flat stomach to his maleness, again dormant and

gently dried his testes, feeling their weight in her hands. Lust tempted

Eti to give the large, mushroom-shaped head of his cock a suck but knew she

wouldn't stop there - and they had a plane to meet.

Part III, Chapter Two

Sighing, she stood and followed her father out of the bathroom. "I'll

be ready in 15 minutes, Dad," she called to him. Lorne nodded in reply,

searching his closet for something to wear. As she padded down the hallway

to her own room, she remembered the reason which had brought her to his

room in the first place. She had something to tell him, something very

important - but Eti had forgotten it in a sweet rush of passion. Not that

it was unwelcome, she thought with a smile - her father was a fantastic

lover. For the last three years, she'd known no one else but him. She had

no regrets at all, only pure love for him.

Standing naked before the full length mirror, she admired her shapely

body, noting her large, pendulous breasts and how the dark circles of her

areola stood out against the smooth, mocha skin surrounding it. Slightly

erect, her nipples stood out proudly and she ran a finger lightly across

one, finding it still very much sensitive. She continued to examine her

body, her eyes coming to rest on her flat tummy. Eti replaced the smile on

her face momentarily with a slight frown, stark reality replacing the cozy,

loving feelings. How was she going to tell her father, her lover, that she

was pregnant?

When Eti's period failed to show up as scheduled, she wasn't worried at

first; being a day late wasn't unusual for her. She religiously took her

birth control pills and any thoughts of becoming pregnant didn't concern

her. However, after a week had gone by, she began to worry and had stopped

at a drug store on the way home from work and picked up a pregnancy test

kit. Etienne had placed the kit on her dressing table, debating whether to

use it.

"Maybe I just miscalculated," she thought, glancing up at the calendar

adorning one wall. One date stood out, enclosed in a bold, red circle, an

apt reminder of when she was to begin her cycle. Chasing away her

indecisive thoughts, she'd grabbed the kit and headed for the bathroom.

After following the instructions, she waited.

The bright blue indicator that greeted her minutes later sent mixed

emotions flowing through her. "I'm pregnant!" part of her rejoiced. The

more skeptical side of her asked, "How? We didn't miss a pill!" The cool,

logical side of her provided the obvious answer - her pills failed to do

their appointed task.

Eti blinked, bringing her back from her memories. She sighed, a mixture

of happiness and uneasiness coursing along her nervous system. After

coming to terms with her condition, she had gone to tell her father, well,

he was going to be a father. The soon-to-be mother laughed at the

silliness that thought invoked, as she remembered going into his room and

shaking him awake. She had been prepared to tell him - but her father had

other ideas. As he pleasured her, all thoughts of talking to him had left,

replaced by the delicious feelings he always brought out in her. Eti

smiled again and hurried to get dressed, finally deciding to tell him on

the way to the airport.

Part III, Chapter Three

Kymber Levin sat looking out the tiny window of the jet as it prepared

to land, thinking of how good it would be to see Lorne and Eti Williams

again. She hadn't seen them since her father's funeral, having left

immediately afterwards to live with her aunt in Seattle. Tears welled up

in her eyes as she remembered the horrible nightmare. The phone call from

the police. A voice informing her of the accident, a head on collision.

Her frantic call to Lorne Williams, the only person she could think of to

call and the ride to the hospital.

Then there was the disorienting feeling as the doctor told her the bad

news. She had fainted, barely hearing her words, "I'm so very sorry, Ms.

Levin. We did all we could."

The bump of the giant jetliner landing shook Kymber out of her painful

memories as the attendants reminded everyone to stay seated. Wiping her

eyes, she gathered her things and exited the plane into the terminal,

searching for a familiar face in the sea of humanity.

* * *

Lorne drove to the airport quickly but carefully, chiding himself on

making love to Eti again, knowing they'd be late. If he hadn't learned

anything over the last three years, it was resisting her charm was

something at which he wasn't very good. After arriving at the airport and

parking the car, Eti and Lorne headed toward the arrival gate as fast as

the growing throng would allow. Etienne spotted Kymber first and called

out to her long time friend. "Kymber! Over here!" called Eti, waving her

hands.

Kymber Levin turned toward the sound of her name. Upon seeing Eti and

Lorne, she waved back and went to meet them.

Etienne greeted her long time friend with a hug pausing only to plant a

kiss on her cheek. "It's good to have you back, " she said while holding

the beautiful redhead at arms length.

"It's good to be back," she admitted. Kymber turned to embrace Lorne.

"It's good to see you, too, Lorne!"

Lorne gave the lithe woman a hug that was more friendly than fatherly.

Although he had worked with her late father, his knowledge of her was more

than just a casual one. As they went to the baggage area, Lorne smiled at

his memories of Kymber Levin. The aftermath of the now-legendary party had

changed their lives forever, establishing an intimacy before which he'd

never experienced.

Admittedly, he missed his friend and colleague, but the satisfaction of

knowing Kymber would be very well taken care of replaced his feelings of

loss. Absently taking the bags off the conveyor, the sound of Eti's

melodious voice interrupted Lorne's thoughts.

"We've got the spare room all set up for you," she was saying. "You

won't have to worry about a thing."

Lorne smiled at his daughter's enthusiasm and knew her joy matched his

own. Geoff had left Kymber very well provided for, so money wasn't a

problem. According to the letter he'd received two weeks earlier, Kymber

wasn't happy in Seattle and had asked Lorne if she could move in with them.

"You and Eti are the only family I need right now," her words had said. He

replied to her, telling her they would be pleased to have her and, after

clearing it with her aunt, they made the move.

They filled the trip home with innocent chatter as the two young women

brought each other up to date. Sparing a glance at Etienne, he thought he

noticed something different about her but could not put his finger on it.

Eti, turned almost completely in her seat and facing Kymber, didn't notice

his furtive looks. He dismissed the thought, concentrating on his driving.

Minutes later, he pulled into the driveway. Eti and Kymber headed

toward the house, leaving him to tackle the luggage. Hands on his hips, he

cleared his voice and called out to them. "Excuse me! Ladies?"

The two women stopped in mid conversation and looked back at him. Lorne

noticed with some amusement both had identical confused looks on their

faces.

"These bags aren't going to move by themselves," he admonished.

Mumbling apologies, they came back to take some smaller bags as Lorne

wrestled with the largest ones. Once inside, he gratefully let the heavy

items drop and turned to his charges.

"Eti, show Kymber her room; I'll bring the bags up in a moment," he said

while crossing to the answering machine. After listening to the message,

he went to the bottom of the stairs.

"Eti? Kymber?" he called, opening the door. "I've got to go to the

office for a little while. Don't wait for me to have dinner." He barely

heard the response as the door closed behind him.

* * *

Hearing the car start and drive away, Etienne turned to Kymber, beaming.

"Let's get you settled in first - then we can talk," she said. Kymber

agreed; she had a million questions to ask Eti. The two women busied

themselves with storing Kymber's belongings, limiting their conversation to

things like the color of a dress while exchanging opinions on the latest

styles. An hour later, everything was in place and Kymber flopped down

across the bed. Between the long flight and getting the room set up,

Kymber was exhausted. However, it didn't curb her curiosity.

"So, are you and your father still, uh, you know?" she asked.

Etienne looked into Kymber's emerald green eyes as she spoke. "Yes,

we're still lovers. He's just so good for me that I don't bother with the

other men."

"Why not?"

"What could they offer me that he can't? I mean, look around you. I

have the best of everything!"

Kymber had to agree with this. This wasn't the same house they had

lived in for many years; Lorne, having assumed her father's position, had

decided that they needed a home that matched their new status. If the rest

of the house is as beautiful as this room, she thought, it must really be

something. She was drawn back to Eti, who was still talking.

"I have a job and love and happiness in my life. Daddy is so attentive

and not just in bed." Eti's look of contentment spoke volumes. "We go

places and do things we never had time to do before. Why waste my time on

some inexperienced guy, never knowing if I can love or trust him? No, all

we need is each other." Eti reached down and touched her friend's hand.

"Oh, and you, if you're willing."

Surprise took Kymber aback momentarily, not completely understanding

what Eti was saying. Eti saw the confusion written across her friend's

creamy complexion and offered an explanation.

"Daddy and I talked about this last week. Let's face it. You aren't

exactly strangers to each other."

Kymber nodded, understanding the reference.

Etienne continued. "I guess what I'm trying to say is we love you very

much and, speaking for both of us, we'd be happy if you'd join our little

family."

This was more than the young woman could have ever hoped for! She could

feel the tears beginning to fall down her cheeks. "I don't know what to

say. . .," she stammered.

Eti sat next to Kymber and held her. "Just say yes'," she said, lifting

Kymber's chin and kissing her gently.

Kymber returned the kiss, her tongue darting into the other woman's

inviting mouth. A new feeling of fresh excitement replaced her fatigue as

she allowed herself to be pressed onto the bed. Their kisses became more

intense as their hands started to explore each other's bodies.

"I've missed you," murmured Eti, her hands deftly unbuttoning Kymber's

blouse to expose her firm, full breasts. Kymber could only lay back as Eti

undid the lacy material of her bra, freeing the twin globes of flesh, her

nipples hardening as the cool air of the room brushed across them - only to

be replaced by the warm wetness of Eti's mouth. Kymber gasped as the other

woman's tongue flicked across the turgid button of flesh.

Eti relished the feel of Kymber's nipple between her lips, savoring the

salty taste of the other woman's skin, feeling her own passions stirring as

she immersed herself in the sweet flesh.

The two women paused just long enough to completely shed their

restrictive clothing. Once naked, Eti gathered Kymber into her arms,

nibbling on the hot redhead's delicately shaped earlobe. As Eti's warm,

moist breath sent more chills through her, Kymber busied herself with

teasing Eti's large nipples until they were both quite erect and begging

for more attention.

The afternoon sunlight bathed the two lovers with its warmth as the room

quickly filled with the sounds of their passion. Kymber positioned her

bottom over Etienne's open mouth feeling a sharp thrill coursing through

her as she felt the first probing of the other's tongue. Eti lapped at the

swelling pussy lips, her tongue parting the shock of red pubic hair

covering Kymber's hidden entrance to flick teasingly across the sensitive

clitoral bud, causing Kymber's knees to buckle slightly. Giving in to the

sensations offered by her lifelong friend, Kymber lowered her own mouth to

Eti's dark bush to capture the large clitoris protruding prominently from

between the shrouded cunt lips, feeling her own excitement increase as she

captured it, feeling it grow harder as her tongue flew over the exposed

head.

They sucked at each other with urgency as each remembered the little

things which pleased the other. As Eti buried her tongue deeply into the

gyrating flesh above her, she reached around and slowly inserted her

slender finger into Kymber's ass while filling her dripping pussy with her

thumb, smiling inwardly as she felt her friend's twin orifices spasm at the

sudden invasion, causing the lust-filled woman to gasp.

Kymber ground her overheated sex onto Eti face as she went careening

into her first orgasm, drenching the other woman's face with hot liquid.

"Oh, yes! Yes!", she cried out as Eti's busy fingers coaxed another nerve

shattering wave of pleasure out of her. "Oh, take it, take it all!"

Etienne paused for a moment to catch her breath, giving Kymber the

opening she was looking for to return the favor as she recaptured Eti's

clit, sucking on it hard. Her head moved furiously as she licked and

nibbled at Eti's steaming flesh, causing the darker woman's hips to buck

uncontrollably.

"This... is... oh, my... so... oh, good!" stammered Eti as Kymber

brought her to the brink and shoved her over, the intense waves of pleasure

crashing over her repeatedly. As Eti gushed stream after stream of love

juice, Kymber quickly inserted two fingers inside the orgasming woman,

plunging them in and out of her just as fast as she could. Etienne

rewarded Kymber with another shower of juices, feeling them flow hotly over

her hand.

Kymber rolled off an exhausted Eti, who was still trembling slightly in

the aftershocks of orgasm and lay next to her, stopping along the way to

suck a nipple between her lips and causing another bout of trembling.

Kymber leaned over and kissed Eti deeply.

"You don't know how much I've missed you," she whispered to Eti, who was

smiling even as she drifted off to sleep. Finding herself just as drained,

Kymber snuggled up next to Etienne, thinking "It's good to be home. . . "

* * *

It was late when Lorne returned home. Upon entering the house, he

immediately noticed how quiet it was. Concerned, he went looking for his

daughter and friend. After checking the pool and kitchen, he went upstairs

to Etienne's room - and found it empty. The scientist scratched his head,

wondering where they could have gone, since Eti's car was still in the

garage. On a hunch, he went to Kymber's room. Peeking into the open

doorway, the sight of the two naked, sleeping women greeted him.

Obviously, they had found something to do while he was gone. Lorne

found it exciting seeing them entwined together, feeling his cock begin to

stir. Sighing, he covered the sleeping beauties and left the room, closing

the door gently behind him.

Part III, Chapter Four

Eti woke up finding herself unable to move. Only partially aware of her

surroundings, she tried to move the weight pressing against her, a moment

of panic running through her as the weight shifted against her.

Cautiously, she opened her eyes, blinking against the harsh sunlight

streaming into the room and her panic deepened.

"Where am I?" she asked herself. "This isn't my room..." Realization

dawned on her and she looked to her right and saw Kymber dozing peacefully,

her arms draped across Eti's mid-section. The panic subsided as she

recalled the events of - last night? Clearing the last dregs of sleep from

her brain, she gingerly moved Kymber's arm, causing her to stir slightly

and rose from the bed to look at the clock.

"Ten in the morning," she mumbled to herself as she stretched. "Good

thing today's Saturday." Now fully awake, Eti went to awaken her friend.

"Hey," she called gently, not wanting to startle her. "Time to get up,

lazy." No response came from the prone beauty, so she shook her. "Kymber?"

Kymber greeted her with a muffled grunt, so she shook her harder.

"Kymber! Wake up!" This time, she could hear the young woman mutter,

"Yeah, yeah. I'm up." Satisfied, Eti left her friend's side and looked

around the room, spotting the remaining unpacked baggage. As Eti padded to

the bathroom, she could hear Kymber sitting up.

"Ooh, what time is it?" asked the groggy redhead as she stood, her legs

not quite ready to hold her. "Did we sleep all night?"

"Looks like it," Eti called out over the sound of running water. "Come

on, let's get cleaned up and tell Dad the good news!"

Kymber's reflection in the mirror frowned back at her. "News? What...

oh. THAT news. Eti?"

"Huh?" came the reply.

"Thanks for caring."

As Kymber entered the bathroom, Eti playfully threw a towel at her. "We

figured that, well, after all that's happened, you should be happy again."

She looked into Kymber emerald green eyes. "Besides, we love you, Kymmie.

Now, into the shower with you! I'll meet you downstairs in twenty

minutes."

Watching the lithe Black woman leave the room, she couldn't shake the

sudden feeling there was something different about Etienne. Not being able

to put her finger on it, she shrugged and stepped into the shower.

Part III, Chapter Five

Lorne looked up from his newspaper as Kymber and Eti bounded down the

stairs. "Well, it's about time," he said. "I was beginning to think you

two would sleep the day away. There's coffee in the kitchen if you want

it."

"Later, Dad," replied Eti. "Kymmie said yes!" Lorne looked from Eti,

who was all smile, to Kymber who looked embarrassed but positive.

Putting the paper down, he folded his hands before speaking. "We

thought about this for a long time, Kym. It was obvious to me just how

close the two of you are. I know how important you are to her." Clearing

his throat nervously, he continued.

"And, uh, there were my own feelings to think of."

Lorne remembered the night of the party and the months which followed,

privately relishing the other time he had made love to the redheaded

bombshell.

* * *

Kymber had come by looking for Etienne one evening, a week following the

now-infamous party. Lorne remembered the mixed feelings of embarrassment

and excitement as he told the incredibly beautiful young woman that Eti

wasn't home.

"I don't know when she'll be back," he had said. "Do you want to wait

for her?" he added hopefully, remembering his first experience with this

lovely creature.

Kymber was nervous. "I suppose I can wait for a little while," she

said, painfully aware of the feelings this man instilled in her.

The two of them sat across from each other, neither wanting to be the

first to speak. Finally, Lorne spoke.

"Well! I haven't seen you since the party."

This caused the young woman to look up sharply, her embarrassment

showing clearly as the blush spread quickly across her face.

"Ah, well, yeah. Dr. Williams... ," she stuttered.

"Lorne, please."

"Okay, uh, Lorne. That was really some party huh?" Kymber was dying to

tell him why she was really there.

Clearing his throat and looking around the room, Lorne nervously

replied, "Sure was. How have you been since I last saw you?" He winced

slightly, remembering the last time he saw her, he was fucking her. Hoping

to clean up his gaff, he took a deep breath and said, "Sorry, Kymber."

"That's all right, Doctor - uh, Lorne." With an easiness she didn't

feel, she climbed out on a metaphorical limb. "You were really something."

Clearly flustered, Lorne said. "Uh, yeah. Thanks."

The room grew quiet again - you could feel the tension in the air as

they tried to avoid looking at each other.

"Lorne?"

"Yes?"

"I didn't actually come over to see Eti."

"Really? Why are you here?"

"I, um, came to see you."

Lorne shifted uncomfortably in his chair and tried to hide the erection

making a tent in his pants. The thought of making love to this young
beauty again was more than he could have hoped for. He smiled back at

Kymber.

"Do I have to ask why?", he quipped, hoping they were sharing the same

thoughts.

Kymber glanced back at him, her embarrassment causing her to turn a

deeper shade of red. Although he had shifted his position in the chair,

she could still see the huge bulge of his erection straining against his

clothing. The damp heat between her legs made her squirm uncomfortably.

"This is stupid," Lorne thought and came to a decision. Standing, he

held out his hand to Kymber. "I don't think we need to say anymore, do

we?"

Excited further by the huskiness of his voice, Kymber shook her head

and, taking his hand, allowed Lorne to lead her upstairs. As she entered

the bedroom behind him, she thought "I can't believe I'm doing this!" Lorne

interrupted any further thoughts as the handsome Black doctor's lips closed

on hers, his tongue probing her mouth gently, but with an urgency which

wouldn't be denied. She inhaled his scent deeply, feeling the heat

building inside her, clinging to him tightly as his lips caressed her neck.

Kymber felt herself lifted by strong arms as Lorne carried her to the

bed. He stood over her for a moment, his coffee-black eyes locked onto

hers as he began to undress her. Kymber tingled in anticipation as he

removed her blouse and bra, massaging the firm flesh with his hands, before

peeling away her skirt. Clad only in sea-green silk panties, she watched

as Lorne removed his shirt, absently licking her lips at the sight of his

hairless chest.

Lorne undressed quickly, glad to have his swollen manhood finally free

from its cloth prison, eased himself into Kymber's open arms. Their lips

met again, turning up the heat another notch. Moving down her body, he

flicked his tongue across each nipple in turn, causing the fleshy buttons

to grow harder, before continuing down across her flat stomach. Kymber's

breathing was becoming faster as she felt his tongue slip under the

waistband of her panties. She reached down to remove them; Lorne stopped

her.

"No, don't," he whispered, pressing her back gently. He could feel the

heat of her sex through the flimsy material as he nuzzled her mound,

rubbing his face against the spreading patch of wetness there. Her scent

was musky and intoxicating as he exposed the tangle of flaming red hair,

snaking his tongue between the puffy lips. Kymber spread her long legs

wider, giving him greater access to her center as he lapped the tangy,

salty dewdrops from her, increasing the flames of passion which were

threatening to consume her.

With a smooth motion, Lorne turned himself. Placing one hand under her

bottom and lifting her, he removed the thin material surrounding her sex.

He lifted her to his mouth and drank deeply of her essence, his tongue

covering every square inch of her overheated flesh. She began thrusting

her hips against his hot mouth as he sucked her enlarged, clitoris, running

his tongue in quick circles around the sensitive head. Kymber was

breathing harder and faster as he fucked his tongue inside her, feeling his

invading flesh spreading her with its passage before returning to savage

her clit.

As Lorne drove a pair of crossed fingers into her steaming cave, Kymber

reached up, filling her hand with his throbbing erection. She pulled the

head toward her waiting mouth using her tongue to wipe the large,

crystal-clear dewdrop from the slit of his cock before clamping her mouth

around the bulbous head. Lorne gasped at the new sensation and doubled his

efforts, feeling the delicious heat and wetness of her mouth.

Kymber sucked on the spongy head of his shaft, enjoying the feel of it.

Working her way down the thick shaft, her tongue traced along the large

veins that ran the full length of him, cupping sac feeling the delightful

heaviness there. She could feel his tongue and fingers working in concert

to push her over the edge. As she came, she ground herself against him,

riding out the pleasure wave he masterfully created within her.

Lorne was having his own problems. Between Kymber's twitching spurting

love center and the maddening ache in his balls, he was beyond reason. He

slowly wiped the back of his hand across his face, wet with her copious

flow and positioned himself at her entrance.

"Yes, yes!" she cried. "Give it to me!" She punctuated her demands by

jerking her hips upwards to meet his thick shaft, giving a squeal of

delight as his cock knob split her sex. Lorne groaned in ecstasy as he

slid deep into her until he felt the entrance to her womb. Once fully

impaled, he stopped, savoring the delicious tightness that surrounded him.

He could feel the tremors that ran through the stretched inner walls

against his hot shaft. Kymber's wide green eyes were wild with lust as she

dug her fingers into his back.

"No! No! Don't stop now!" she moaned feverishly. "Finish it...

finish me!"

Lorne withdrew until just the head remained inside her before plunging

deep inside her. Feeling crazed with lust, he filled her tightness

repeatedly with long strokes that slurped obscenely with their combined

juices. He could feel Kymber bucking under him wildly as she succumbed to

her second orgasm, her eyes screwed tightly shut against the onslaught of

pleasure. Unable to withstand the incredible pressure building inside his

seed-filled sac, he rammed into her yielding flesh as his cock swelled

inside her.

A brilliant flash of white light flashed behind his eyes as he erupted

inside her, spilling his seed into her in great spurts. Each pulse sent an

intense current of pleasure through him, overloading his tortured senses as

he emptied his love into Kymber. . .

* * *

"...glad that you both feel this way. I know I'll be very happy here."

Kymber's words snapped Lorne out of his daydream. Etienne was looking at

him closely, having noticed the glazed look that fell over him a moment

ago. "What was he thinking about?" she wondered.

"Yes, well, welcome to the family!", he managed to say, his voice a

little thick. "Okay! If there's nothing else, I've got some work to do.

I'll see you two later."

Lorne Williams left the room - a bit too quick, thought Eti. Turning to

her "sister," she asked. "What do you want to do after we eat?", watching

until she heard the patio door slide closed. Before Kymber could answer,

Eti silenced her with a finger across her lips.

"There's something we have to discuss," she whispered.

Part III, Chapter Six

"You're what!" Kymber sat in the chair so hard her teeth clicked.

"Pregnant? How..." Realizing the silliness of her question, Kymber shook

her head. "Does your father know?"

Etienne had been smiling - right until that question. Sighing, she sat

on the edge of her bed. "No," she replied. "I haven't told him yet."

Kymber could see that Eti was having trouble deciding how and when she was

going to tell her father that, well, he was going to be a father.

"What are you waiting for?"

"Oh, I don't know! I don't know how he's going to react and, frankly,

I'm afraid."

Kymber moved to sit next to her. "Listen. You want me to tell him?",

she asked, knowing Eti would prefer to tell him herself - but also letting

Eti know she didn't have to face the announcement alone.

Eti smiled. "No - but thanks anyway. Hey, I appreciate the offer,

though."

"How far along are you?"

"As close as I can figure it, two months. I've got an appointment to

see Dr. Edwards on Tuesday and I suppose she'll tell me all the details

then."

"Oh, Eti! I'm so happy for you!" Kymber said as she leaned over to hug

the new mother-to-be.

Sighing, Etienne said, "Now the only thing I have to do is tell Dad."

Without warning, Eti began to giggle.

"What's so funny?"

"Oh, nothing!" More giggles. "I'm having my father's baby. Does this

mean I'm giving birth to my own brother or sister - and is he a father and

grandfather, too?" Peals of laughter erupted from Etienne and, after

thinking about it, Kymber joined in the laughter.

"So, - a giggle - are you going to tell him?"

Etienne wiped the tears from her eyes. "After dinner," she sniffed.

Regaining their composure, the two women looked at each other. And burst

out laughing...

Part III, Chapter Seven

In the yard, Lorne had just finished mowing the lawn when he heard the

hysterical laughter flowing from Etienne's room. Puzzled, he wondered what

they'd found so funny - and gave up after a few moments. He shook his

head, thinking no matter how old they got, girls would always be girls.

Putting the mower away, he went to the kitchen and poured himself a

glass of lemonade, the tangy sweetness sending a rush of coolness through

him as he drained and refilled the glass. He sat at the table and pondered

the situation.

On one side there's Etienne. Though they'd been lovers for three years,

it never failed to amaze him at how natural and right it felt, especially

since she resembled her mother in so many ways. It had taken him a while

to get used to their incestuous relationship but he managed, remembering

Eti's words to him.

"Dad, I know I could never replace Mom. I know how much she meant to

you. Nevertheless, we have each other now and, since we have this love,

things could never be wrong."

On the other side, there's Kymber. He knew that she'd need all the love

and support she could get now that Geoff was gone. Lewdly, he thought that

having two hot and desirable women around would be fun. Just the mere

thought of doing both of them had his cock stirring.

* * *

They filled dinner with the usual small talk found at most tables -

except the topics were quite different. Kymber, having spent the afternoon

unpacking and putting away stuff, was regaling Etienne with her version of

the second time she and Lorne had made love. Lorne was doing his best

ostrich impression as Eti looked at him with astonishment written on her

lovely visage.

"Dad," she said with mock sternness. "You never told me about you and

Kymber. You dirty old man!" Eti got up, taking empty plates to the sink.

"Hmpf. Let you out of my sight for one moment and what happens?" Kymber

was doing her best not to add to Lorne's plight by laughing.

"And you, young lady," Eti said, waggling a finger at her friend. "Once

wasn't enough for you, eh? I just don't know what to do with you!"

Lorne couldn't resist. "You didn't say that last night, now did you?"

Kymber blushed - a dark crimson - and Eti was speechless. "Hm," he

chuckled, "Obviously not." He ducked as a dish towel went sailing over his

head and beat a hasty retreat to the living room with Eti and Kymber hot on

his heels. Lorne came to an abrupt stop and threw up his hands. "I

surrender!"

Eti and Kymber took seats on the plush sofa while Lorne made himself

comfortable in his favorite chair. "So, ladies! What's on the agenda for

this evening? Anyone up for a movie?"

The two young women exchanged looks. "Well?" asked Kymber. "What are

you waiting for?" Eti remained silent.

Lorne looked from one to the other before asking, "What's going on?" In

the silence which followed, he watched as Kymber was gesturing frantically

in Eti's direction while the latter really looked as if she'd rather be

somewhere else.

A hint of sternness crept into his voice. "Okay, out with it. Is there

something I should know?"

"I'll say," Kymber mysteriously replied.

Etienne finally spoke. "Dad, there's something I have to tell you."

Lorne crossed his arms and waited for her to continue.

"Dad, do you love me?"

"Of course, Peaches. Why do you ask?" Lorne was beginning to get the

feeling he wasn't going to like the answer.

"I just wanted to know. That's all." Kymber rolled her eyes to look at

the ceiling.

"Now, why don't I believe you?"

Kymber jumped in. "You want me to tell him?" Etienne shook her head

vigorously.

"Tell me what?", asked Lorne, his confusion growing.

Etienne looked directly at her father. "She wants to know if I want her

to tell you... that I'm pregnant."

As if he didn't hear her, he said, "You're what?"

"Pregnant." Eti slid closer to Kymber, who put an arm around her.

Realization hit Lorne like the proverbial ton of bricks. "Pregnant.

Pregnant!? Oh, Lord..."

Kymber was smiling. "Isn't it wonderful?"

Clearly rocked by this announcement, Lorne stood and began pacing the

spacious room. His emotions were running wild, sending him careening from

one extreme to another at the speed of thought.

"Pregnant," he repeated absently. He looked up. "But, how..., I mean,

your pills..."

"They didn't work," Eti supplied, her worried expression speaking

volumes.

Lorne sat on the arm of the chair, his face reflecting the shock of

Eti's announcement. "I don't know what to say," he said with great

uncertainty. "I'm not sure how I feel right now," he confessed. "This is

a great moment, but..." He turned to face his daughter. "Honey, are you

sure?"

Eti, regaining her composure, nodded. "Yes, I'm sure. I've got an

appointment with Dr. Edwards. I hope you're not angry with me."

"Angry? No, Peaches! I'm not angry. I'm just... surprised!" Lorne

crossed to where Eti and Kymber were sitting. Kneeling, he held Eti's

hands, feeling them tremble. "However, I can't think about that right now.

There are more important matters to discuss."

"Like how I'm going to explain being pregnant to everyone, right?" As

far as anyone knew, Eti wasn't seeing anyone socially.

"Making sure that we have a healthy baby, too." Both Kymber and Eti

nodded at this. As a geneticist, Lorne was all too aware of the

possibility of genetic defects occurring. Over the last year, Lorne had

done as much research as he could on the subject of incest. One thing he

learned was incestual pregnancies did not always produce genetic

monstrosities. He even found an incest help line on the Internet and

finding their advice and support more than helpful, corresponded with them

frequently to gain useful information which eventually helped them become

the loving family they were now.

Kymber spoke. "Well! Now that it's out in the open, what can I do to

help?"

Both Lorne and Etienne smiled at Kymber. "For a start, " Eti began,

"You can go with me to the doctor's office - then we can go shopping!" As

the ladies discussed their plans, Lorne stood and looked around the room,

thinking of how pleasant having a baby in the house again would be.

"This calls for a celebration," he declared. "Where should we go and

what should we do?"

Part III, Chapter Eight

Etienne felt vulnerable as the speculum invaded her, wincing at the

discomfort as it opened her for inspection.

"Okay, that part's done," came Dr. Edwards' voice. "You can relax for

a moment."

"You know, I really hate this," Eti said, her voice tight. She tried to

adjust her position in the stirrups to make herself as comfortable as

possible.

"I know you do, dear. Now be still. I'll be done in a moment." Donning

a pair of gloves, Dr. Edwards began her internal exam. After what was an

eternity, Eti felt the hand withdraw, followed by the sound of gloves

coming off. She was relieved when Dr. Edwards removed the speculum,

leaving her strangely empty and a bit queasy.

"Well, there's no doubt that you're going to have a baby.

Congratulations are in order. Everything looks and feels fine."

Struggling to sit up, Etienne asked "How far along am I?"

"Oh, I'd say about three months, give or take a day or two. We'll know

more when the rest of the tests come back. We should schedule you for an

ultrasound in another few weeks."

Eti listened to the doctor's voice as she dressed while thinking there

was a lot to remember when you're pregnant - appointments, vitamins, diet,

exercise, the delivery date, things to do before and after... The list was

growing every day!

The doctor continued. "You've been pretty lucky not having morning

sickness, so I won't have to prescribe anything for nausea. Are there any

other questions?"

"No, I think you've answered most of them. See you in a couple of

weeks!"

After dropping Kymber off at home, Eti drove to the lab. She couldn't

help thinking about how her life was changing. Already, she could feel the

changes her body was undergoing; her breasts were fuller, heavier and much

more sensitive than usual. She thought having her father or Kymber sucking
on her nipples would be quite an experience. Eti absently patted her

stomach as if confirming the presence of the bulge growing there.

She remembered the doctor's words about how her moods may rapidly change

from one moment to the next because of the hormonal changes taking place

inside her. While sitting at a traffic light, she closed her eyes and

could somehow sense the child growing in her womb.

As she pulled into the lab's parking complex, Etienne reminded herself

that she'd have to put in for maternity leave and to leave a message with

Kathy in human relations. She allowed herself a wry grin, thinking to have

a baby sure meant filing out a lot of forms! Stepping off the elevator,

Kymber and the other women she worked with greeted Eti - and the looks on

their faces told her a certain green-eyed redhead had let the cat out of

the bag.

As they gathered around Eti to offer their congratulations, she gave

Kymber a withering stare. Kymber smiled and shrugged. "Sorry, Eti - I

just couldn't keep it to myself!" When everyone returned to their tasks,

Eti motioned Kymber into an empty office.

"Kymmie," she began, "I'm not mad - it's just that I don't want to have

to answer a lot of questions about, ahem, who the father is, if you know

what I mean." Etienne could tell by Kymber's shocked expression she hadn't

thought about that.

"Oh, no! I just forgot!"

Before the emerald-eyed beauty could start kicking herself, Eti said,

"Hey! Don't do this to yourself - no harm, no foul, okay?" She gave her

friend a quick hug. "We'll talk about it on the way home."

* * *

Eti was relaxing in the passenger seat as Kymber navigated through the

rush hour traffic. The reception at the office and plans for a baby shower

had prompted many questions about the father of the baby. Eti had done her

best to deflect most of the questions, telling her coworkers his identity

wasn't important. Eti knew her evasiveness would spark many a rumor and,

eventually, her father would hear of them.

Eti sighed, knowing her father would be concerned about these rumors -

but she thought it could work to their advantage. The people at the lab

would be so busy trying to identify the mystery father that no one would

suspect Lorne.

Kymber broke through her thinking. "Eti, I'm really sorry about this.

You know I didn't do it on purpose."

"I know, I know. We have to be careful; if anyone were to find out, my

God, there would be more trouble than we could ever deal with." Kymber

nodded somberly, lapsing into silence.

Secretly, she envied Etienne's condition; she had tried getting pregnant

by her father - but the accident had made sure it would never happen.

Tears welled in her eyes as she thought about the last time they had made

love. Kymber had recognized how the party had changed her life. There was

the love growing inside her for Lorne Williams; the handsome black man had

awakened something within her. Thus, Kymber had planned her visit to see

him. She had left Lorne feeling more in love with him, her craving for him

momentarily sated.

* * *

Alone in her room, she undressed and stretched out across the bed,

concentrating on the feeling deep inside her, warm like a banked coal. Her

fingers went to her mound and spread her ample lips there. A delicious

tingle fluttered through her as her fingers touched the still-sensitive bud

of her clitoris. As she was about to explore further, she heard a tap at

her door. "Hi, Dad," she called out.

Geoff Levin stuck his head in. "Hi, Kymmie - I thought I heard you come

in." Entering the room, noticing her state of undress. "Am I interrupting

something?" Taking in her firm young body caused a stirring inside him.

"No, Dad," she answered. "I was just laying here thinking."

"About what, Princess?"

"Lorne Williams. I just came from his house."

"Really? How's Eti?"

"I don't know; she wasn't there."

"Then, why..." Geoff began, feeling a brief pang of jealousy.

"I think you know why," was the shameless reply.

"I see." Despite his calm statement, a seed of hot passion was growing

inside him as he thought about his friend and his daughter.

Kymber propped herself up on her elbows, hearing the tone of his voice.

"Oh, Daddy, please don't be upset."

"I thought that, well, after the party we, um..."

"Daddy, I love you and we've been having some great fun together, but I

love him, too."

Geoff sighed as he sat next to his flame-haired daughter. "I think I

understand. Was it worth it?"

"Daddy, he was magnificent!" Tactfully, she added. "He makes me feel

the same way you do!" It hadn't been hard to figure out the older Levin's

feelings were stinging. Her words worked as Geoff relaxed. "Oh, come

here!" she said, opening her arms.

Geoff fell into her warm embrace and they kissed. He reached between

them and began kneading the creamy, fleshy globes of her breasts, running

his thumbs across the stiffening buds of her nipples.

"Ooooh that feels good," the younger Levin cooed, feeling the warmth

spreading through her. Her own hand had found the growing bulge in his

pants and she gave it a loving squeeze. Geoff raised himself slightly to

help Kymber undo his pants, never taking his mouth from the nipple he was

teasing with his teeth.

"Ah, there it is!" she exclaimed as her father's erection popped free,

the head red and angry-looking as it continued to fill with his hot blood.

Geoff let out a groan of displeasure as Kymber sat up, her nipple falling

from between his lips. Bending her head to his phallus, Kymber noted while

not as thick and long as Lorne's, it was just as beautiful. She lowered

her mouth to him, her tongue flicking around the knob and feeling him throb

in her hand.

"Oh, baby," he moaned as she slipped more of his cock into her luscious,

wet mouth. Opening his eyes slightly, he took in the sight of Kymber's

head bobbing. As she sucked him, Kymber's thick red hair moved like

flowing lava. Her lips formed a tight seal which sent wave after wave of

pleasure through him. He reached out and grabbed her leg, signaling to her

allow him some fun.

Kymber complied, lowering her now-drenched pussy onto his face. She was

still tender from her session with Lorne and it just added to her

excitement. Even the light touches of his breath were enough to drive her

insane. Geoff nuzzled his face into her hot sex, tasting the juices

flowing from her. He could taste the remnants of Lorne's seed and it

excited him further as he drove his tongue into the flesh of his flesh,

causing her to grind her bottom against his face.

father and daughter sucked and licked at each other, both lost in their

private pleasure. Geoff had found Kymber's erect clit, idly thinking how

small it was compared to Etienne Williams'. He could see it protruding

from its sheath, pulsing with every beat of her heart and went back to

sucking it. Gently at first, then with great urgency, he tongued her love

button. Kymber gasped at the sudden attack and lifted her mouth from him,

rocking her firm ass against him while holding on to his erect member.

"Yes, yes," she hissed. "Suck me!" Geoff responded by increasing his

speed and inserting a finger into his daughter's pussy. "Ooh, Daddy, I'm

gonna do it!" Geoff braced himself, feeling her canal contracting against

his finger. "NO!" she screamed as her orgasm claimed her, the juice

flowing from her. She collapsed, feeling the throbbing heat of his cock

against her cheek. "Don't stop, don't stopdon'tstopdon't..."

She lapsed into silence as the second wave flowed over her. Geoff face

was wet and abraded from the thick growth of auburn as she ground her sex

into his face, cutting off his breathing for a moment. A moment of

delicious panic hit him as the young beauty continued to ride his mouth,

her words inaudible with his head trapped firmly between her legs.

Realizing his plight, Kymber reluctantly removed her steaming pussy from

his face. "Sorry," she muttered as she positioned herself over his rod.

Geoff was gasping for breath as, in one swift movement, his daughter
impaled herself on his maleness.

"Your turn," she said, smiling evilly. Without giving him a chance to

recover, she began riding his stiff pole, slamming down on it until their

pubic bones ground together. "Oh, yeah," she sighed, as she leaned forward

to allow her father to fill her hot flesh. The feeling of being spread

open delighted her as she listened to the wet sounds their bodies were

making.

"Come on, give it to me," she said. "Give me your sperm, Daddy."

Geoff was doing his best to hold back, never wanting the moment to end.

However, she was too hot and wet, clenching her vaginal muscles against his

thickness and Geoff knew he'd be unable to hold back the tide.

"Fill me with it - come on - cream me!" Her pleas were becoming more

strident as she pounded her bottom against him, her breasts jiggling

crazily.

Geoff could feel his sac tighten, an almost painful sensation. His cock

grew thick inside her and the first spurts of his love began to jet from

him. "Yes!" Kymber squealed as she felt the hot sticky fluid coat her

insides. Geoff grimaced as his cock continued to pulse inside her - he had

never experienced such an intense orgasm before.

Without warning, Kymber rose from him and plunged her mouth over his

still-spasming tool, catching the last few spurts of cream on her tongue.

She savored the saltiness of his essence as she swallowed the pearly fluid.

* * *

"You missed the turn."

"Huh?" Etienne's voice had startled Kymber. "I did what?"

She turned to find Etienne staring at her, a whimsical look on her face.

"The turn into the development. You missed it."

"Oh, hell," she said, the embarrassment causing her to blush. She

pulled over, looked around, and made an U-turn. "I don't know what I was

thinking about," she said, more to herself than to her passenger.

Eti was smiling broadly. "I don't know either, but it had to be

something. Are you okay?"

Her blush deepened. "Yeah, I'm okay." Kymber drove up the driveway in

silence. She pulled into the garage and killed the engine.

Lorne entered the garage. "Is everything okay?" he asked. "I saw you

drive by and wondered if anything was wrong."

Eti was laughing. "I think somebody was a million miles away, thinking

nasty thoughts. You should have seen her nipples! They were about to tear

a hole in her blouse!"

Kymber flashed Eti a "later for you" look. "They were not!" she

protested.

Lorne looked at both women, scratching his head. "Come on inside -

dinner's ready." The two lovlies followed him, giggling.

After dinner, Lorne listening patiently as Etienne told him of her visit

with Dr. Edwards. "That's good news," he said. "Did she ask about whom

the father is?" Concern etched his dark features.

"Not really," Eti answered. "She was more concerned with making sure

everything was fine."

As the two talked and made plans for the new arrival, Kymber was

beginning to hatch a plan of her own.

Part III, Chapter Nine

Kymber gasped in delight as the thick, unyielding tool penetrated her

deeply. She looked up into the brown eyes of her lover and smiled

appreciatively. "Oh, this is too much," she said as Lorne slid deeper into

her steaming snatch. Beside her, Etienne watched intently as her father
pleasured the sensuous redhead. She sighed with contentment, feeling her

father's seed trickling from her. He had, moments earlier, taken her from

behind, bringing her quickly to orgasm while flooding her with his thick,

gooey spunk. Being seven months pregnant and not wanting to do any damage,

Eti found she really enjoyed being loved in this position.

Now sated, she watched as her father's thick cock was pounding Kymber.

Eti leaned over and captured a nipple, causing Kymber to moan loudly and

feeling Kymber's body rocked each time Lorne thrust into her. Kymber was

thinking she'd never been loved so much in her life as the grunting,

sweating man filled her pussy, spreading her wide. An orgasm shot through

her, taking her completely by surprise. Her mouth opened, only to be

filled with Eti's tongue.

As they kissed, Kymber reached out and touched the swollen curves of

Eti's stomach, thinking of how sexy it felt. Etienne broke the kiss,

feeling the warm touch of Kymber's hand. Rising, she dangled her

milk-filled breast before the emerald-eyed beauty, offering her open lips a

nipple. Kymber lifted her head to it and sucked into her mouth - and was

rewarded with a splash of milk, which she drank greedily. Etienne moaned

lowly as Kymber suckled her, feeling warm and loved. She freed her nipple,

hearing Kymber's groan of protest and changed her position.

Eti offered Kymber a view of her distended belly as the mother-to-be

lowered her freshly fucked pussy onto her mouth. Kymber lapped at the

sperm that was still leaking from the gaping pink slash before sucking that

large and lovely clit into her mouth. Eti cooed with contentment, leaning

forward to plant a wet kiss on her father's lips as he worked inside

Kymber.

The three lovers moved together, filling the room with the sounds of

their passion. Eti's orgasm crashed into her senses, causing her hot

juices to splash against the energetic mouth under her. Again sated, she

rolled carefully off Kymber's juice-drenched face and knelt to kiss the

glistening droplets from her flushed cheeks.

Lorne's senses were near an overload at the sight before him. He

continued to plow into Kymber's snatch with stuttering strokes as he

approached the climax. He let out a groan as he felt his cock swell inside

the tight, hot woman, his seed spilling into her copiously.

"Ahhhhhhh!" he cried as jet after jet of pearly spunk flowed from him,

painting Kymber vaginal walls with love. Feeling the spasming maleness

inside her, Kymber clamped down on his tool with her vaginal muscles - as

Eti suggested - wringing another cry of pleasure from Lorne, who was

beginning to grow soft inside her.

Drained, Lorne withdrew and flopped down between the two women. "I am

truly blessed," he said as they snuggled next to him. Exhausted, Lorne and

Eti drifted off into a blissful sleep, but Kymber remained awake, nestled

in the comforting embrace of Lorne's arm.

"This should do it," she thought, feeling Lorne's seed trickling from

her. For a moment, she felt guilty; she had deliberately stopped taking

her birth control pills some time ago, finally succumbing to the twinge of

jealousy she experienced whenever she looked at Etienne. Guilt was joined

by its cousin, Selfishness, causing Kymber to shiver slightly. She wanted

to share in the obvious joy Etienne was experiencing in her pregnancy.

Not that Lorne was focusing solely on his pregnant daughter; he would

consistently shower both of them with equal attention and love. Kymber

wanted to show her love in another way, however. So far, Lorne had given

her more than she could ever hope for: love, security, tenderness and, oh,

yes, plenty of hot, delicious sex. Now she wanted to give him something in

return.

She looked across the expanse of Lorne's chest to her friend, sister,

and lover. Kymber had at first been reluctant to reveal her plan to

Etienne, fearing that the other would react badly. It surprised Kymber

when Eti agreed that it would be the perfect gift for Kymber to give him.

"It would make you happier, wouldn't it?" Eti had asked while secretly

wondering what had taken Kymber so long in deciding to have her father's

baby.

"I look at you every day, see your happiness, and want it for myself,

too." Kymber looked into her friend's hazel eyes. "If I'm being selfish,

I'm sorry." She shook her head, causing her thick red mane to cascade

across her shoulders.

Eti had reached out and toyed with the flame-red ringlets. "No, Kymmie,

I don't think you're being selfish. You love him just as much as I do."

Lorne's gentle snoring brought Kymber to the here and now. Silently,

she prayed that after all the times they'd made love, this would be the

time which would allow her to present the man she loved with the fruits of

her womb. She remembered her frustration as month after month, her cycle

would start, signaling that her efforts had, so far, failed. Eti and

Kymber planned this night of love, both women knowing that Kymber next

cycle was due to begin within the next couple of days. Kymber drifted off

to sleep, her last thought being one of hope for the future.

Part III, Chapter Ten

"Hurry up, will you?", said Eti, going into Kymber's bathroom. Kymber

was sitting on the edge of the bathtub, looking sad as she held the tray of

the home test. Immediately, Etienne's heart fell. They had both been

certain Kymber had conceived, especially since Kymber was now a week late.

"Oh, babe," she said as she eased her bulky form next to Kymber. "I'm

sorry. This is two months in a row!"

Kymber looked up, locking her jade-hewed gaze onto Eti's. The lovely

redhead broke into a wide smile. "You may be sorry, but I'm not!" she

said, triumph clearly in her voice as she held up the results. Bright

blue. Pregnant.

"You tricked me!", Eti scolded, playfully punching Kymber in the arm.

Kymber stood, placing the test on the sink, turning to help Eti stand.

"Come on, chubby, let's go tell him the good news!"

"Chubby? Who are you calling chubby?" asked Etienne. She knew that her

time was coming soon as she looked in the mirror as she passed. Her

breasts were so full and heavy, as was her belly. For months, she'd felt

the baby moving around inside her, not knowing if it was a boy or girl.

Dr. Edwards had offered to tell her, of course, but she had declined, not

really wanting to know until she delivered.

So far, there were no signs of any abnormalities, something that had

concerned all three of them. During one examination, Eti had aroused Dr.

Edwards' suspicions with her nervousness.

"Why are you so concerned? I've told you that everything is going

well," the woman had asked her. Realizing her mistake, Eti had explained

that the baby's father was diabetic and she was naturally concerned if it

was causing any problems for the baby. The doctor looked back at her

skeptically but said nothing.

Lorne had just come in. Wearily, he tossed his jacket on the back of

the chair. "Hi, everyone!" he called out. Kymber was watching Eti descend

the staircase, making sure she didn't fall when she stopped abruptly, a

look of utter surprise crossing her features.

"Uh, oh." Eti's voice was tight with pain. "Something's happening!"

Kymber and Lorne ran to her as she gingerly sat. Another contraction hit

her, feeling like someone had taken her insides and twisted them. "It's

time."

Kymber and Lorne looked at each other for a long moment, before erupting

into a flurry of activity.

"Kymber, go up and grab her bag - then call Dr. Edwards!" Lorne

instructed as he ran toward the garage.

"Right! On my way!", she responded stepping carefully around Eti before

bolting up the stairs, returning with the overnight bag.

Eti was trying to stand. "Oh, no, you don't!", cried Kymber, grabbing

her friend's arm and guiding her to the chair. "Try to relax - and don't

forget to breathe!" She dialed Dr. Edwards' number. "Hello? Yes. Dr.

Edwards please; it's an emergency!" As she waited for the doctor to come on

line, Kymber patted her foot impatiently.

"Hello, Dr. Edwards? This is Kymber Levin, a friend of Etienne

Williams. Huh? Yes, she's having contractions. . . hold on." She covered

the mouthpiece and asked Eti, "How far apart?" Pain cut Eti's reply short

as another contraction wracked her body. Gasping for breath, Eti held up

five fingers.

"About five minutes apart!" she said. "Okay..., okay..., right. We're

on our way!" Kymber was hanging up the phone as Lorne burst through the

front door.

"The car's out front! What did the doctor say?" Lorne was excited,

breathing hard.

"She'll meet us at the hospital," answered Kymber, all thoughts of

telling Lorne her news temporarily forgotten. After retrieving Etienne's

bag from her room, they managed to get Eti into the car, having to stop

every couple of steps as another white-hot bolt of pain made its presence

felt. Finally, they got underway for the hospital. Kymber drove while

Lorne tried to comfort Eti.

"Oh, Daddy," she cried. "It hurts so badly!" Lorne was helpless, not

really knowing what to say.

"Hang in there, Peaches," looking out the windshield. "Kymber will have

us there in a couple of minutes."

Etienne smiled weakly at her father and gave his hand a reassuring

squeeze. Bravely, she said, "Hey, stop worrying. You'll do just fine!"

That got a wry smile from Lorne. "I'm proud of you and I love you very

much," he said. He felt the car suddenly decelerate. Looking up, he saw

that they were at the hospital; Kymber had already shut off the engine and

was heading for the entrance, waving frantically at someone wearing a white

coat.

As Lorne began the arduous task of helping Eti from the car, he could

see Kymber pointing in his direction and the white-coat's reaction,

grabbing a nearby wheelchair and running toward them.

"Help is on the way, Peaches," he said, stepping aside for the orderly.

A pair of nurses had arrived with Kymber and immediately took charge of the

situation. Placing a groaning Eti into the chair, the orderly and one

nurse hustled her off, while the remaining nurse sidled up to him.

"Are you the father?" Taking him by the arm, the nurse continued. "We

have to get some information while we get things ready."

Lorne nodded numbly, not noticing the warning look Kymber was giving

him, as the nurse guided him through the maze of curious onlookers.

Kymber followed, wanting to get to Lorne before he said something that

would get him into trouble, catching up with him as he sat at the nurse's

station answering questions. She skidded to a halt just as the nurse was

again asking, "You're the father, right?" Lorne's mouth opened to speak and

Kymber jabbed him in the back with a finger, her eyes flashing. Confused,

Lorne looked at Kymber then back at the nurse, realization dawning on him.

"Well, I'm her father," he finally said, stressing the 'her' in his

answer. The nurse, not understanding what was going on, shrugged before

returning to filling out the form.

"Okay. We can get the rest of this later; right now, we need to get you

scrubbed and into a gown." As he was whisked away, Lorne looked back at

Kymber helplessly.

Part III, Chapter Eleven

Eti looked around the cold, sterile room, watching the busy, yet

controlled activity taking place around her. She was tired with the effort

of breathing and dealing with the pain which stabbed at her with increased

frequency.

"Hi, there! How are we doing?" Eti turned her head slowly, looking up

at the masked face of Dr. Edwards.

"You're just a tad bit early, but that's okay. Now, I want you to relax

as much as you can - we've got some work ahead of us."

Eti closed her eyes, feeling a little more confident knowing that the

doctor was there. She grimaced, feeling unusually full. Another intense

pain ripped through her, causing her breath to catch in her chest.

Simultaneously, she was dimly aware of an incredible wet feeling that

suddenly appeared between her legs.

"Water's broken," a disembodied voice was saying.

Etienne was scared, feeling alone and helpless. She could feel the

tears beginning to gather in her eyes when a strong hand took hers.

Blinking away the blinding fluids, she looked up into her father's eyes.

Although the mask hid his lower face, she could tell he was smiling.

"How's it going?" he asked.

"So far, so good." Eti knew that she could really relax now - the man
she loved was with her. "You look like a doctor."

Lorne laughed softly. "I am a doctor, remember?" Eti grinned sheepishly

despite the now constant contractions. "That's okay - you've got enough to

worry about. Just relax." Lorne said as they motioned him to one side as

they continued to get Etienne ready.

"Oh, God!" Eti screamed, the pain causing her to grip her father's hand

with an incredible strength, so tight Lorne winced with his own pain.

Biting his lip to keep from crying out, Lorne heard Dr. Edwards' calm

voice announce to the room they were ready to begin.

"Okay, Etienne. I know you want to push and I know it really hurts.

However, you can't push yet, understand?"

Eti nodded. A contraction, more intense pain, followed by a split
second of labored breathing...

* * *

Kymber paced the waiting room for what might be the millionth time.

Glancing at the clock, she realized only twenty minutes had gone by since

their arrival. Many things were running around in her mind, concern for

Eti being the foremost. Then there was a spot reserved for Lorne, who was

probably at his wit's end - it had been a very long time since he had

attended a delivery. Finally, she had to think, in a little over eight

months from now, she would be in Etienne's place.

A frown crossed her face as she thought for the first time if she could

be brave enough to endure the pain; most of all, she had her initial

thoughts about whether or not she really had what it took to be a mother.

Taking another glance at the clock, she dismissed the negative thoughts,

knowing that Eti would need all the positive support she could get.

Part III, Chapter Twelve

Perspiration ran freely down Etienne's face as she fought against the

pain of childbirth. Through the haze of agony draped over her, she was

dimly aware of the voice around her: Her father offering words of

encouragement along with the maddening instructions to breathe - he should

try breathing under these conditions! Also in the background was Dr.

Edwards' voice, sounding for all the worlds like a play-by-play announcer

as she called out Eti's progress to anyone who cared to listen.

"She's crowning," an unseen voice said as Eti struggled to catch her

breath. She was so tired, so very tired. For the last hundred years,

she'd been pushing and breathing, wishing that whatever was going to happen

would hurry up.

"Okay, Eti, Lorne - this is it!", came Dr. Edwards' calm voice. "Give

it all you've got and... PUSH!"

Taking what felt to be her last deep breath, she pushed, the effort

contorting her face.

"OH, DAMN!" she screamed as the baby's passing stretched her beyond

anything she'd ever experienced. The curtain of darkness, once only

hovering above her, was beginning to fall upon her.

"Good! Good!" exclaimed Dr. Edwards. "The head is clear, here come

the shoulders... That's it!"

Just on the verge of passing out, Eti was aware of a great feeling of

emptiness as she heard the first cries of her child - and another sound she

couldn't identify. Opening her eyes, she tried to look around but found

she couldn't focus on anything.

"Clamp." A sound of metal hitting rubber, following by a clicking sound.

"Metzenbaum's."

Tears of exhaustion flowed freely from her as Dr. Edwards came into her

view. "Congratulations, Eti! It's a girl!", handing the blanket-wrapped

newborn into her arms. Etienne looked into the tiny face as the tears

continued to fall.

"Dad, look!", she called. "She's beautiful!" Looking up and to her

right for her father, she saw that he wasn't there! She felt a pang of

disappointment. Surely, he couldn't have left! Her voice was dry and

crackling as she asked the room in general, "Where's my father?"

A nurse came and took the baby from her. "Oh, he'll be okay. He just

fainted. Men!"

Having removed the afterbirth and cleaned her up, they were rolling Eti

to the recovery room. As the stretcher was passing through the door, Eti

caught a glance of her daughter being whisked away in a bassinet - and her

father sitting in a chair holding his head, while a green-garbed person

waved something under his nose.

* * *

Lorne had gotten over his initial worry and nervousness as he coached

his laboring daughter through the delivery. The two of them had gotten

into a pattern: When Eti had to push, Lorne would call out words of

encouragement; when she relaxed, he would talk her through her breathing.

Upon hearing the announcement of the head appearing, he looked up at the

mirror suspended over the table - just in time to see the baby emerge, all

red and covered with goo. Between the sight of his child being born and

Eti's cry of pain, it was too much for him. The room suddenly tilted 90

degrees and he was having one hell of a time trying to breathe. Alarmed,

he tried to stand...

And found himself looking up at a sea of green-masked faces. "What

happened," he thought? "Why am I lying on the floor?" Confused, he allowed

himself to be helped off the floor and seated on a stool. His head hurt
and he felt weird. He was aware of a snapping sound, followed by an

eye-watering, breath-stopping smell as someone passed an ammonia capsule

under his nose. Someone grabbed his hands as he tried to ward off the

hideous, acrid smell as his mind snapped back into focus.

"Dr. Williams? How do you feel?"

Blinking back the ammonia-induced tears, he said, "I'm okay, I think."

Experimentally, he took in a deep breath of the chilled air in the room,

noting how sweet it tasted. "Yeah, I'm fine now. Where's my daughter?"

Since he was okay, the nurse tossed the spent capsule into a trash bin.

"Your daughter and granddaughter are both fine. They're both in recovery.

You can see them in about 20 minutes." His legs still a little wobbly,

Lorne headed into the scrub room, where a nurse helped him out of his sweat

stained gown, cap and mask.

* * *

"Kymber!"

At the sound of her name, Kymber looked up and saw Lorne crossing the

room toward her. As he came closer, she could see that his face was ashen

and he was walking with a little difficulty.

"Are you all right?", she asked.

"Huh? Oh, yeah, I'm okay."

Kymber bit back her impatience as Lorne eased himself next to her.

"Well?"

Lorne looked at her, giving her a tired smile. "It's a girl. mother
and child are doing quite well. They tell me we can see them in a little

while."

"Oh! I'm so happy!" As she reached over to hug Lorne, her nose

wrinkled. "Ugh! What's that smell?"

Lorne sniffed and replied, "Ammonia. Seems like I fainted." Kymber

suppressed a giggle. "Come on, let's go see the new mommy!"

Part III, Chapter Thirteen

Etienne was sleeping when they entered the room. Not wanting to disturb

her, they crossed to the large window that overlooked the nursery adjoining

the room. Wrapped in lightweight - yet warm - pink blankets, the recently

born little girl dozed, her face alternating between tiny smiles and

frowning.

Lorne took note of the coal-black thatch of hair atop her delicate

features, bringing back memories of the first time he'd seen Etienne.

Kymber had been peeking around him to look at her "baby sister," when she

tapped Lorne on the arm.

"Look," she said, pointing at a little card taped at the foot of the

bassinet.

Lorne blinked back a sudden rush of tears as he read the name scrawled

on the card: 'Eleanor Darien Williams'. Apparently, Etienne had named the

baby before falling asleep - and had named her new daughter after her late

mother. He swallowed hard, trying to displace the lump which had appeared

there.

Quietly, Kymber asked, "It was your wife's name, wasn't it?" Lorne could

only nod as he wrapped an arm around her. Lost in their own thoughts, they

stood silently.

A rustle caught Lorne's attention and he turned, finding Etienne awake

and yawning. He went to her side, noting that she still looked tired and

worn and seeing a peaceful glow in her face.

"You've seen her?", she asked, stifling another yawn. "I named her

after mom - I hope you don't mind." Lorne hugged her, feeling a tear

trickle down his cheek.

"She's beautiful and, no, I don't mind at all. You did well and I'm so

proud of you." Kymber joined father and daughter, taking her place in the

joyful embrace and planting a loving kiss on Eti's cheek.

"She's going to break some hearts, that's for sure," she said. A

playful glint flashing in her eyes, she said "It's a good thing she doesn't

look like her father!", causing Lorne to shoot her a warning glance.

Extricating herself from their embrace, Eti stretched. Now fully awake,

she turned to look at Kymber. "Did you tell him?"

Kymber sat up, suddenly quiet as she looked at her hands. "No."

"Why not?"

Avoiding Eti's intense stare, Kymber looked out the window at the lazily

floating clouds. "Well, there were other important things to deal with,

you know."

During this exchange, Lorne looked from one woman to the other. "Tell

me what?", he asked. Exhausted from his ordeal in the delivery room and

still weak from having passed out, Lorne really wasn't in the mood for

cryptic conversation.

Eti gave Kymber a taste of her own medicine. "You gonna tell him or

should I?", clearly enjoying her friend's discomfort.

Kymber knew when to give up. She stood and walked around the bed to

where Lorne was sitting. Taking his hand as she sat beside him, she locked

her green eyes on his chocolate-brown ones. "Like Eti says, I have

something to tell you."

"What!?", he said, barely able to contain his frustration.

Kymber flinched at the sharp tone, but didn't take her eyes from his.

"Well, it's just, um..." Her hesitancy made Lorne stand.

"Will someone tell me what's going on here," he exclaimed?

Eti was grinning from ear to ear.

"What's so funny?"

Gathering her courage, Kymber finally ended the mystery. "You're gonna

have to go through this again," she blurted.

For a moment which seemed frozen in time, Lorne wore a blank look of not

understanding. Suddenly, his eyes grew wide and his mouth opened slightly.

"Again? You mean... ," Lorne sat in the chair next to the bed.

"Yep, I'm pregnant." Kymber waited for something to happen. She turned

to look at Etienne, who was drifting off to sleep again. "I think he's..."

she began, but a loud thump interrupted her before she could finish,

startling Eti awake.

"What the hell?" they asked together, looking down at the prone form of

Lorne Williams.

"He fainted. Again." Etienne reached for the call button and pressed

it. Kymber rolled her eyes. "I guess he couldn't handle any more good

news," she said, smiling.

As the nurse who'd arrived at Eti's summons attended to Lorne, Kymber

looked at Eti and said, "Things are going to get interesting around the

house now..."

Part III, Chapter Fourteen

Pressure, friction, motion, anxiety, calm. One moment, fullness, the

next, emptiness. Ellie Williams experienced all these sensations as the

hard penis invaded her body again, restoring the feeling of fullness. She

held her breath as her weight nearly doubled, pressed into the firm but

yielding mattress as the man above her increased his movement inside her.

Wet, slurping sounds mingled with their breathing, adding their special

arousal factors to the heavy, heady scents generated during lovemaking.

Ellie sighed with contentment as the thick, hard cock filled her

completely, feeling the engorged head collide with the entrance of her

womb. The man's mouth captured an erect nipple, sending another pleasurable

sensation through her to be added to those already present. The woman

added her own movements to those of the man, thrusting her hips upward to

meet his, causing him to grunt in appreciation.

She could feel him growing thicker, his strokes coming harder and faster

and she wrapped her legs tightly around his waist as her release claimed

her, flooding his tool with her sweet juices. The man's face was drenched

with a sweat as his own orgasm caught up with him, growling low in his

throat as spurt after spurt of semen flowed into the warm dampness of her

body.

Ellie could feel him soften just a bit as he continued to move against

her body, his strokes not as urgent now. Breathing a sigh of contentment,

she wrapped her arms around his strong upper body, hugging him close as

they basked in the afterglow of sex.

"Ellie? Devon? Where are you?"

Another sigh, this one filled with a tinge of frustration. "I guess

we'd better answer her, huh?", she asked her lover as he rolled from her.

"Yeah - you know how your mother gets when she thinks we're ignoring

her." The man rose from the bed, giving Ellie a good look at his body. She

smiled in appreciation at the firm buttocks that flowed into his strong

legs. As he stepped into a pair of cutoff jeans, she got a glimpse of his

manhood, still semi-erect and glistening with their combined juices.

"Come on, El!" her half-brother Devon said. "We'd better not keep her

waiting."

"Oh, all right," she said grumpily. As she was getting dressed, Ellie

heard a knock on the door.

"Ellie, are you and Devon in there?"

"Yeah, Mom," she answered, tying the shirttails of her shirt into a

loose knot that left her trim stomach exposed. "Come on in."

Etienne stepped through the doorway and took in the scene before her.

"I hope I didn't interrupt anything," she said while taking note of the

rumpled bedding. Ellie's embarrassed look told her she had.

Devon walked out of the small bathroom that connected his room with

Ellie's. "Hi, Mom," he said. He walked over to her and wrapped strong

arms around her while placing a wet kiss on her mouth. Eti felt a surge of

excitement swiftly arc through her as his tongue flicked quickly into her

mouth.

"What's up?"

Shaking off the warm feeling the embrace imparted to her, she

straightened her blouse before saying, "Your father and mother," nodding at

Devon, "Will be here shortly and I thought you'd like to welcome them home

- with your clothes on."

The two teenagers looked back at her with almost identical guilty looks.

Ellie, fair-skinned like Etienne, cast hazel-colored eyes at her mother
while Devon, lighter than Ellie but darker than Kymber, looked around the

room, the unusual brown/green color of his eyes giving him a haunting look.

Both children bore characteristics from their shared father as suggested by

their high cheekbones.

Devon shook his head of reddish-brown hair. "It's Ellie's fault," he

said, brushing a stray lock of hair from his forehead.

"Me?," exclaimed his half-sister, turning her head so fast that her long

black hair wrapped itself around her mouth. Removing the ebony strands

from her mouth, she said, "How did it get to be my fault?"

"You looked so good. I just had to have you!" Ellie rolled her eyes in

exasperation.

"Okay kids, play nice," Etienne said, cutting off any further

"protests." She turned at the sound of the front door opening. "They're

here! Okay, let's go!"

As the trio descended the stairs, Lorne and Kymber were coming through

the door, their hands full of luggage. Devon skipped around the two women

to help his parents. "Here, let me get that, Dad," taking the larger of

the bags. Once inside, the elder Williams gratefully plopped into his

favorite chair. Kymber joined him, sitting on one arm of the chair while

Eti occupied the other. As he wrapped an arm around each woman, he took

stock of his life right now.

At his right sat his daughter and mother of their daughter - Lorne had

to smile every time these thoughts entered his mind because you could go

crazy trying to keep straight. At his left sat the mother of his only son

and, for the last year, his wife. Sure, there was a major difference in

their ages; he was now 59 and Kymber 35 - but what did it matter when you

loved each other?

He had been hesitant about marrying Kymber - after all, they had been in

their current relationship for years without being married and it hadn't

affected their happiness, so he didn't see any reason to change things.

Kymber had been just as happy. Etienne, on the other hand, felt it

necessary, if for no other reason than to maintain a presence of moral

"rightness" to the outside world.

Lorne looked at his two children making themselves comfortable on the

sofa. Since being born, Ellie and Devon had known nothing but love. Under

the careful guidance of the trio of parents, they quickly and easily

accepted the incestuous nature of their family life.

"Especially Ellie," Lorne thought to himself as he remembered Ellie's

surprising impatience in wanting to get her hands - and mouth - on her

brother. Devon, on the other hand, was like most boys in his early years,

having a great disdain for the opposite sex. As he remembered a particular

incident involving the siblings, he laughed out loud, drawing confused

looks from his assembled family.

"What's so funny?", asked Ellie, noting that her father happened to be

looking at her when he started laughing.

"Oh, nothing," he said. "I was just thinking about the time you took

advantage of Devon."

The object of their discussion blushed as everyone else remembered that

historic moment.

Part III, Chapter Fifteen

Ellie had been feeling pretty uncomfortable the last couple of hours.

For reasons she didn't understand, she was having a hard time concentrating

on her homework and an even harder time sitting still, both unusual for

her. The answer to the simple math problem continued to evade her,

increasing her frustration. Tossing her pencil aside, she crossed the room

to look out of her window.

As she contemplated the clouds in the late Saturday afternoon skies, she

heard a noise coming from the bathroom she shared with her brother.

Grateful for the distraction, she went to the bathroom and stuck her head

through the door.

Her 13-year-old brother Devon was peeling off his dirt-covered jersey,

revealing his slim, muscular body. Though she was older by nine months,

you couldn't tell by looking at him. His involvement in sports,

particularly soccer, was doing a great job of toning and firming his body.

"Hi, Dev," she called out. "How was the game?"

Devon tossed the jersey into the hamper and answered, "Not bad, El. We

lost three to two, but it was a good game."

He began to pull off the equally dirty shorts and socks, stopping to

start the water running in the shower. He turned and looked at his sister.

"What have you been up to?", not in the least bit self-conscious about

standing in front of his sister clad only in an athletic supporter which,

Ellie noted, didn't do much to hide the impressive bulge of his

still-developing maleness.

"Not much, just trying to get my homework done."

"I know; I've still got mine to do," he said stepping into the shower.

They talked while he showered, stopping only to hand him the shampoo, As

she passed the bottle through the slit in the curtain, she got a good look

at his body. The sight of the rivulets of water flowing off his young
frame increased her discomfort by a factor of two. She felt a heat

building inside her, accompanied by a spreading dampness between her

shapely legs.

"So this is what it feels like to be horny!" she thought, remembering a

conversation she had with her mother and aunt. Ellie was so caught up in

this revelation that she never heard the water shut off.

"El?"

The sound of his voice startled her. "Huh?"

"I said, hand me a towel, will you?", he repeated, stepping from the

shower.

Ellie couldn't take her eyes off his delicious-looking body. Reaching

behind her, she grabbed a blue towel, embroidered with a stylized "W" - and

knocked over the container of shampoo, its contents dripping from the

dislodged cap.

Slightly annoyed, Devon took the towel from her. "What's with you?

You're suddenly very clumsy."

Ellie ignored the jibe and tried to focus her attention on cleaning up

the spilled liquid. Her hands trembled slightly as she wiped up the thick,

pearly liquid. Looking up to deposit the tissue in the wastebasket, she

noticed the sensual way Devon dried himself...

Ellie blinked. Sensual? Where did that come from? The heat inside her

had reached inferno proportions. She was also aware of her skin tingling

and, of course, the ever present wetness between her legs.

Devon finished drying himself and looked toward his sister, wondering if

something was wrong. Normally graceful, she was having a hard time

standing up normally graceful, it seemed to him. Shrugging, he placed the

towel around his neck and padded off into his room. Forgetting his comb,

he came to an abrupt halt.

Ellie walked right into him!

"Hey!" he said, spinning around to face his sister. About to ask what

her problem was, he stopped and took a closer look at his sibling. Ellie

was staring at him, her eyes glazed. To his untrained eyes, she looked

feverish - maybe she was sick or something?

"Did you want something, Sis?" he offered helpfully, not even realizing

that he'd just opened a door for her.

Ellie was dimly aware of his question, her eyes focused on the fleshy

tube of flesh which hung between his legs. Absently, she licked her lips

as the strange new feelings invaded every pore of her being. Somewhere

deep inside, a door opened; visions of untold pleasures tugged at her,

their siren song beckoning her to pass through. Without a moment of

hesitation, she entered.

"Sis?" Devon was really beginning to get worried. He walked over to her

and placed his hands on her shoulders and saw she was shivering. He gently

cupped her face in his hands and looked into her hazel eyes. Although a

light sheen of perspiration covered her skin, she felt cool to his touch.

Confused, he said, "I'd better call mom - she'll know what to do!"

As he turned to pick up the phone, Ellie stopped him, grabbing his hands

with a grip that surprised him. "Devon, you don't have to call anyone; I

think this is something you can take care of."

Startled by the suddenly sultry voice, he took a nervous step backwards

as a voice inside him told him that something was about to happen. As he

retreated, he tripped over the cleated shoe he had discarded a few minutes

ago. He fell. Ellie, still holding his hand, fell with him and brother
and sister ended in a heap on the deep pile of the carpet.

Devon hit the floor hard; his sister's weight driving the air out of him

as she landed on top of him, the room spinning crazily as he tried to catch

his breath. When opened his eyes, it surprised him to find himself

nose-to-nose with his sister, who was examining him closely.

"W-what are you... ?", he stammered as Ellie cut off his sentence,

placing her hot mouth on his. His lips parted in surprise, allowing her

tongue to snake between them. Devon was aware of the sounds of heaving

breathing, mixed with a scent he didn't recognize.

Just a little past forever, Ellie broke the kiss, her passion now

coursing through her unimpeded. She sat astride him, grinding her hips

against the bulge of manhood to relieve the insistent itch between her

legs. She looked into her brother's eyes and saw the mixed fear and

excitement in them as she slid her hands over his smooth chest.

Devon took that moment to collect his thoughts. His own body tingled in

response to Ellie's touch, feeling the hard, hot shaft of flesh rubbing

against the rough material of Ellie's shorts. He tried to sit up, only to

have Ellie push him back down. As Ellie leaned forward, her breasts
pressing into him, he could feel the heat of her body. Devon heard his hot

sister moan as she ran her tongue under his jaw line, pausing at the spot

just behind his left ear.

Although their father told him this time would come, nothing he had

learned prepared him for the intoxicating sensations he was feeling.

Ellie's kisses on his neck and ears were tentative; she knew what to do,

having learned from her mother and aunt, but knowing and doing is two

different things. As her passion grew, she found it harder to concentrate

on those things the older women had shown, finally letting instinct take

over. Her tongue left a wet trail down the right side of his neck until

she reached his nipple, which she teased by flicking her tongue over the

sensitive surface. She felt her young brother shiver and it encouraged

her. Breathing heavily, she kissed her way down his flat tummy until his

erection, bobbing wildly with every heartbeat, tapped her gently under her

chin.

"Ellie, no..." Devon's protests were weak.

"Shhh," she whispered, taking his cock gently in her hands. Ellie

examined the beautifully shaped knob as it sat atop the moderately-thick

shaft, smiling when a large, clear drop of dew appeared at the tiny slit.

Slowly, she extended her tongue and allowed the droplet slide onto it.

Devon felt paralyzed as he watched his sister's tongue disappear into

her mouth as she tasted him, her eyes closing. His once-dormant passion

was now alive, growing with each passing second.

"Mmmmm," Ellie moaned before drawing her hand upwards along the silky

smooth staff. Another drop appeared - and quickly disappeared as she

lowered her mouth onto him. Too much too fast, she gagged for a moment and

backed off until just the head remained. Ellie's tongue gained a mind of

its own as it swirled around the ridges of the darkening head.

Brightly colored lights exploded in Devon's head as his sister suckled

him. "Ah, ah," he moaned as Ellie's head bobbed over him. His eyes flew

open as he became aware of a powerful sensation that seemed to originate

from his toes. Dimly, he knew it was related to the feeling he'd

experience when he masturbated - but this was 100 times stronger. A

heartbeat - and the sun exploded into a nova inside his head.

Ellie was in heaven, gobbling her brother's shaft with increasing

confidence, when she felt him stiffen and swell. His body, which had been

thrashing wildly, went completely rigid. She heard his breath catch

sharply - then Devon filled her mouth with a warm, sticky syrup. Reflex

made her jerk her head back as the last spurts of his seed flowed from him,

collecting in a creamy pool.

Devon was drowning in an ocean of intense feelings. He lifted his head

in time to see Ellie's tongue licking the last drops of goo from full lips.

"I... don't... feel so good." Devon was a jumble of conflicting nerve

impulses as he tried to speak. His throat was horribly dry and there was

something wrong with his vision. As he tried to collect himself, he saw

twin sisters removing their last piece of clothing.

As Ellie's bra joined the rest of her clothing, she noted that her baby

brother was still quite hard and moved to position her virgin pussy above

the instrument of her deflowering. She shivered in anticipation,

remembering the warnings given to her by her mother. "It will hurt at

first," a voice whispered, "but it will pass." She grabbed the sperm-slick

shaft and rubbed it experimentally along her slit. As the head passed

across her clit, a wondrous sensation flowed through her, making her knees

buckle slightly. Using her free hand to steady herself, Ellie rubbed the

knob of his cock over her clit again, relishing the chills the action sent

through her.

As his cock-head passed through the soft, dark strands of her pussy, the

sensation sent electric shocks through him, causing him to arch his back.

Another pass and his hips left the floor on their own accord...

...and the knob of his sex disappeared inside Ellie, stopping at her

maidenhead. Ellie felt weak at that initial contact. Gathering her

courage, she took a deep breath and sat hard on her brother's cock. A

white-hot bolt of exquisite pain exploded through her as her hymen tore,

followed by the soothing warmth as her brother's rod imbedded itself inside

her.

"Oh, God!", she cried as the warmth spread throughout her overheated

flesh, causing her nipples to get harder.

Devon felt the incredible tightness of his sister's sheath, knowing all

the lessons he learned were becoming real. Between the oral loving and

rupturing Ellie's cherry, his cock was very sensitive - a little too

sensitive, he learned as the tingling feeling returned. His sac tightened

in preparation to unload its precious cargo.

Ellie could feel his rod growing larger inside her and, rocking her

backside slightly, she felt his seed splash inside her, luxuriating in the

hot stickiness of it as it coated her. She sighed in contentment; Ellie

knowing she could now recognize being horny and, just as important, what to

do about it! She leaned forward and planted wet, loving kisses on Devon's

lips.

"You okay?" she asked, with genuine concern. Devon nodded, still

feeling the mind-numbing after effects of orgasm.

"Well, now! What do we have here?"

Still joined and leaking steamy juices, brother and sister turned toward

the new voice - and found their parents standing just inside the room with

looks of amusement and love on their collective faces.

Lorne looked at the two young lovers before turning his attention to Eti

and Kymber. "Looks like someone couldn't wait until we had our little talk

this evening, eh?"

Ellie climbed off Devon's prone form, his member exiting her with an

obscene sucking sound before coming to rest against his stomach.

Surprisingly, there wasn't a trace of the blood her mother told her might

be present. She reached down, offering Devon her hand and helped him stand

before crossing to the still-smiling adults.

"How long were you standing there?", she asked.

Eti looked at her daughter and found it hard to hide the smile

threatening to take over her features. "Long enough," she said.

"We saw everything after he spilled into your mouth," added Kymber.

"Impressive."

Devon came out of the bathroom after cleansing himself of the fruits of

their love. "I suppose you were going to tell us not to, ah, explore the

possibilities with each other."

"On the contrary, son," responded Lorne. "We were going to ask why you

hadn't and remind you there's no shame in expressing your love for each

other in this manner." He chuckled. "But it looks like you figured that

one out already!"

Ellie returned from cleaning up just in time to hear her father's last

words. "So, it really is okay?", she asked hopefully.

Kymber took up the question. "Sure it is honey! In fact, since you've

gotten this far, things will be much better!"

parents and children stood looking at each other before coming together

for a big, love-filled hug.

Part III, Chapter Sixteen

Devon stretched out across the bed, lost in thought. He pondered how

his life had changed, especially since coming to terms with the incestuous

relationship he shared with the rest of his family.

Not that he thought there was anything wrong with the way they were

living, mind you. Compared to the way some of his friends at school lived,

he had it made. His parents were understanding, supportive and loving.

Sure, they had their moments - what family with teenagers didn't? However,

he had learned the love they shared with each other made those situations

far and few between.

Devon thought about his relationship with Ellie, whom he saw as more

than just his sister - they'd always been friends and were energetic

lovers. A smile spread across his face as he thought about all the times

they had made love.

He more than understood the relationship between Lorne, Kymber and

Etienne; again, he saw nothing wrong with the situation, being taught that

love is love. Nodding to himself, he remembered his aunt telling him it

made sense: those people closest to them should love people as completely

as possible - and that it shouldn't have limitations placed on it.

There was something on his mind, though. For the last year or so, he

had been dying to put all the theories he'd learned over the years to the

test. Not being as outgoing as his sister, Devon often balked at

approaching his mother and/or aunt and asking to make love with them - and

it wasn't because they would reject him.

What concerned the young man was his feeling of not being equal to the

task when it came down to making love with the older women. He frowned,

knowing that it didn't matter if he were good or not; just being able to

show his love for them was proof enough. "What am I afraid of?" he asked

himself. "Man. You couldn't have it any better than this!"

Thinking that perhaps he should ask Ellie's advice on this one, he

crossed the room to their shared bathroom. Since he didn't want to be

disturbed, the door on his side was closed. Opening the door, he stepped

through the threshold.

Still lost in thought, he entered Ellie's room. Upon hearing a giggle

he looked up, stopping dead in his tracks, discovering Ellie wasn't alone.

"Mmmm," moaned the sexy voice that belonged to Ellie. "Harder, do it

harder!"

Devon's eyes looked toward his sister and saw the dreamy look in her

eyes as her tongue moved sensuously across her lips. One hand was busy

kneading a bare breast, while the other was entangled in a thatch of

familiar red hair. He stood transfixed as his mother, positioned between

Ellie's upraised legs, slowly lapped at the younger woman's pussy.

Not wanting to intrude, he turned to leave - and stopped. He returned

his gaze to the scene before him, noting how inviting Kymber's upturned

bottom looked. With her legs spread slightly, he could see the folds of

her femininity, the flame red hairs obviously damp with moisture. Devon's

cock, which had been stirring since first entering the room, was now at

full attention, throbbing against his body.

Devon's heart froze in his chest as Ellie opened one hazel eye and

spotted him. She smiled at him and, upon freeing a hand from her aunt's

auburn tresses, pointed at the upturned globes of his mother's ass. Then

she placed a finger against her lips, the sign he should be quiet.

Now completely thawed, Dev's heart began pounding in his chest - talk

about getting what you asked for! He removed his shirt, feeling his

nipples harden in the air-conditioned room. Next, he stepped from the

restricting material of his shorts, his manhood springing free. Ellie

moaned at the sight while giving him the 'OK' sign before pointing toward

the juicy offering.

Her back turned to the approaching youth, Kymber was unaware of what was

about to happen, completely focused on Ellie's clitoris and inner labia, on

which she lavished wet kisses. She loved the musky, salty taste of her

young niece as flicked her tongue hard against the sensitive bud of her

clit. The heat of her own sex was intense, needing some attention and she

arched her back and spread her legs wider, causing her enticing bottom to

raise higher, exposing more of her juicy interior.

Kymber was concentrating hard on keeping up with the youngster's

squirming bottom as a spray of love juices splashed onto her tongue, never

realizing things were about to get much more interesting!

The redheaded beauty gasped as she felt a moist tongue penetrate her

sex, plunging easily into her well-lubricated slit. Startled, she

instinctively tried to rise - only to be held in place by Ellie who had

timed Devon's approach - trapping Kymber's head between her silky thighs.

As Devon's tongue explored his mother's pink sheath, he savored the

surprisingly sweet taste of her flesh, sucking on the delicate inner lips.

Using his hands to spread Kymber's buttocks, he exposed more of the

flame-encased oyster of her pussy, sliding his tongue from the quivering

entrance to the tip of her blood-engorged clit and back. He repeated the

stroke and was encouraged to feel his mother wiggle her lovely bottom

against his face.

With a lusty moan, he captured her clit and sucked as if his life

depended on it. Kymber thrashed against the onslaught, her face smashing

into Ellie's mound - which caused the young woman to fall into another

orgasm, coating Kymber's face with woman stuff.

Exhausted, Ellie managed to slide from under the groaning adult. Kymber

tried again to escape, but Ellie grabbed her arms and held them. Despite

this, the feverish redhead managed to twist slightly, making Devon lose his

grip on her clit. With a grunt, he took her legs and crossed them. With a

gentle tug, he caused his mother to turn over onto her back.

Ellie, seeing the maneuver, released Kymber's arms just long enough for

the woman to be turned before taking possession of them again. "Do her,"

she hissed. "Love her till she can't stand any more!" Without releasing

her grip, she positioned herself so that she could take advantage of their

"prisoner," sucking a hard nipple into her mouth.

The many sensations assaulted Kymber. While Ellie trapped her hands,

Devon held her legs open with his strong hands, and Ellie lay across her

sweating body, sucking and licking her breasts and nipples. She didn't

know who was between her legs, destroying her sanity. An orgasm sneaked up

on her, adding its ferocious effects to the others, sending her crashing

into the wave. In rapid succession, she experienced two more orgasms, each

stronger that the other.

"Oh, God," she hissed. "More! More!"

Devon was beyond hearing, beyond understanding. His lust was in total

control, driving him to eat at her flesh. His tongue flicked down to the

tight buttonhole of her ass. As he flicked it across the wrinkled surface

of her backdoor, he used the tip of his nose to keep her on the edge.

Devon teased his sexy mother for a few moments more, unable to deny his own

release any longer.

Kymber was lost in the throes of passion when she felt the tongue

withdraw. The ripping sensation of a hard, thick penis penetrating her

dripping folds quickly replaced any disappointment she felt. As the

invading cock embedded itself into her, she immediately knew the identity

of her 'assailant'. Opening her eyes, she looked backwards into Devon's

face. Pleasure filled it with lust and contorted with exertion as he

plunged into her with deep, fast strokes.

"Devon, honey," she panted. "Slowly!"

"Don't listen to her, Dev," laughed Ellie. "Give it to her good!"

Devon lifted his mother's legs higher, settling into a good rhythm,

rocking her body with each savage thrust.

"Yes! That's it, baby brother!" shouted a gleeful Ellie as she fingered

herself. "Do her! Do her!"

Kymber shook under the sexual onslaught as her son drove into her. A

part of her mind calmly noticed his cock was just as thick as his father's,

if not as long. However, Devon had the advantage of being years younger.

What he lacked in experience, Devon made up with enthusiasm. Kymber shoved

the moment of introspection into a mental corner, having it replaced with

the beginnings of an orgasmic wave front. The wave crested and slammed

into her, coruscating along her nervous system, spreading like a wildfire.

Devon felt his mother's sheath contract around him as she burned in the

climatic fires he'd generated in her. He wallowed in the luxurious feel of

her body and knew that his love for her was now complete and fulfilling.

Devon had been doing all he could to hold back his own orgasm, wanting the

moment to go on forever. His relative lack of experience, combine with the

almost indescribable feel of being deep inside his own mother, was enough

to send him over the edge. Hot blood filled and stretched his cock, making

a snug seal against the velvety walls of Kymber's vagina as he spilled into

her.

"Aaaahhh!" Devon's body shook with the effort of filling his mother with

love.

Kymber felt the first spurts splash hot against the entrance of her

womb. "Oh, yes! YES! Fill me, Devon! Fill me with your love, baby!"

Devon collapsed onto the hot softness of his mother's body as the final

spurts of semen flowed into her. Kymber wrapped her arms around her son

and kissed him. Ellie joined the spent lovers.

"Wow, Dev," she said, wiping the sweat from his forehead. "That was

really something!" Weakly, Devon smiled at Ellie.

"I didn't mean to interrupt," he began. "But, Mom, when I saw you and

El like that, I just had to jump in!"

Running her fingers through his damp hair, Kymber returned his smile.

"That's okay, hon. It was about time you and I got together!"

Kymber lay between Devon and Ellie, feeling the love flowing between

them. Not only did she feel closer to them physically but, like Devon, she

felt complete emotionally. As she drifted off to sleep, she wondered what

would happen if the whole family joined the party...

Part III, Chapter Seventeen

"What are you thinking about, Dad?"

Lorne looked up at Etienne's voice as she curled up next to him on the

sofa. "Oh, hi, Peaches." He shifted his position, allowing Eti to put her

head in his lap. "I wasn't thinking about anything really important. I

was just wondering where the family is going."

Eti looked up at him. "Going? I don't understand."

Lorne ran a finger gently along the ridge of Etienne's nose. "Our

future. Where do we go from here?"

Eti was thoughtful. "We've known love and togetherness for years now.

The children couldn't be any more happy. I'm happy and so are you and

Kymber. What more can there be?"

Lorne nodded in agreement. "That's just what I was wondering myself."

He looked out the large plate glass window, watching as Ellie and Devon

played in the pool. Glancing a bit to his right, Kymber was sunning

herself, her red hair standing out against the deep tan on which she'd been

working. Even from where he sat, Lorne could see the strands of silver

which were beginning to appear.

"We've done all right for ourselves, haven't we?"

Eti opened one eye at his question. "We have, indeed." Turning to face

him, she asked, "Dad, what are you worried about?"

"Devon and Eleanor. What effect has our lifestyle had on them?"

"I've never seen a brother and sister so close. They're lovers and,

more important, they're great friends."

"This is true," Lorne allowed.

"So, what's the problem?"

"Well, they're growing up. Soon, they will have to think about finding

their own paths."

"Ah, I see. You're wondering if they'll keep up the family tradition'!"

"Yes! That's it!"

"Dad, if you know that the children will have to find their own way in

life, then you also know it will be their choice."

Of course, Lorne was all too aware of this. "We've learned if you're

going to love one another, there should be no barriers. We've eliminated

guilt from their lives. No, misconceptions, no lies - just love."

"Don't you think they know that?" Etienne looked at the scene taking

place in the yard. Stretched out on a chaise, Ellie was applying sun

screen to Devon's back as he talked to his mother. She waved to Devon to

get his attention. When he looked up, she pointed at Kymber. Devon

reached over and tapped his mother on the leg and pointed toward the house.

Kymber followed his finger and Eti waved for her to come in.

"What's up?" she asked as she closed the sliding door.

"Somebody's worried about the kids," Eti replied, jerking a thumb in

Lorne's direction.

"Again? Honey, I though we talked about this last night?"

Etienne looked at her father, surprised. "You did?" Lorne's only answer

was a shrug.

Eti got up and went to the patio door. "Dev? El? Would you please

come in for a moment?"

The two teenagers exchanged glances. "Sure, Mom," answered Ellie. Once

inside, Eti gestured for them to join the adults in the family room.

"Is there something wrong?" asked Devon.

Without preamble, Eti said "Your father is concerned about your

futures." Ellie and Devon both looked at Lorne, who just threw up his

hands.

"This isn't a big deal!" he protested. "I was just thinking!"

"So, what is he worried about?"

Eti brought the siblings up to speed with Kymber filling in the blanks.

Brother and sister sat thinking for a long moment before speaking. Devon

let Ellie speak first.

"I can understand why you're worried, Dad. I think I speak for both of

us when I say we won't forget the lessons you've taught us."

Devon nodded. "If all we've ever learned was how important love is in a

family, would it be wrong of us not to pass along this knowledge?"

"In order for you to share your knowledge, you have to have someone to

share it with! You two spend more time with each other than you do with

anyone else!" Lorne felt a bit exasperated. Eti placed a hand on his

shoulder tenderly.

"True," answered Devon. "Ellie and I love each other! Why does that

surprise you?"

Ellie took up the challenge. "Isn't this what you and mom and Kymber

has been telling us all these years? For us to love each other?"

Kymber spoke. "That much is true; I guess your father didn't figure on

you two choosing not to have boyfriends and girlfriends."

Devon laughed and reached over to hug his sister. "Mom, there isn't

anyone else I'd rather be with than El. We understand each other,

especially when one of us isn't feeling well."

Ellie returned the hug with equal affection. "As a lover, no one

understands my needs better than Dev. Oh, and you, Dad."

Lorne waved off the explanation. "I knew what you meant, dear. I just

wanted to be sure you were still happy with things, that's all."

Kymber stood and stretched. "Well, we've settled this. Now, how about

we get changed and go out to dinner? My treat!"

As everyone got up, Devon and Ellie pulled Etienne over to one side.

Lorne noticed they were excited about something, although he couldn't hear

the whispered conversation. As he locked the patio door, he heard Eti say,

"Really? Hey, Kymmie - you gotta hear this!" Lorne returned to the family
room in time to see Ellie hand something to Kymber. Kymber stared at the

object in her hand before looking at Devon and Ellie in turn.

"Come on, break it up!" Lorne said while clapping his hands. "Go get

changed and let's eat - I'm starving!"

"Be ready in a minute, Dad." Devon turned and ascended the staircase,

with Ellie right behind him playfully grabbing at his backside.

Kymber handed him the object and headed for the stairs. "What's this?"

he asked. Eti made a beeline for the front door.

From the top of the stairs, Kymber said, "Ellie's pregnancy test

results."

Lorne felt a peculiar chill flow through him as he turned the bit of

plastic over. Bright blue.

Out of sight in the upper hallway, Ellie looked at Kymber. "Do you

think he looked at it?" The trio heard a muffled thump. Kymber peered down

the stairs and spotted the prone form of her husband.

"Yeah, he saw it all right!" She turned to her son. "Congratulations,

Dev."

ETIENNE: LEARNING TO LOVE

Part IV, Chapter One

Devon Williams paced the room like a caged animal, deep in thought,

waiting for his parents to return from their outing. He stopped and looked

out the window as if searching for the answer to some unknown question

before continuing his frenetic motion.

His sister, Ellie, watched from her place on the sofa, her hands

absently rubbing the round swelling in her abdomen. "I don't know what

you're worried about," she said. "Dad is reasonable and he shouldn't find

your proposal unusual."

Devon stopped his pacing to look at his pregnant sister, feeling first

the love he had for her before experiencing a moment of frustration.

"Yeah, I know. I'm just trying to figure out how I'm going to approach it

with him."

Ellie's eyes rolled heavenward as she shook her head. "Just tell him

what's on your mind, silly! That's the easiest way to go about it."

"Hah! Easy for you to say." The young man continued pacing the room.

Ellie continued to watch her brother and father of her child prowl the

room for a few more minutes before getting up to intercept him, grunting

with the effort. At seven months, moving around had taken on a different

meaning. As she stood, the baby shifted position and spent a few queasy

moments getting comfortable. She caught up to him and took his hand.

"Dev?"

"Ellie?"

"I can think of something you can do more productively than walking a

hole in the carpet."

Smiling, Devon said, "I'm sure you can! What's on your horny mind this

time?"

Returning his smile with one of her own, Ellie placed his hand on her

breast, filled with milk for their unborn child. "What's on my mind is

lust, my dear brother. I'm not one to complain, but you've been shirking

your duties here lately."

Devon looked into Ellie's expectant face then looked down at her

stomach. Ellie followed his glance.

"Oh, don't let that stop you! I suppose you're thinking loving me will

harm the little one?" Devon nodded.

"Well, don't. He or she is quite safe, more than I can say for you."

Ellie reached down and grabbed his crotch, feeling his cock stirring.

Before he could utter a word in protest, Ellie covered his mouth with hers,

forcing her tongue into his mouth. Reflex took over as Devon responded to

the kiss, returning it with equal passion.

"Wanna go upstairs?" he asked as their lips parted.

"No. Take me right here, right now!" Ellie began unfastening his pants

as Devon nibbled at her neck and ears. "Ooh, now you're getting the right

idea!"

Devon grunted a reply as he stepped out of his pants, nearly losing his

balance as Ellie tugged at his briefs, finally freeing his swelling member.

Ellie stepped back from their embrace and removed her own constricting

clothing as Devon removed his T-shirt, adding it to the pile at their feet.

Gingerly, Ellie knelt before Devon and ran her tongue along the

underside of his shaft, making her brother sway slightly. "Mm, tasty," she

cooed as she took him into her mouth and sucked gently on the tip. Filling

both hands with his firm buttocks, she tongued the crown with quick,

teasing movements, losing herself in the pleasure.

Devon rocked slightly as Ellie filled her mouth with more of his rigid

shaft, his knees buckling as the pleasure intensified. Her mouth as warm

and moist against him as she licked his sac, sucking each testicle gently

into her mouth and covering them generously with saliva. "I could just eat

you alive," she said, looking up at his ecstasy-filled face while stroking

him with her hand.

Devon knelt in front of her and kissed her deeply, relishing his salty

taste on her lips before lowering his head to a swollen nipple. His tongue

teased the erect flesh, drawing lazy circles around the darkened areola

while his hand cupped the fleshy pendant of breast. Capturing the nipple,

he sucked hard, greedily slurping down his reward of warm milk.

"Ow! Not so hard!" Ellie protested. She cradled his head and held him

close as he suckled her, feeling strangely content and more excited.

"Sorry," he whispered. "It just tastes so damn good." He repeated his

attack on her other nipple, lest it started to feel neglected. The warm

milk splashing into his mouth heightened his arousal while reminding him of

the time he spent at his mother's breast. With his thirst slaked, he eased

his sister onto her back, now in search of something more potent to partake

of.

Ellie spread her legs - not an easy task - to allow her brother access

to her damp center, catching the musky, heady scent of her sex. As Devon

mouth met her swollen labia, she couldn't keep from thinking of the thrills

he was about to give her. If Devon had one strong suit, other than his

incredible stamina, it was his ability to knock her senseless with his

mouth and tongue on her pussy. He just seemed to know every nook and

cranny and every ultra-sensitive spot. She shuddered, feeling the rasp of

his tongue against her inner lips, probing her defenses momentarily before

stiffening and plunging into her inner folds.

Devon placed his hands under Ellie, lifting her to his mouth. As his

tongue penetrated her, he could feel the slick juices smearing themselves

against his face. He probed her deeply and slowly, enjoying the sensory

show of taste, feel, and smell. Hot and pungent, he tasted her sex,

feeling the tremors which ran against his invading tongue.

Ellie experienced a moment of disappointment as his tongue exited her

sheath, but not for long. She inhaled sharply as he sucked her clitoris

into his eager mouth. "Oh, baby! Yes! Ooh, I just love it!" Ellie moved

against him as he lapped her juices, knowing he wouldn't stop until...

The orgasmic tide swept over her without the usual warnings. One moment

she was warm and content, working her heated love furiously to keep up with

his blistering pace. The next moment found her suddenly caught in an

explosion of ecstatic bliss. Ellie squirted jet after jet of tangy fluid

into his mouth as she thrust savagely against his face.

Devon bore the orgasmic onslaught as he fought to keep up with the

stinging jets of love juices, now spilling from his mouth and flowing down

his already slick chin. Giving his sister a few more licks for good

measure, he rose and turned the helpless woman onto her knees. Before

using his own knees as a wedge to spread her, Devon reached over and

grabbed a handful of discarded clothing and placed them under her swollen

belly. That done, he impaled her onto his turgid shaft with one long,

slow, careful thrust. Feeling Ellie's puffy inner sheath close around his

prick, he sighed. "Oh, this feels so good."

Ellie could only respond with a moan as her brother penetrated her

deeply, adding to the full feeling already present. With her head propped

on her arms, she gave in to his urgent thrusts, each rocking her. She

loved the way he spread her sex wide, loved the feel of the ridges of veins

which ran along the moderately thick shaft of his penis. Ellie felt the

knob of his cock bump against her womb carefully. It wasn't painful -

Devon knew better than to allow himself to get carried away. It only

served to remind her that his pleasure was hers - and oh, how he was

pleasing her!

Devon could feel his cock growing larger inside Ellie, knowing it

wouldn't be long before he released his own love into her. "Oh, shit," he

exclaimed, his eyes growing wide with wonder as he ejaculated, pumping his

white stickiness into her steamy center. The initial shock wave slammed

into him as his hips ground into her.

"Umm, that's right my love. I want it all!" Ellie felt him flooding her

with his love and flexed her inner muscles to milk out every drop.

Exhausted, Devon withdrew from Ellie's fleshy prison, feeling the

pain/pleasure as her walls scraped along the now-tender shaft of his

maleness. He helped his sister turn onto her side before sitting next to

her.

"You know, Sis, you were right. That was much more fun than pacing and

worrying."

"Worrying about what?" came a new voice. As Ellie propped herself on

one elbow, Devon turned toward the sound.

Seated on the sofa, Lorne looked at his children, barely able to hide

his amusement. Seated at either side of him, Etienne and Kymber had

matched looks of happiness. Devon stood and crossed the short distance

between his other family members.

"Dad, Mom. Aunt Eti. It's good to have you home."

Bending to kiss his mother and aunt, both women could savor the taste of

lust still on his lips. He knelt before his father, acknowledging him with

a solemn nod of his head. After a moment, Ellie joined him.

Lorne felt strangely king-like at this display of fealty; his queens' at

his side while the prince and princess supplicated themselves before him.

"I trust all is well," he said, shaking off the odd feeling. "At least, it

looked like everything is still working."

Both offspring blushed. "As usual, it was Ellie's fault," Devon

responded.

Ellie took the bait. "It's always my fault! I can't help it if he's

good at what he does!"

Eti and Kymber looked at each other, their smiles widening. "They do

look quite good together, don't they?" quipped Kymber.

"They do seem to, ah, fit each other perfectly," added Etienne.

Lorne laughed. "They do at that!" He playfully tapped Devon on the jaw.

"A chip off the old block, I think."

Both Ellie and Devon basked in the love their parents had for them.

Ellie poked Devon with an elbow. "Now is a good time."

"It is not!", Devon protested. "It can wait. They just got in."

Lorne looked from one to the other. "What is it a good time for and why

can it wait? You know the rules, kids; if there's something that has to be

discussed, there's no time like now to do it."

When Devon hesitated, Ellie poked him harder. Devon winced. "Okay,

okay! Stop poking me!"

"Dad, I need to talk to you about something." Looking at his sister,

aunt and mother, he added, "Alone, if possible."

"We've never had any secrets between us, son," Lorne said with a small

frown.

"Oh, I don't have anything to hide, but, shit, it's sort of a 'guy'

thing."

Kymber and Etienne stood, going over to Ellie to help her stand. "Okay,

guys, we can take a hint. Come on, El, let's get this mess cleaned up and

go do our 'woman' thing and leave the men-folk to their business!"

Both men looked at the departing women, shaking their heads in unison.

"I don't know about them sometime," remarked Devon.

"Me either," added his father. Looking back at his son, he asked,

"Would you like to talk here or somewhere else?"

Devon looked around the room before saying, "Can we talk in your study?"

"Sure. You wanna put something on?"

"No. Besides, they took my clothes with them."

Shrugging, Lorne rose and led his son to the study. As they entered the

room, Devon took a moment to examine the added-on room's furnishings,

noting how they reflected his father's tastes. Lorne motioned to the small

sofa and they sat.

"So! What's on your mind, son?"

Devon thought for a moment before answering. "You know I have nothing

but love and respect for you, right?"

Lorne nodded in agreement, but didn't rush the younger man.

"Then you also know I fully support the way we live our lives together."

Another nod.

"In that case, would you mind answering a question for me?"

"Not at all," Lorne answered, wondering where this conversation was

headed.

"You've said we should - and could - openly show our love for each

other. There's no bad feeling between us if I'm making love to mom or

Etienne or even El."

"This is true. What's your question?"

Devon shifted nervously against the leather-covered mini-sofa. "My

question is, well, why haven't you and I done the same for each other?"

Startled, Lorne's mouth opened as if to answer, only to be cut off by

Devon's upraised hand.

"I've wanted to make love with you for a very long time and I was

wondering if there was some reason we haven't."

Lorne sat in stunned silence, his head swimming. The question hit him

like a ton of bricks, leaving him with a numb feeling. "I... I never

thought. . ."

Devon cast an apologetic look in Lorne's direction. "Dad, don't let it

bother you too much; there was no way for you to know. I've been debating

it for a long time and, finally, I've gotten around to asking."

He swallowed before adding, "I don't expect anything to come of this,

but I had to ask."

Finished, Devon sat back and enjoyed the feeling of relief washing over

him. In posing the question to his sire, a great weight had been lifted

from him.

Lorne looked at his son, taking note of the calm etched on his face,

wishing he felt what Devon was feeling. Finally, he found his voice.

"Son, I have to be honest with you. It never crossed my mind. We've

always said things should happen on their own and, damn, up till now, it's

never happened."

"Doesn't mean I never wanted it to happen."

"True enough. Clearly, you have me at a disadvantage."

"I know; I should have made my feelings known before now and I accept

responsibility for not doing so."

"Dev, it's not about accepting responsibility! It's about being happy

with each other! To tell the truth, I'm flattered to know you have these

feelings for me."

Devon visibly relaxed and looked into his father's eyes. In them, he

saw nothing but love and honesty. "Can I offer more explanation?"

"Please," Lorne urged, now becoming intrigued.

"Remember, oh, a few weeks ago, when you and mom were in the pool?

Well, I was in my room listening to music when I saw you two going at it."

Lorne felt a flush of excitement as he recalled the day. He had taken

Kymber right there in the pool, the sun-warmed waters adding myriad

sensations to a particularly lust-filled moment.

Since he remembered, Devon continued. "When you climbed out of the

pool, I got a good look at you and knew I had to have you." A small

chuckle, followed by, "Seeing you naked and still a little hard got me

really excited, so much I had to, ahem, take matters into my own hand."

"When mom got out and started sucking you, I was wondering what it would

feel like to have you in my mouth." Devon's voice took on a dreamlike

quality. "Years of frustration came to the front as she did you and I

watched, doing myself. I was so hot watching you two together - you guys
always did excite me - and I decided to say something about it."

It did not surprise Lorne to know Devon watched them while they made

love. Wasn't the first time nor likely to be the last. He was surprised,

however, to learn he was the object of Devon's love.

"Still, Dad, you gotta know I haven't given up on mom and the others. I

might be hornier than the average son, but I'm not crazy!"

Lorne felt a strange combination of excitement, pride, and

embarrassment. His mind flashed back to the night of the party and he

remembered feeling Geoff's steely member invading his then-virgin backside.

In retrospect, he supposed it wasn't all that bad, but alcohol and lust

always produced some interesting results.

Looking back at his naked son, he had to notice the younger man's cock

resting in the crease created by the joining of thigh and abdomen, covered

by the dried secretions left behind from his romp with Ellie.

"Son, I don't know what to say," he finally said. "I more than

appreciate your interest and I have to admit it could be interesting."

Devon relaxed, his fear of being rejected passing over him. "I'm glad

you understand, Dad. Like I said, you've taught us to love each other

without exception and, well, I feel our time has come."

Lorne took a deep breath and knew the truth of Devon's words. "Yes,

you're quite right. As a family, we have to experience love totally or not

at all." In his mind, a switch tripped over, completing a connection and he

knew what he had to do. Reaching across the short distance between them,

Lorne took Devon's hand. "Stand up."

Devon rose and Lorne guided him until the younger man faced him. As

Lorne drew his son closer, he felt a tingle of excitement at crossing

another checkpoint in his life. His eyes took in the sight of Devon's

maleness, watching it stir as it filled with blood. Without a second

thought, he took the rounded knob of Devon's cock between his lips.

In truth, Lorne had never done this before and the tactile sensations at

this first contact assaulted his senses. Tangy with dried juices and silky

smooth despite the rapid hardening taking place, Lorne took more of his

son's flesh into his mouth, twirling his tongue along the shaft.

Devon sighed as more of his cock disappeared into his father's mouth.

It felt so right, so complete. He reached down and gently caressed his

father's face, feeling the bulge in his cheeks.

Lorne experienced a moment of panic as the swollen head of Devon's shaft

made its way into his throat, causing him to gag. He backed off and the

choking feeling vanished, allowing him to lavish much needed attention to

the bulbous head and thick shaft. He sucked noisily, getting into the

passion of the moment. Withdrawing until only the head remained, Lorne

sucked hard on the spongy flesh and ran his tongue along the underside of

the crown.

Devon shuddered and his knees buckled slightly. He felt strong hands on

his buttocks supporting him. His cock was still a bit tender; the pain and

pleasure changing places from one moment to the next. This was everything

he had ever hoped for...

Lost in the new sensations, Lorne grew bolder, taking Devon's pulsing

member deep into his throat. He ignored his gag reflex as his nose nestled

against the curly pubic hairs of Devon's pelvis. His hands gently massaged

the tight sac of the younger man's testes and he wondered why he'd never

done this before! His own cock strained against his body as he repeated

the motion, savoring the delicious feel which pleased something deep inside

him.

It wasn't long before Devon's shaft grew thicker, the ripples running

along the shaft signaling his impending release of sperm. "Oh, Dad, yes.

I'm gonna do it! I'm gonna..."

Lorne wisely withdrew back to the head of Devon's cock as the first

spurts of cream flowed into his mouth. Devon's body convulsed as he pumped

love into his mouth, thick and hot. The salty taste surprised him - but he

drank from Devon's fountain just the same until Lorne consumed the last

drop.

Lorne sat back, breathing hard, his mind was a swirling mass of

emotions. "Wow," he thought. "That was really something!" Devon was down

on one knee trying to shake the fuzzy feeling from his head left by his

orgasm. Lorne smiled as the young man's body continued to tremble as the

intense feeling ran its course. The elder Williams felt the soothing peace

mixed in with his own need for release.

"Not bad for a rookie, huh?"

Devon raised his head and tried to focus his eyes on the smiling face in

front of him. "I'll say! That was. . . wow!" Devon's words trailed off

as a stray convulsion ripped through his body, leaving him feeling

lightheaded. Still feeling a bit dizzy, he knelt before Lorne and released

the turgid flesh trapped inside. Free of the confining material, Lorne's

cock sprang forward, a long strand of clear lubricant landing against

Devon's cheek.

"Now, it's your turn," he murmured, closing his hand around the hot

flesh and pumping it. "I've been waiting for this moment for a long

time..." Devon flicked out his tongue, letting it wrap around Lorne's cock.

For Devon, this was more than just an opportunity to satisfy his bisexual

cravings. It was a chance for him to give thanks to the man responsible

for his existence. He wanted to taste the seed which gave him life.

Lorne watched in fascination as his son's pink tongue made its way down

his engorged shaft, leaving a wet trail of saliva. He felt a hot, enticing

queasiness as Devon lavished attention to his scrotum, sucking each of the

large, almond-shaped testicles into his mouth before slowly making his way

to the mushroom-shaped crown - which he promptly made disappear between

surprisingly sensual lips.

"How much like his mother he looks," Lorne thought idly, watching the

thick shaft vanish between pouting lips. Feeling the full heat of his

passion, Lorne thrust gently into his son's mouth, delighting in the feel

of Devon's quivering, raspy tongue as it touched him. Reaching down, Lorne

entwined his fingers in Devon's moderately long hair as the young man
pleasured him.

Filled with his father's cock, Devon grunted with the effort of keeping

a steady rhythm. "He's so big," he thought, again trying to swallow the

older man whole.

"Relax your throat and breathe through your nose," came a soft voice.

"Just let it slide into your mouth, honey - don't fight it."

Lorne opened an eye and found Kymber sitting on the arm of the sofa, an

aura of love surrounding her. She smiled at her husband. "I was wondering

what was taking so long."

Lorne could only mumble a reply as Devon heeded his mother's advice. In

the space of a single breath, he could feel Devon's nose nestled against

the base of his cock.

Kymber left her perch on the sofa and knelt beside her son. "That's it,

baby. Suck him good! Show him how much you want this, how much you love

him." She ran her hands along his perspiring body, letting her nails trail

along the exposed skin of his back. Devon was awash with passion, all of

his senses under assault. Encouraged by his mother's gentle urging, he

increased his sucking motion.

Lorne felt an odd separation; one part of him was close to orgasm, not

caring about anything except reaching the summit. Another part watched

impassively as Kymber leaned forward and whispered something into her son's

ear. Lorne saw the boy nod - and his eyes went wide as a stiff finger

penetrated his backside. The sudden invasion caught Lorne completely off

guard; the slowly approaching wave suddenly increased speed and crashed

into him -- hard.

Devon felt the war of contractions in his father's body. The tight ring

of muscle clamped down on his finger as the first spurts of creamy seed

splashed into and filled his hungry mouth. Devon tried to capture as much

of the sweet reward as possible, but found the love too much for him to

keep up with as little rivers of love seeped from the tight seal his mouth

made on the jerking manhood.

Lorne's hands clutched the cushions as wave after wave of intense

pleasure cycled through every pore in his body while Devon's finger,

feeling like a hot poker, probed his bottom. He gasped as his son consumed

the final dregs of his ejaculate and his cock, softening, lay throbbing

against his belly. Gingerly, Lorne removed himself from the invading

finger, while feeling the blood pounding in every part of his body.

"You've done this before, haven't you?", Lorne asked, his composure

finally returning. Devon looked up at him with... admiration? Lorne

wasn't sure what he saw in that fleeting moment and, frankly, he didn't

care right now.

"First time for me, too," came the quiet reply. "You okay?"

Lorne took in a deep breath. "I'm fine, son. Thank you."

"No, my father, thank you! You've made my life complete and I love you

for it." Devon leaned forward and placed his head in his father's lap,

stopping along the way to plant a wet kiss on the now-soft instrument of

pleasure.

Kymber knelt between the exhausted men. "You really look good together.

Lorne?"

"Yes, dear?"

"Do you know how much he loves you?"

"If I didn't know before, I know now." Lorne sat quietly, his mind

taking in the recent events.

"How was it for you?"

"Giving or receiving?"

"Take your pick; I'd like to hear both sides."

As Lorne prepared to share his feelings with Kymber, they were joined by

Etienne.

"I feel like I missed something," she said sitting next to Kymber.

"Lorne was about to tell me his feelings about Devon, weren't you

honey?"

Nodding, Lorne spoke. "It was so different! Before I even realized it,

I had him in my mouth."

Eti flashed Kymber a questioning look. Kymber shook her head and placed

a slim finger to her lips.

"I found myself thinking about a couple of things. One, I couldn't

believe I was doing this. As I sucked more of him, it started to feel. . .

good."

Eti looked at her father, with love in her eyes. "It's hard to

describe, isn't it?"

"Yes, it is. Feeling him in my mouth and hearing his moans of pleasure

electrified me, filled me with so much desire to continue."

"Now you know how we feel when we're doing you. It's so very special."

Lorne nodded before continuing. "Kym, when he came, I could feel him

growing in my mouth right before the first spurt. For some reason, I felt

really proud of myself."

Etienne agreed with her father. "It's a good feeling when it spills out

and, of course, it just taste so yummy!"

Lorne stood and stretched, frowning at the popping sounds his body made.

Going over to the framed photograph of the family, he stared at it for a

long minute before turning to wife and daughter.

"You know, when he started on me, I thought it wouldn't be any different

than having one of you doing it."

"What did you learn, Dad?"

"I learned it's as different as night and day, with the main difference

being attitude."

"Attitude?" Kymber and Eti exchanged a puzzled look.

"I was thinking that another man was making love to my cock. At first,

I was a little scared, but after a few minutes, my whole outlook on the

deal changed. It stopped being a question of a man-on-man thing, becoming

one person loving another." Lorne shook his head. "It takes some getting

used to, doesn't it?"

Etienne and Kymber joined him, wrapping their arms around him. "You'll

get used to it soon enough," Kymber assured him.

Part IV, Chapter Two

Ellie stood in front of the full length mirror, examining her naked form

while gently cupping one milk-filled breast in one hand. Turning to one

side she frowned, noticing her distended abdomen. Absently, she ran her

hands along the curves of her belly, shaking her head. Although her

pregnancy was proceeding well, Ellie still felt awed with the knowledge a

child was growing inside her.

The young woman slipped into her nightgown before crossing the room,

turning off the light and curling up in her bed. Outside, the night sky

was clear, the quarter moon casting its pale light onto the freshly fallen

snow. Snowflakes carried on the wind glittered past the window as Ellie

took stock of her life.

"One more month to go. God, I'm so tired."

Carefully, she shifted her position, wishing the baby would stop kicking

long enough for her to get comfortable. Patting her tummy, she said, "Oh,

be still!" As if her plea was heard, the baby finally settled in one place

- for now. Ellie breathed a sigh of relief, returning to her thoughts.

Something was missing from her life, she decided. Trying to identify

the missing ingredient was proving to be more difficult than she had

expected. Ellie knew she wasn't suffering from a lack of love; between

Devon, Kymber and her parents, there was plenty of love and attention to go

around several times.

Ellie felt warm and secure as she thought about each member of the

family. There was Devon; brother, friend, lover and father of her baby.

Probably the most attentive of anyone in the family, he saw to her every

need. Not from a sense of obligation, mind you; Lorne had made it clear

that love shouldn't be looked at as an obligation or chore.

Ellie smiled as her brother's strong features faded from her mind, being

replaced by the fine, gentle features of her aunt, Kymber, the family's

free-spirit who always looked to the bright side of any situation. Her

cool green eyes, however, hid a mischievous, playful nature and a bold,

brash sexuality. The flame-haired vision was replaced by the calm,

intelligent face of her mother. Whenever a situation got out of hand, mom
was always there, able to say just the right thing to set everything right

for everyone. Just a hint of a smile creased Ellie's face as she thought

of the sexual hellion hidden beneath the calm exterior.

Last, but certainly not least, there was her father. Ellie blinked in

surprise at the sudden surge of lust she felt, her nipples tingling as they

became erect. Lorne represented all which was right in the world.

Dedicated, unselfish, and, as far as Ellie was concerned, all-knowing in

that he would never steer the family in the wrong direction.

As her father's face faded away, Ellie became more aware of the tingling

making its way through her body, heightening her senses. From Devon's

room, she could hear love being made. The slightly muffled grunts and

groans increased the feelings inside her, causing her to shift

uncomfortably.

"I'm horny," she thought. Through the closed door, she could hear - her

mother? - cry out in delight at whatever Devon was doing to her.

As the sounds of passion increased, so did Ellie's discomfort. Reaching

across the wide expanse of stomach, her fingers sought and found her

center, parting the full lips of her vulva to expose her clitoris.

However, before she could begin to ease the itch, Ellie heard a soft

tapping on the bedroom door.

Frustrated, she called out, "Come in - it's open!"

The door opened and Lorne poked his head in. "Hi, baby! I just stopped

by to check on you."

Ellie was pleased - and electrified; her father's appearance would fill

the bill just fine!

In a voice husky with mounting lust, she said, "Just the person I was

looking for." Ellie slid over to allow Lorne to sit next to her.

"You were looking for... mmpff!"

Any further words were cut off as Ellie covered her father's mouth with

hers, filling the moist cavern with her tongue. Her hands were busy,

literally tearing the shirt from his back before fumbling with his belt

buckle. It took a little doing, but after a few frantic seconds, the belt

gave way, allowing Ellie to free Lorne's rapidly swelling manhood.

Taken completely by surprise, all Lorne could do was succumb to the

attack and hold on for dear life. He felt the cool rush of air on his

exposed flesh for only a brief moment, before being replaced by the hot

wetness of Ellie's mouth. He groaned as Ellie pushed him back onto the

bed. Lifting her head for only a moment, Ellie's words were almost a growl.

"Oh, yes. I've been looking for you! I need you and I will have you!"

With an ease which belied her gravid condition, Ellie rolled onto her

father's prone form and continued the assault on his cock, while exposing

her musky center to him. Her hands and mouth worked in concert to send

wave after wave of pleasure rippling through her prisoner.

With her lust in full control, Ellie slid Lorne's tool deep into her

throat, relishing the feel of its length and thickness which pulsed with

each beat of his heart. drawing back until only the head remained, Ellie

began a vicious attack, allowing her teeth to scrape against the spongy

mass while her tongue rasped across the sensitive underside.

Lorne wasn't sure of what the hell was happening. He did know, however,

he needed to do something - and fast. Reaching up, he filled his hands

with her ass cheeks, drawing her luscious dampness to his mouth. The tip

of his nose buried itself within the folds of Ellie's inner labia as he

sucked on her clitoris, causing the young woman to squirm against his face.

Ellie held her head still, allowing her tongue to play along the crown

and shaft of Lorne's maleness, all the while savoring the dizzying

sensations provided by his experienced mouth. She could feel him quivering

in her mouth, signaling his pending release.

"Oh, no you don't. I gotta have this where it will do the most good."

Ellie disengaged herself from Lorne's mouth, leaving him with a feeling of

loss. Turning, she positioned herself over his erection, feeling an

exhilarating rush of pleasure as the spongy head passed through her wet

lips.

"Uh, baby," Lorne began. "I don't think..."

"Shut up. I know what I'm doing."

Lorne was taken aback at the sharp rebuke, an odd sense of excitement

flowing through him at her forcefulness. Doing as he was ordered, Lorne

fell silent as Ellie lowered more of her body onto his shaft.

The feeling was indescribable; with her belly full of child, Ellie was

tight, yet her inner sheath had a velvety feel to it, surrounding his cock

with such a delicious feeling he almost exploded on the spot.

"Come on! Give it to me, damn you! Fill me with your stickiness."

Ellie rode Lorne's stiffness carefully but with purpose, wanting to feel

him spurting inside her folds, wanting him to put out the fire inside.

"Stop holding it back, Dad - you know what I need!" Ellie shuddered as

her orgasm slammed into her, the flow of lubricating juices increasing.

"Yeah, that's what I'm talking about! Give me more! GIVE ME MORE!!"

Lorne was stunned - where did this wild woman come from? His eyes

widened with increasing wonder as the flow of obscenities continued, adding

to his excitement.

"Oh, yeah! Oh, yeah! I love you so much!" Ellie's moans of pleasure

were like music to his ears as she rode out yet another orgasmic wave,

grinding her soaked sex hard into his pelvic bone. Lorne could feel

Ellie's vaginal muscles gripping him with varying tightness. He reached

up, placing his hands on her swollen belly and began to rub gently.

"Damn it, oh damn it all to hell!," cried Ellie, giving herself to the

heat of passion. "I need you to cream me, my love - I need you to do...

it... NOW!"

Spurred on by her impassioned pleas, Lorne relaxed his control and was

instantly caught up in the torrent of emotions. His sac tightened almost

painfully, sending the familiar tremors racing up his thickening shaft.

"Here, baby - here it is!" he groaned as his seed spilled into her.

"Ahhh, yes, yes, yes..." Ellie was just on the other side of heaven as

her father continued to fill her with his semen, hot and sticky, feeling

the strong pulses inside her while Lorne emptied himself into her flesh,

cooling the fires - for now.

Spent and still a bit confused, Lorne helped the exhausted young woman

onto her side before withdrawing from her steamy center with a wet,

slurping sound. Looking down at Ellie, he could see the smile on her face

as well as the happiness in her eyes.

As the intense fires banked themselves into something a bit more

manageable, Ellie looked up at her sire, feeling all the love in the world.

"Umm, I really needed you. I feel so much better now."

Lorne looked down at his second child for a long moment before asking,

"What got into you?"

Ellie laughed softly. "You did, silly!"

Rolling his eyes heavenward, Lorne said, "You know what I mean."

"Yeah, I know." Ellie took a moment to get the giddy feelings under

control before continuing. "I had to have you - that's the best way I can

explain it. I was lying here, thinking about you and got this crazy urge

to just take advantage of you."

Her look became serious. "Oh, damn."

"What's wrong?" Immediate concern creased Lorne's features.

"I said some pretty outrageous things, didn't I?"

Relieved, Lorne allowed himself to smile. "Yeah, I'll say. Didn't know

you knew words like that!"

"You're not angry are you?"

"Angry? No, darling. Actually, it was kind of exciting." Lorne leaned

over and kissed Ellie's brow. "In fact, it was very exciting - we should

do this again some time." Lorne sat up and stretched.

"Daddy?"

"Yes, my love?"

"Please stay with me tonight."

"Are you sure you want me to? I won't be able to guarantee you'll get

any sleep."

"Yes, I want you to. And, I'm counting on not getting much sleep

tonight."

Discarding the remnants of his shirt and trousers, Lorne slid into the

bed next to Ellie, who settled into his arms.

"Are you okay?"

Ellie's sleepy reply said it all. "Uh-huh. I love you so very much..."

Ellie dropped off to sleep immediately.

"And I you," he whispered, stroking her face with his hand. Settling

in, he closed his eyes, feeling the baby moving within her. Lorne smiled

at the sensation as sleep claimed him.

Part IV, Chapter Three

Lorne was having the most delicious dream. His cock was being licked

and sucked by some unknown person who was doing a fantastic job of

providing him with so many different sensations. Warm, soft hands caressed

and soothed him as he grew closer to climax. In his dream, Lorne thrust

his hips gently, not wanting to disturb the insistent rhythm of the mouth

on his flesh. It wasn't long before his passion caught up with him as he

exploded into the waiting mouth while the unseen hands milked every

precious drop from him.

Lorne opened his eyes - and realized he hadn't been dreaming, finding

himself surrounded by Devon, Ellie, Kymber and Eti, who were involved in a

group kissing session, licking his seed from each other's lips.

"I thought I was dreaming," Lorne said. The quartet turned and looked

at him, smiles spreading across their faces.

"Morning, Dad," beamed Devon.

"Good morning, darling," offered a smiling Kymber.

"Hi, Dad," chorused Eti and Ellie together.

"You folks really know how to wake a person up! What did I do to

deserve such a reception?"

Devon spoke for the group. "Nothing, Dad. We did it because we love

you. Do we need a reason other than that?"

"I guess not! Thank you, one and all." Sitting up, Lorne stretched and

asked, "What's on the agenda for today?"

Lorne made his way to the bathroom as the family discussed what they

wanted to do. As the water for his shower grew warmer, Lorne noticed the

silence from the other room. Turning he headed for the door, only to run

into a wild-eyed Devon.

"Dad! Something's happening to Ellie!"

Ignoring the running water, Lorne dashed from the bathroom to find Ellie

holding her stomach - and sitting in a pool of fluid. He quickly assessed

the situation - it was time!

"Go find your mother and Etienne. Tell them Ellie's water has broken -

they'll know what to do."

"Right. On my way!" Devon headed for the door.

"And, son?"

"Yeah, Dad?"

"Better get dressed - you're in for a long day!"

Devon looked down at himself as if just realizing his nakedness. "Oh,

yeah. Clothes would be good, huh?" Smiling, he rushed down the hallway to

dress and join the mother of his child in her efforts.

Hurrying to get dressed, Lorne couldn't keep from feeling like history

was repeating itself.

* * *

Kendra Etienne Williams came into the world kicking and screaming

lustily. Drenched with the perspiration of her efforts, Ellie watched as

nurses tended to the newborn. The drops of silver nitrate were applied and

Kendra was gently washed, dried and wrapped in an insulated blanket before

being passed off to Dr. Carl Hendricks.

"Someone wants to say hello," said the smiling doctor. Dr. Hendricks

handed the squirming bundle to Ellie, placing it into her arms.

The bond was established as mother and child looked at each other.

Kendra fell silent at once, somehow knowing she was in good hands.

"She's beautiful."

Ellie looked up at Devon, giving him a tired smile. Devon was doing

some recovering of his own. The long hours in the labor room had been hard

on him, witnessing Ellie's agony and not being able to do anything about

it. He had spent much of the time kicking himself, knowing Ellie wouldn't

be in such pain were it not for his involvement.

The nurses came over to take Kendra off to the nursery while others

prepared to move Ellie to her room, where the two would be reunited later.

Tossing his soiled gloves into a nearby hamper, Dr. Hendricks crossed the

room and stood next to Devon, not wanting to spoil the moment.

"That is one pretty little girl," the doctor commented. "She's lucky to

have parents like you." Carl looked at Devon, watching for the younger

man's reaction.

Devon's heart felt as if it had been encased in ice as he turned to face

the older man.

"'Parents', Doctor? I'm afraid you're mistaken. I'm Ellie's brother
and she asked me to be here with her through this."

"Son, I know you are her brother. I also know you're Kendra's father."

Panic welled inside of Devon - but he kept his cool. "Doctor, that's a

pretty strong accusation. One which could, ah, get people in a lot of

trouble."

"You're right," Carl conceded. "It's a strong accusation, but the

truth. I know it and you know it."

As they exited the scrub room into the hallway, Devon cast desperate

glances for any signs of his family. Turning the corner, he saw them

walking hurriedly in the direction of the nursery - and knew he was on his

own.

Carl Hendricks steered Devon into an empty room and closed the door.

For long minutes, the two men just looked at each other, waiting for the

other to break.

Devon tried his very best to remain calm and determined; however, the

OB/GYN was used to waiting and his patience seemed limitless. Devon

decided to go on the offensive.

"So you think there's something funny going on, huh?"

"Think? Son, I know it - and I can prove it." Carl allowed himself a

smile, knowing he had Devon at a disadvantage.

Devon knew it too, but held his ground. "What is your proof?"

Carl Hendricks' smile grew wider. "You are, of course, aware of the

genetic analyzer your father invented some years ago?"

Devon nodded, not getting the doctor's point.

"It's very useful in our pre- and postnatal testing. In fact, every

child born at this hospital in the last twenty years has been tested using

your father's invention. Quite a piece of machinery."

"What's your point, doctor?"

"My point is this: We keep all of the test results. Yours is on file,

as is Ellie's. We tested Kendra before and after being delivered. In

comparing the prenatal results, I found something interesting." Hendricks

paused, adding a bit of drama.

"I found that the three of you share the same genetic codes."

"How do you figure that?" Devon's anger was mounting.

"Easy, son. It's a matter of routine for us. One of the benefits of

your father's invention is that we can find genetic errors before they can

become a problem. In this case, I checked Ellie's scan for problems and

didn't find any. As a comparison, I checked yours, since it was available.

Again, no problems."

"Then I checked the prenatal scans we did on Kendra..."

"And you found them similar." Devon sat heavily on the stool behind him.

"Bingo. Too similar to be just a coincidence."

"Why are you telling me this and what are you going to do?" Devon braced

himself for the expected threat.

"I'm telling you this to warn you. What I'm going to do is...

nothing."

"Warn me? I don't get it."

Dr. Hendricks sighed. "If I found out, others can find out. And they

may not be as understanding as I am." He turned and opened the door.

"Wait. What's to say you won't go to the authorities?"

"Son, I understand the situation between you and Ellie - I've been there

myself." He smiled at Devon before disappearing into the hallway.

Devon watched the doctor leave, feeling uncertain and very vulnerable.

He stepped into the hallway and headed towards the nursery to find his

family.

* * *

Lorne stood at the entrance to Ellie's room, his eyes scanning the

corridor for any signs of Devon. Minutes before, Carl Hendricks came by to

check on Ellie and to offer his congratulations. As they shook hands, Carl

winked at him and left him with a cryptic message.

"You've got a great family, Lorne; keep up the good work!"

Lorne was still trying to figure out what he meant when Devon came

around the corner, clearly in a hurry.

"Devon, where have you been? Ellie's been asking about you!"

"I had a talk with Dr. Hendricks a few minutes ago."

"He was just here checking on your sister." Lorne could tell Devon was

upset about something. "Son, what's bothering you?"

"He knows, Dad. He told me he knows about me and Ellie being Kendra's

parents."

"Wait a minute. How does he know?"

"He told me your genetic analyzer told him." Devon gave his father not

quite an accusatory look.

"My genetic... oh, shit," Lorne said, the memory returning.

The genetic analyzer was actually part of the splicing unit he'd

invented years ago while at Carlton Pharmaceuticals. Quite by accident,

they discovered the analyzer could be used to detect genetic errors in

humans. After some quick trials, the government approved it for obstetrics

use first - it had proved more valuable than amniocentesis and other tests

of the time.

"Didn't you know they used it here?"

"Devon, I forgot - I simply forgot."

"I don't see how, Dad; your patent and sales of the analyzer has made

you rich." Devon's tone was scathing.

"I didn't remember its use was SOP for maternity cases. Oh, damn!"

Lorne pounded his fist against the wall, startling a pair of nurses.

Devon went over and placed a hand on his father's shoulder. "Dad,

there's no point in worrying about it now. Hendricks just warned me to be

careful, saying something about his being where I am before."

That explained Hendricks' remark. Obviously, there was more to the good

doctor than met the eye!

"Well, if there's nothing to worry about, let's go see your new

daughter."

ETIENNE: THE NEW BREED

Part V, Chapter One

Kendra giggled in delight as her father nuzzled his face against her

tummy, her little hands trying in vain to ward off the ticklish advance.

"Daddy! Stop!" she managed between giggles. "I give up!" Devon looked

at his daughter, his face flushed with the effort of blowing raspberries

against her smooth skin.

"You'll think twice about smacking me on the butt, won't you?"

Unable to speak, Kendra could only nod.

"Okay - I'll cut you a break this time. But if you do it again..." To

reinforce his mock threat, Devon tilted his head towards Kendra's exposed

tummy, causing the youngster to start giggling again.

"I won't - I promise!"

Ellie sat in the rocking chair, watching the scene with barely hidden
amusement. Since Kendra's birth, so many things had changed within the

family.

Ellie watched as Kendra crept up behind her retreating father, wincing

at the sharp sound of her little hand on her father's backside. More

surprised than hurt, Devon's reaction to the unexpected attack was comical.

As he began a mock pursuit of the little troublemaker, Ellie laughed.

"You'll never catch her, Dev."

"Oh, I'll catch her, all right. And when I do...!"

As the chase intensified, Ellie looked around the house, finding it hard

to believe it was really theirs, even after all the time which had passed.

Ellie's happiness was displaced for just a moment by a feeling of loss.

Four years ago, the family had split up by necessity. Their once spacious

home was now a bit crowded with Kendra's arrival. After talking it over

with Devon, they had decided to set up their own home, much to everyone's

displeasure.

* * *

"You want to do what?"

Lorne looked at his son and daughter, his face registering shock and

surprise at the announcement. Devon swallowed nervously; nonetheless, he

held his ground.

"We want to move out on our own. It's nothing personal, Dad."

"I don't understand why. Aren't you two happy here?"

"Dad, it's not a question of happiness - it's one of necessity."

Lorne looked toward Etienne and Kymber; both women sat silently, wearing

identical calm looks.

"Okay, son. Explain it to me."

Devon stole a look at Ellie, who gave him a much-needed nod of support.

Taking a deep breath, he launched into his explanation.

"You once voiced a concern about our not getting out into the 'real

world' and getting involved with other people. We told you then the only

thing we needed was each other. Since that time, nothing has changed,

except the size of the family."

"Go on," Lorne prompted.

"Since Kendra arrived, Ellie and I have been thinking about getting out

on our own - but we want to stay together. Then we had to think about you

and mom and Aunt Eti, too."

Kymber spoke for the first time. "How did we get into this decision?"

Ellie took up the lead. "Well, you guys deserve to be alone. After

all, Dad's retired and you and mom haven't had to work for years."

"And you're not getting any younger," Devon added.

Etienne calm visage hid just a bit of a smile. "Devon, darling, you

didn't say that last night!"

Chuckles from the assembled family served to lighten what was turning

out to be a tense moment as each remember the literal free-for-all which

had taken place the night before.

"Ah, yeah, well..." Devon stumbled for a reply and, finding none, fell

silent.

Eti raised a hand for silence. "All of this aside, I think we

understand what you're saying." Nods from Lorne and Kymber confirmed her

pronouncement.

"Dad," Devon began, "All we're saying is it's time for us to strike out

on our own. You've provided us with a great deal of love and security and

it's time we repaid you by showing we can survive on the outside."

Lorne had to admit Devon had a point. It was only a few years ago when

he had addressed the same concern to Etienne.

After a few seconds of silence, Lorne made a decision. "Okay. Here's

the deal. You can either stay here and we'll go up to the cabin, or you

can take the cabin."

Devon and Ellie looked at each other.

"That's a rather generous offer Dad," Ellie began. "But we had

something else in mind."

Lorne could barely contain his surprise - but managed. Etienne and

Kymber, however, had surprise written on their lovely features.

"I see. Just what did you have in mind?"

"We were thinking about a little place we saw just south of where the

cabin is. I made some phone calls about it and it is available."

"I assume you can afford this place?"

"Well, we could use just a little help..."

"How much help are we talking about?"

Devon reached into his back pocket and handed his father a folded piece

of paper. After taking it, Lorne took a long look at the notes Devon had

scribbled before passing it to Kymber, who passed it on to Eti.

The elder Williams' sat in complete silence, an action which only served

to make the younger generation nervous. After several minutes, Lorne

finally spoke.

"Will you two excuse us for a moment?"

"Sure, Dad. We have to check on Kendra anyway." Filled with

anticipation, Devon and Ellie left the room.

Making sure they were alone, Kymber broke the silence.

"Now we know what they've been doing with the money we've been giving

them."

Lorne was clearly worried as he spoke. "It isn't really a question of

the money; it's more a question of them being together."

Eti and Kymber both realized the implication Lorne was hinting at. Away

from the relative safety of their home, Devon and Ellie ran the risk of

being exposed to a world which didn't care very much for their chosen

lifestyle.

Kymber finally spoke up. "Honey, I'm sure the kids have thought this

out."

Etienne nodded in agreement, adding, "It's not like they don't

understand the risks involved."

As their parents continued to debate the matter, Devon and Ellie

listened in on the conversation from the upper hallway.

"I don't think Dad's very happy about any of this," said Ellie.

"How could you tell?"

Before Ellie could respond, Lorne's voice reached out to them.

"You two can come down from the hallway now; we've made our decision."

brother and sister wore identical embarrassed looks as they took seats

on the sofa. "We didn't really mean to eavesdrop, but..."

Lorne waved Devon's explanation off. "We've decided to give you our

blessing on this. However, you have to be aware of some cold, hard facts."

"For one," started Kymber, "You will be responsible for the financial

aspects of setting up house. We'll help, naturally, but this isn't a free

ride."

Eti added, "Please be careful out there; if the wrong person were to

discover your activities, well, your lives will be ruined forever."

Devon nodded somberly. Looking at his sister he said, "We understand

the risks, but it has to be done. Thank you all for understanding and

supporting us in this. We won't disappoint you."

Lorne stood and stretched. "Then it's settled. Let's go see this new

home of yours!"

Part V, Chapter Two

Devon breathed a contented sigh as Ellie's mouth covered his erection

with the liquid warmth he enjoyed so much. The heat of her body against

him, the firm yet gentle pressure of her tongue on his glans and the musky

odor of her femininity combined to complete the euphoric state of mind he'd

settled into.

Ellie so enjoyed giving her brother this type of pleasure. There was

something magical and satisfying about the feel of his cock in her throat

and hearing his moans of delight as she suckled him. Holding only the head

of his shaft between her lips, Ellie's tongue traced lazy patterns across

one particular spot, causing Devon to arch his back in response which, in

turn, slid more of him into her hungry mouth.

Taking a deep breath, Ellie took him deep into her throat until the tip

of her nose rested on Devon hair-covered pubic bone. As expected, she

could feel the tremors racing along the length of his shaft as it grew

slightly thicker. Ellie backed off just enough to keep Devon buried in her

mouth while moving to a kneeling position beside him.

Devon took full advantage of Ellie's change in position, reaching over

and grabbing the leg closest to him before she could settle in and

continue. As he guided her leg across his body, the pungent, heady aroma of

Ellie's sex flooded Devon's senses as he positioned her over his mouth.

Ellie grunted in protest at this change in plans; however, she didn't offer

much resistance.

Which was just fine with Devon. Parting her moist labia with his lips,

he found her clitoris, sucking it into his mouth with a loud slurping

sound. Her mouth filled with his hardness, Ellie moaned at the sensuous

contact, giving them both quite a thrill.

Devon ate at her lustily, leaving no part of her tender sex untouched.

Her juices, a bit more tangy than usual, coated his face as Ellie slowly

fucked his mouth. He reached up to spread her firm, smooth bottom to

expose the puckered ring of her anus. Extending his tongue, Devon teased

the orifice for only a moment before plunging his tongue into her

well-lubricated slit.

* * *

Kendra watched the action from her hiding place in her parents' closet,

her heart pounding. It had taken the youngster a while to get up the

courage to pull such a stunt; however, her curiosity had finally gotten the

best of her.

For as long as she could remember, Kendra had wondered about the many

sounds which came from her parents' bedroom. Once, while playing in her

room, she heard the sounds coming from the living room in the middle of the

day! When she went to investigate the moans, groans, and laughter, she

found her parents sitting together smiling at each other. Even to her

young mind, she knew something had taken place before her arrival - she

just didn't know what.

So, she came up with a plan to find out. Announcing she was going to

bed early, the intrepid nine-year-old went in the direction of her room.

After making sure no one was following her, she ducked into their bedroom,

going straight for the closet. Once inside and safely concealed in a dark

corner, Kendra sat quietly and waited.

She didn't have long to wait. Kendra heard their footsteps as they

entered the room, their voices just low enough for her not to make out what

they were saying. A rustle of clothes being removed told the youngster

they were getting ready for bed.

Excitement flowed through Kendra as she heard her mother say something

about her father's hands feeling good. The sound of the bed creaking was

followed closely by a lot of smacking and sucking sounds; Kendra could hear

her father sighing, as he often did when he was feeling good about

something.

As quietly as she could, Kendra made her way to the front of the closet,

sliding the door open just enough to allow her an unobstructed view of the

bed - and almost gasped aloud at the sight which greeted her. With her

eyes already accustomed to the darkness, Kendra could clearly see her

mother putting her mouth on her father's 'thing'! And, oh, boy, it was

really big! Much bigger than the other times she'd ever seen it!

Kendra felt warm and tingly as she watched her mother sit on her

father's face. From the happy look on her mother's face, Kendra guessed it

really felt good, although she couldn't quite figure out why her father
wasn't being smothered.

The young spy was having a difficult time sitting still as the scene

continued to unfold. Kendra jumped as her mother let out a loud cry,

saying 'yes' to something over and over. Kendra watched with a mixture of

excitement and confusion as her mother rolled off to one side, breathing

heavily. Watching her father get to his knees, Kendra felt suddenly weak

as she caught a glimpse of the gigantic 'thing' bobbing between her

father's legs, wondering what was going to happen next.

Her confusion deepened as her dad crawled between her mother's open

legs, which he held high and wide before laying down on top and moving up

and down. What was happening now?

* * *

Devon grunted as he slid into his sister, feeling his swollen member

seating itself firmly against her pubis. Slowly, he fucked into her,

relishing the feel of her slippery sheath clasping him. He looked down at

Ellie, smiling at the look of bliss etched into her lovely features.

"Oh, it feels so nice," cooed Ellie, raising her hips in time to meet

his urgent thrusts. "Fill me, darling, give me your hot cock!"

"Hey, I aim to please, dearest," Devon responded. He punctuated his

statement by driving fully into her, his sac slapping against her buttocks.

"YES! God, yes! Give it to me hard, Dev! Slam it to me!"

Devon repeated the deep thrust, the impact causing the entire bed to

shake. He could feel the building pressure in his testicles as they

tightened in preparation to deliver their payload of love.

"I'm not going to last much longer," he declared, his movements

increasing within Ellie.

"Shit, I don't want you to last. Cream me - give it to me!"

Devon felt his body tense as the indescribable feeling crept up his

spine, raising the hairs on the back of his neck. For a moment, time

stopped as he teetered on the edge.

"Oh, shit! Oh, damn!" Devon gave into the sensation as he spilled into

Ellie, the sticky fluid splashing against her sensitive walls. Devon

continued his erratic thrusts into Ellie as their juices combined to make

the perfect lubricant. Spent, he collapsed onto his sister, feeling her

warm kisses on his neck and ears.

Wrapping her arms around the love of her life, Ellie held Devon close,

feeling his manhood shrinking inside her and his seed slowly seeping from

her. Ellie was about to voice her appreciation when she heard a sound.

"Dev? What was that?"

Exhausted and drained, Devon could barely lift his head. "What was

what?"

"I heard a noise - sounds like it's coming from the closet."

* * *

Kendra felt funny, like she was going to faint. In a moment of

confusion, she fell back wards, knocking over a tennis racket. The sound

of the racket crashing to the floor froze her in place - she knew her

parents heard it. Ice-cold panic quickly displaced the warm, fuzzy

feelings as she heard someone get up and walk in the direction of the

closet.

The door slid quickly open and Kendra was greeted with a close-up view

of her father's naked body, his 'thing' once again small and covered with

white goo. Kendra held her breath as her father looked past her to the

back of the closet, now wishing she hadn't been so foolish.

Devon was about to close the door when he spotted the overturned racket

- and the nine-year-old sitting next to it.

"I think I found the noise you heard," Devon announced while motioning

for Kendra to step out of her hiding place.

Ellie turned onto her stomach - and saw her daughter standing next to

Devon, clearly afraid. Looking closer, she could see Kendra's flushed

complexion and realized the very young lady had been hiding in the closet

during their lovemaking.

"My, my! What do we have here?"

Devon led Kendra over to the bed and sat down. Moving to the side just

a bit, he pointed to a spot between himself and Ellie. After a moment of

hesitation, Kendra sat between her parents.

"Looks like to me we had a spectator," Devon said.

"So it would seem. Honey, what were you doing in there?"

Kendra's face burned hot with embarrassment, so much she wished to be

anywhere except sitting here.

"Kendra? Your mother asked you a question."

Knowing she could no longer avoid answering, Kendra tried to swallow the

lump in her throat.

"I, um, wanted to, um, know why you and Daddy made those funny sounds."

Barely able to stifle a laugh, Devon looked at his sister, who was

hiding her face in the sheet, her body shaking with laughter. Devon

reached over and pulled the sheet away.

"C'mon, El," his tone now serious. "We have to address this and there's

no better time than now."

Ellie propped herself up on an elbow, wiping tears from her eyes. "Yes,

you're right," she finally replied, after taking a few seconds to compose

herself.

For a very long moment, Devon sat looking at his daughter, drinking in

her budding beauty. Her brown hair, braided into tight rows, hung to her

shoulders; light brown eyes set into an oval face the complexion of coffee

(extra cream, thank you) peered into his with uncertainty. Under the

full-length nightgown, Devon knew, was a nicely developing body. His mind

touched on the memory of her smooth, hairless pussy, feeling a rush of

excitement course through him.

Kendra shifted uncomfortably on the bed under her father's suddenly

intense gaze. The way he was looking at her made her feel... good, in a

funny way. At first, she was scared and nervous; then a little angry when

Mom and Dad started laughing at her question. Now, for some reason she

didn't understand, the fear and anger went away.

Devon waited a few more seconds for Kendra to relax - and to keep his

erection from becoming more apparent. Finally, he spoke.

"You know that your mother and I love you very much, right?" Kendra

nodded - she just loved it when her parents showed their affection.

"Okay. Well, we also love each other very much. Tell me, how many ways

can you think of to show someone you love them?" Kendra's face became a

study in concentration - you could almost see her young mind working on an

answer.

"Well, there are hugs and kisses - and stuff for your birthday and

Christmas."

"A good answer, Kendra. So, let's talk about hugs and kisses for a

moment, okay?"

"Okay."

"There are times when we want to show you how much we love you, we'll

give you a kiss or a hug - sometimes both. When your mother and I want to

show each other how much we love each other, we'll hug and kiss, too."

Kendra didn't have much of a problem with this and said so. "You and

Mom are always hugging and kissing."

Ellie laughed softly. "There are times, my darling daughter, when we

want to show our love in other ways. You've seen us cuddling and holding

hands? Well, we often show love by touching each other."

A light went on in Kendra's mind, suddenly putting two and two together.

Gathering her courage, she asked a question.

"Were you and Dad having sex?"

Devon answered. "Yes. How do you know about it?"

"I heard Melissa Hargrove talking about it. She said it was nasty."

"Well, Melissa was wrong, dear. Sex is not nasty or dirty. It is a

special way for people to show love for each other."

"May I ask a question?"

"You most certainly may."

"If having sex shows how much you love someone, why don't you have sex

with me? Don't you love me?"

Devon reached over and wrapped his arms around Kendra. "Oh, baby, your

mother and I love you very much!"

Even though Kendra knew this was true, she held her ground. "Then how

come you don't?"

"It's not as easy as that," Ellie said. "There are some things you just

aren't ready to deal with yet - and a lot of things you don't understand."

Kendra frowned. "May I ask another question?"

"Go right ahead."

"Does having sex make you happy? When I was in the closet, you looked

happy."

"Yes, darling, having sex makes me very happy."

"Then I want to be very happy, too."

"Kendra, honey, there are so many things you have to learn first."

"Then teach me."

Devon looked at his daughter and felt his erection returning.

"Honey, this is a pretty big step to take. Are you sure this is what

you want?"

"You told me it's your job to make me happy. You told me that you love

me very much."

"I do."

"Then I'm confused; if you are telling the truth, then you should show

me your love like you do with Mom."

Ellie leaned over and said, "She's got you there, Dev."

Devon could only nod - it wasn't hard for him to see Kendra's point.

"There is something you have to know before anything happens."

"Like what?"

"People don't think that mothers and fathers should show love to their

children by having sex with them."

"Why?"

"It's a little hard to explain, but I'll do my best. Do you remember

the story on the news a little while ago, about the man who got arrested

for something he did with his son?"

"That child abuse thing?"

"Yes. There are laws in our country which say if a grown-up has sex

with a child, he or she can go to jail."

"Mrs. Mitchell was talking about that in school last week. Is this the

same thing?"

Ellie said, "It depends on who you're talking to. Your father and I

don't see it that way. Neither does your grandfather and grandmother or

your aunt Kymber."

"Why?"

"We are a family and families should always show their love for each

other in every way they can."

"You've told me this before. It's stupid for families not to love each

other."

"Well," Devon began, "there are people who think that families who love

each other should be punished."

"Another question?"

"Go ahead."

"When you were growing up, did you love your family like this?"

"Yes, we did."

"Did you think it was wrong?"

"Never. I love my sister very much."

"Did you have sex with her, too?"

"All the time. In fact, I still do."

Kendra was confused. "Where is your sister? I don't remember ever

seeing her."

Ellie spoke up. "I'm right here, sweetheart."

Kendra's eyes went wide, looking first at her mother then snapping

around to look at her father. "But, you're my mother... Wait a minute."

Devon looked over at Ellie. "I think she's beginning to understand."

Ellie smiled back. "I always said she was a smart girl."

Kendra's mind was a whirlwind of thought as the implication solidified

in her mind. "Does Grandmom and Granddad know?"

"Who do you think taught us?"

The room grew quiet as Kendra thought things through. Well, as much as

her young mind could, anyway. "May I be excused now? I have a lot of

thinking to do."

"Before you go," said Devon, "may I ask you a question?"

"Uh huh."

"Does this bother you?"

"I don't know. I love you and mom very much and I want you to love me."

"And we want to you to love us, just as much as we want to love you.

But, like I said, it's a pretty big step to take."

Part V, Chapter Three

Kendra stood and stretched; even though the hour had grown late, she

wasn't in the least bit tired. She wasn't sure if she understood

everything her parents had told her so far; somehow, though, Kendra knew

they were telling her the truth.

"Mom, Dad, I'm sorry to be so much trouble, but I have to ask another

question, if I may."

"Honey," Ellie said, "you can ask all the questions you want. We'll do

our best to answer them all."

"We can't let anyone know how much we love each other, can we?"

"Sadly, no. The truth is society just doesn't understand things the way

we do."

Kendra looked over at her parents, taking in their nakedness. She

couldn't help but notice her father's penis, which had grown large again.

Nor could she deny the feelings the sight of it stirred within her. She

watched as her mother stood and walked to the bathroom, noting the size of

her breasts and the way her body curved in certain places.

"Dad?"

"Yes, honey?"

"When I grow up, will I look like Mom?"

Devon had also gotten to his feet. He smiled and said, "I certainly

hope so! You're growing into a beautiful young lady."

"Dad, will you love me forever?" Kendra just couldn't take her eyes off

her father's body. Was it getting warmer in the room?

"Forever and ever!"

Kendra turned at the sound of the toilet flushing. A moment later,

Ellie returned. As she approached, Kendra got a good look at the thatch of

hair covering her mother's secret place. Absently, her hand went to her

own place, which she knew didn't have hair - yet.

"Mom? Will you love me forever, too?"

"Of course I will, love! With all of my heart." Ellie looked over at

Devon, who just shrugged. There was something significant about these

questions; however, he had no idea where they were going.

"I love you both very much and I want to make you happy."

"We love you, too, honey - your happiness is all that matters to us."

The room got even warmer as Kendra made a decision, pulling her

nightgown over her head and letting it drop to the floor. Her body was

tingling all over, especially between her legs. On legs she suddenly

didn't trust, Kendra crossed the short distance between herself and her

parents.

"Then I want you to make me happy and to love me."

Kendra reached out and wrapped her arms around her father, feeling the

warmth of his body surround her. Being tall for her age, Devon's penis

rested against her chest - she could feel it growing between them. Turning

to her mother, she repeated the embrace. The musky scent of her mother's

place reached her and she found it exciting. Releasing her hold, Kendra

climbed onto the bed. "Teach me how to love you the way you love each

other."

Devon and Ellie looked at each other before looking at their daughter. t

She looked so vulnerable and innocent as she offered herself to them. And

knew what had to be done. As their parents had taught them, love was to be

shared, without shame or deception. And, they both knew, this was the

moment they were waiting for. They also knew it had to be Kendra's choice,

for love should never be forced. Devon and Ellie took places on either

side of their daughter.

Kendra could feel her blood pounding through her body as first her

father, then her mother kissed her gently on each cheek.

"Are you sure this is what you want, love?" asked Devon, feeling the

surge of love flowing through him as well.

"Yes, I'm sure. I want you to love me."

"Then you will be loved, my darling," said Ellie.

"What should I do?"

"Whatever comes to you. In love, everything is okay."

Devon lowered his head, letting his tongue flick out and over the

still-forming buds on Kendra's chest, the touch sending jolts of excitement

through her.

"That tickles!," she said, as her mother joined in, gently sucking on

the other nipple.

"Yeah, feels nice, doesn't it?"

"It sure does!"

Kendra gave in to the many sensations, allowing herself to be carried

away by the moment. While her parents explored her body, Kendra let her

hands roam freely over theirs. Smooth hardness on one side contrasted

sharply against the silky softness on the other as her hands touched

everything within their reach. Was it hot in here, or what!

Devon worked his way down Kendra's body until he reached her

nearly-hairless sex, noticing the fine hairs which were beginning to

sprout. Gently, he parted her legs and let his tongue slide between the

sweet flesh until it reached the small bud of her clitoris. The results

were electric!

Kendra had been sucking on the nipple Ellie had offered her, bringing

back pleasant memories of her, ahem, younger days as an infant when she

felt the first touch of her father's mouth. His kisses 'down there' were

really heating up the room when his tongue slid wetly across a certain spot

when the world exploded in her head.

"Oh!" she exclaimed as the nipple fell from her hungry lips, her back

arching upwards in response. "What was that?"

Ellie kissed her on the ear and whispered, "Just your father loving you.

How does it feel?"

As Devon continued to lick her clitoris, Kendra was caught in a mixture

of emotions - answering her mother's question suddenly became a difficult

thing to do. Kendra wrapped her arms tightly around her mother and held on

for dear life.

Devon was lost in lapping up the sweet offerings of his daughter's pussy
as he inserted his tongue into her. Glancing upwards, he saw the look of

total surprise cross the youngster's face as she held on to her mother, who

was stroking her lightly and whispering calming words into her ear. Seeing

all was well, he returned to his licking and sucking, lifting Kendra's legs

higher to expose more of her.

Ellie was beginning to feel left out. She managed to escape Kendra's

grasp and positioned herself until her brother's manhood was directly in

front of her. Ellie closed her mouth around the spongy glans and sucked
hard.

Kendra felt a moment of disappointment as her mother moved away.

Looking down, she could see her father's penis disappearing into Ellie's

mouth, which made her father suck harder and faster on her rapidly

overheating center. Turning her head, she looked right into her mother's

sex, hidden behind a mass of curly hair. With her only free hand - the

other was now full of her father's hair, Kendra reached up and slid her

fingers into the tangle of hair, finding it very wet and very hot.

Gathering more courage, Kendra searched around the wetness, letting her

fingers explore every inch. A chain-reaction of events was taking place:

As Devon ate Kendra, she worked her hand faster between Ellie's legs. In

turn, Ellie was enticed into gobbling down more of Devon's shaft, which

accelerated his efforts between Kendra's legs.

As with all good things, this one was quickly coming to the end. For

Kendra, the world just went crazy as something broke loose inside of her.

Unknowingly, she jammed her rather small hand into Ellie's vagina up to her

wrist, setting off an intense orgasm within the older woman. As Ellie got

washed away, flooding Kendra's hand with hot juices, she sucked harder on

Devon's swollen glans. A twitch, and she soon tasted the warm stickiness

of his seed as he thrust into her mouth.

For a long moment, they lay very still, each one lost in their own

feelings. Ellie reached down and removed Kendra's hand from her wet

orifice before sitting up. Looking over at her brother, she could see him

recovering, his chest heaving as he sucked in long, deep breaths. Turning

her attention to Kendra, she placed a hand on her tummy, feeling the

muscles trembling slightly.

"Kendra, honey?"

Kendra's eyes were partially closed - her lips parted slightly. For a

moment, she didn't respond and Ellie became worried. As she touched her

face, Ellie was surprised to find it wet with tears.

"Kendra?"

"Hmm?"

Relieved, Ellie asked, "Are you okay, honey?"

"Hmm?"

Devon had joined Ellie by their daughter's side, exchanging worried

looks - until Kendra smiled.

"Hi, Dad. Hi, Mom. Where are we?" Kendra raised her head and tried to

focus her eyes onto her surroundings. Finding it made her dizzy, she let

Ellie cradle her head, snuggling up to the warmth of her mother's body.

"You're in our bedroom - do you remember what happened?"

"Hmm?" came the sleepy reply.

"Guess not," replied Devon.

Ellie looked into the now-sleeping face of her daughter. "Let her sleep

- we'll talk to her in the morning."

Yawning, Devon agreed. With their loving daughter between them, Devon

and Ellie drifted off into a peaceful sleep.

Part V, Chapter Four

Kendra had never felt so warm and comfortable before in her young life.

Visions of warm summer days floated through her mind; she knew she was so

very happy. Everything was so right in the world!

Her pleasant thoughts were rudely interrupted by a loud noise, causing

her to open her eyes. Yawning, she tried to stretch, only to find herself

unable to move. Still a little disoriented, it took her a few seconds to

realize where she was, where the noise was coming from - and why she

couldn't move! Fully opening her eyes, blinking against the ray of

sunlight peeking into the room, she looked into her mother's sleeping face.

If her mother was here, then the noise she heard must be...

Reaching out, her hand came in contact with her father's hardness,

throbbing gently against his stomach. He grunted something Kendra couldn't

make out and shifted slightly at her touch. Realization dawned on her as

the memories of the previous night returned with full force.

"They loved me," she whispered, feeling a soothing calm embrace her.

Turning her head, she looked at her mother - and found her looking back at

her!

"Good morning, little one! How are you?"

"Fine, thank you. I slept like a log. Did we...?"

"We most certainly did, sweetie. Did you enjoy yourself?"

"Yes, I did. But..."

"But what?"

"Was that all there is to it?" Deep inside, Kendra hoped there would be

much more.

"Oh, yes! There's so much we have to show you - but you can't learn it

all at one time!"

Kendra smiled happily. "I can't wait to learn more!"

Ellie got a deliciously evil thought at that moment. Keeping her voice

low, she whispered "You ready for lesson number two?" She looked over at

her sleeping brother and smiled.

Kendra followed her mother's gaze, coming to rest on Devon's erection.

To a nine-year-old, it appeared impossibly huge. She looked back at her

mother with a questioning look, not really knowing what to do.

Ellie could see the doubt on the youngster's face and gave her a hint by

sliding a finger in and out of her mouth.

Kendra's eyes went wide - was her mother kidding? How was she supposed

to get that huge snake into her mouth? Still, she loved challenges...

Slowly, Kendra moved towards her sleeping father, eyes focused on her

objective until her face was just mere inches away. She stole a look back

at Ellie, who nodded and smiled.

Taking a deep breath, Kendra examined her victim... uh, father closely,

fascinated at the length and thickness of him. Ringed with large veins, it

throbbed like it had a life of its own. Licking her lips - and taking one

last look at her mother, Kendra allowed her pink tongue to extend and touch

the beautifully sculpted crown of his penis. Withdrawing, she sampled

Devon's somewhat tangy taste and, finding it pleasant, bent once again.

Carefully, she took him into her small hand, marveling at the way it felt -

smooth, yet hard.

As she shifted her position slightly she squeezed the shaft, causing a

clear drop of... something to appear at the tip. Kendra looked toward her

mother, who helped her by opening her mouth and closing it on the tip of

her finger and sucking until the tip of her finger appeared. Trembling

with anticipation - and a bit of fear, Kendra captured the pulsing glans,

closing her tiny mouth around it. She sucked gently and the salty drops

coated her tongue. Finding them rather tasty she swirled her tongue

around, searching for more drops.

Devon moaned slightly and, unknowingly, shifted his position. The

movement slid a full inch of cock into Kendra's mouth, triggering her gag

reflex for a moment and filling her mouth with saliva that ran in rivulets

down the shaft.

Ellie held her breath when seeing Kendra's moment of distress. Although

it looked as if the youngster had things under control, she flashed her an

"OK" and relaxed when Kendra nodded in return. Sticking out her tongue,

Ellie made circling motions with it against the tip of her finger.

Kendra was beginning to understand how this was done. Emboldened by her

success so far, she let her tongue flow over her father's cock-head,

delighted in the taste and feel. A bit braver still, she tried to imitate

the bobbing motion she saw her mother use last night. Oh, yeah, this was

much better - and easier, too - than trying to hold it in her mouth.

Slowly increasing her speed, Kendra lost herself in her task. She learned

if she pushed the skin up along the shaft, more of those tasty drops would

appear.

Devon was dreaming - or at least he thought so. In his dream, full

sensuous lips were surrounding his penis, giving him incredible pleasure.

He smiled, relaxing to enjoy the special treat his dream was giving him...

Ellie's smile matched Devon's as she watched her little girl enjoying

herself. She was gaining confidence, her actions becoming bolder and sure.

It wouldn't take very long now.

Kendra's tongue poked and prodded the tiny slit she discovered for a few

seconds before running along the ridges of the crown. She found a

curiously flat spot, where the ridges met and ran her tongue over it,

feeling Devon's shaft jerk in her hand.

"Did I do that?" she asked herself and did it again. This time, the

elongated snake jerked twice, dumping more of the delicious stuff onto her

tongue.

In his dream, Devon was close to spilling his seed into that wonderful

mouth. He reached down and cupped his hands around the face of the dream

person pleasing him. He wanted to thrust into that face but he didn't want

to ruin the glorious feelings. Any moment, now - oh, God, this was feeling

so good!

Ellie could see - and Kendra could feel - Devon's cock pulsing strongly

with each passing second as the youngster continued to probe the flat spot

continuously. Ellie looked past Kendra's fist, noting how tight Devon's

sac had become.

Devon felt himself right on the edge of orgasm, the incredibly delicious

feeling building inside him. They raced along his nerve endings, crossing

a certain threshold. Devon began to wake up as the orgasmic tide continued

to swell. Of their own volition, his eyes opened; he looked down and

saw...

The sight of Kendra's face full of throbbing maleness, coupled with the

onrushing force of ejaculation kicked Devon right over the edge.

"Kenny?" he managed to say before the intense feeling overtook him. He

hit the wall hard as his seed flowed into her hot mouth.

"Oh, SHIT!!"

Kendra was in over her head as the hot, sticky liquid quickly filled her

mouth, spilling out over her lips, down the exposed shaft and onto her

hand. "This new stuff has a stronger taste," she thought while trying to

hold onto the jerking snake in her hand. She grabbed on with both hands as

Devon continued to empty himself.

Devon was locked in the stasis grip of his orgasm/ejaculation. He

couldn't think, couldn't move - all he could do was pump sperm into his

daughter's mouth until, finally, he was released from the paralysis,

drained and, yes, sated.

Kendra rose to a sitting position, covered with goo. It was all over

her hands and face - and it felt wonderful!

While Devon struggled with trying to figure out what was going on, Ellie

moved next to Kendra and began to lick the cooling seed from her daughter's

face. Scooping up a small bit of it, Ellie slipped her tongue between

Kendra's lips, giving the exhausted youngster some of the fruits of her

labors.

Kendra felt her mother's tongue inside her mouth along with the gobbet

of sticky stuff. Still very new at all of this, she awkwardly returned

Ellie's kiss, feeling the stuff sliding down her throat.

"Are you okay, baby?"

"I'm fine - did I do it right?"

Ellie looked over at the blank look on Devon's face before looking back

at Kendra. "I think you did just fine, baby. I also think your father
knows you really do love him - even if he doesn't know where he is right

now!"

mother and daughter laughed as they made their way into the bathroom,

leaving Devon in the bed wondering what he missed.

Part V, Chapter Five

"She did what?" Lorne managed to ask between peals of laughter.

"You heard me, Dad," Devon said, his face darkening. "I thought I was

dreaming an when I woke up, I saw Kendra sucking away on me like it was

nobody's business."

"You know Ellie put her up to it, don't you?"

"Yeah, I figured as much. You know what the surprising part was?"

"What?"

"She was incredible. Dad, I'm telling you, she handled it like an old
pro." Devon looked thoughtful for a moment before adding, "Well, maybe not

like an old pro, but she didn't do bad for her first time."

Lorne watched his son with undisguised amusement; the younger man was

obviously beside himself in disbelief. He was also aware of a feeling of

pride swelling in his heart, seeing Devon carrying on the family tradition.

"Well, son, I'm glad to see things are starting to work out for you.

Where's Kenny now?"

"Upstairs with Mom, El and Eti, I think, probably talking about me - I

think my ears feel a little warm."

Lorne chuckled again. "Hey, don't look to me for sympathy!"

Devon smiled sheepishly. "I didn't really expect any."

"Glad to hear it. How's the house coming along?"

* * *

Kendra lay next to Etienne, paying close attention to what her great

aunt was saying, not daring to even blink lest she miss something.

"...then you spread these open, like so and - there's what you're

looking for."

Kendra watched in utter fascination as Eti spread Kymber's labia,

exposing her clitoris. On the other side of Kymber, Ellie watched

passively.

Kymber, however, was just on the other side of heaven, enjoying being

the 'practice dummy' for the youngest member of the family. So far, she'd

been kissed, licked and nibbled by both Eti and Ellie, no part of her upper

body was left untouched. And, of course, after being shown what to do,

young Kendra had to practice. Her nipples still tingled after a

particularly energetic sucking from Kenny.

"What do I do next?" Kendra asked, clearly enjoying this class in

loving.

"Oh, that's easy, sweetheart," Eti answered. "You use your tongue like

this..." Eti lowered her mouth to Kymber's waiting flesh, using her tongue

to paint a wide, wet stripe the entire length of her slit, then lightly

caressing the exposed head of her clitoris with just the tip.

Kymber shivered at the raspy feel of Eti's tongue, sighing with

contentment. She felt the evasive muscle at her entrance, probing gently

and she tried to capture it - to no avail. Kymber knew this to be very

valuable for Kendra's sake- but damn! Etienne's teasing was driving her

insane.

"Now, you try it," Eti instructed, switching places with Kendra.

Kendra moved into position and, as instructed, lifted Kymber's knees and

spread them. Next, her fingers searched through the thicket of auburn hair

until she found what she was looking for and with renewed confidence,

opened her aunt's outer labia.

"Hey! You were right! It's right where you said it would be!"

The three older women bit back their laughter.

"Of course it is, honey," Ellie said. "My mother wouldn't lie to you."

Licking her lips, Kendra proceeded to the next part of the test.

Lowering her mouth, she let her tongue paint a swatch of saliva from the

bottom of Kymber's slit to the top of her clitoris, pausing to flutter her

tongue across the head.

For Kymber, it was one lick too many, for her barely contained lust

escaped the cage she was holding it in. As Kendra continue to lick and

tease, Kymber looked at Ellie and used her head to call her. When Ellie

leaned forward, Kymber surprised her by suddenly reaching up and locking

their lips together. Instinctively, Ellie returned the kiss as she melted

into the older woman's arms.

Etienne watched the scene, also surprised at the suddenness of Kymber's

movement. "Well, Kenny," she said while moving to a position just behind

the youngster. "It looks like you've started something. Eti used her

hands to move Kendra's legs until she was on her knees. Turning onto her

back into the desired position, Etienne helped herself to Kendra's young
flesh, using her moist tongue as an artist would use a paintbrush.

Meanwhile, Kymber's lust raged out of control as she lavished hot, wet

kissed on each of Ellie's erect nipples while rubbing her niece's clit

furiously.

"Oh, yes," Ellie moaned. "Oh, right there, Kymmie. Do it, oh, do it!"

Her own lust rapidly catching up to her, Ellie changed one source of

pleasure for another, straddling the older woman's face and lowering her

pussy onto her mouth.

"Oh, shit yes! Now that's more like it!" Ellie cried out delightedly as

her aunt brought her talented mouth to bear on her heated flesh. Ellie

looked down at her daughter, who was giving it the old college try. "Eat

her, baby, show Kymmie how much you love her!"

Like Kendra really needed the extra encouragement! Etienne's tongue in

her hot pussy, combined with the dizzying taste, feel and scent of Kymber's

cunt was proving to be more than she could deal with at one time. Not

experienced with being able to concentrate on more than one thing at a

time, Kendra abandoned her grandmother's soaking wet snatch, feeling the

wetness left on her face.

No problem there, though. Ellie quickly took her daughter's place

between Kymber's legs, determined to give as good as she was getting - and

then some.

Kendra shook with the electric feeling of Eti's tongue probing her

insides. Unable to remain in the sitting position any longer, Kendra fell

forward - and right into the biggest clit (that was the word for it, wasn't

it?) she'd seen yet, knowing she just had to 'practice' on it as well.

After Etienne assisted her by spreading her legs wide, Kendra captured the

giant-sized clit, shocked at the size and feel of it. It filled her mouth,

hot and fat - this was so much fun!

* * *

"So you figured out how to get the computer to turn the lights on and

off after all!" Lorne asked before taking another sip of his drink.

"Yeah, it took a while..." Devon stopped in mid-sentence.

"What's wrong, son?" Lorne asked, instantly alert.

"Nothing, I think. You know, they've been up there an awful long time."

"What's your point?"

"Don't you think we should check on them or something?"

"You're kidding, right? Stop worrying about Kenny; I'm sure they're

filling her head with all kinds of good things."

* * *

Kendra felt the first hot spurts of her grandmother's juices splash onto

her tongue; the taste surprising her - but not as much as the sheer volume

of stuff that just seem to keep pouring from just above the Eti's gaping

slit. It just kept coming as Kendra lifted her head. Beneath her, Etienne

shook wildly as the orgasmic storm pounded her.

"Ah, ah!" Eti gasped, burying her face as far as she could get it

between Kendra's legs. Latching onto the rather small bud of clitoris, Eti

sucked - hard.

A bomb went off inside of Kendra as her first female-induced orgasm

ripped through her. "Oh, my! Grandmom? It's happening..." Another

explosion tore its way through the helpless youngster as Eti continue to

suck the twitching finger of flesh. Drained and feeling wasted, Kendra

collapsed onto Etienne, holding on for dear life as she succumbed to the

little death.

* * *

"So what do you think they're doing?"

"Who cares, Dev? What's with you anyway?"

"I guess I'm being a little overprotective, Dad."

"I have no idea why; your daughter is in good hands."

* * *

Kymber had polished off Ellie in no time flat - who said you lose

something when you get older - searching for another body to ravage. She

didn't have to look far. Emerald green eyes locked on Kendra's prone form

- it was time for a little payback, wouldn't you say?

The object of Kymber's lust had just about recovered from the most

intense feeling she'd ever had, which was really saying something, since

she had only felt this feeling one time before. Feeling the bed dip

slightly, Kendra looked up just in time to see her other grandmother dive

into her overheated sex. Raw, intense sensations bit at her nerve endings

as Kymber's tongue pierced her young slit, a kaleidoscope of colors racing

through her head. Unable to resist, Kendra surrendered to Kymber's

unwavering, relentless attention.

"Ooh, what the hell was that?" Ellie sat up, shaking her head to clear

the cobwebs. She didn't have a chance to find out, however. Armed with a

gigantic strap-on dildo, Etienne was on her before she knew it. Ellie

cried out more in surprise than pain as the oversized implement tore into

her, filling her beyond anything she'd felt since giving birth to Kenny.

"Oh, shit - NO!!" she screamed as Eti withdrew and impaled her daughter
with the unyielding rubberized cock.

"Oh, yes, my love! This is a little something I've been saving just for

you!" Eti grinned evilly as she punished Ellie's slit with short, savage

strokes. "How do you like it, love?"

"Christ, it's huge!" Ellie managed to say as her body was rocked once

again with the force of her mother's urgent thrusts.

"I thought you'd like it, babe," Etienne said.

This wasn't an ordinary marital aid! Eti's own sheath was filled with a

slightly smaller version of the implement she was using on her daughter.

Each time she surged into Ellie, the motion shoved the dildo buried in her

a little deeper. To add to the user's pleasure, there was a series of

rubber fingers, positioned just right to provide exquisite pleasure to the

wearer's clitoris.

* * *

Lorne looked in the direction of the stairs leading upstairs then

glanced at his watch.

"They have been up there for a while, haven't they?"

"That's what I was saying an hour ago."

Lorne shrugged. "Let's give them a few more minutes - the we'll go

check on them. Maybe they're taking a nap or something."

"Or something," agreed Devon.

* * *

Etienne slowly withdrew the dildo from Ellie, satisfied her daughter
wouldn't be waking up any time sooner. Her own passions were just about to

give out; between the mini-dildo inside her, the rubber fingers against her

clit, and the unbridled joy in fucking her darling daughter into oblivion,

Eti was ready to take a nap herself - but not before she got to use her

little toy on Kymber.

Kymber was quite unaware of the 'danger' approaching from the rear. Her

entire attention was focused on sucking the last dregs of girl-juice from

her granddaughter. Getting to her knees, Kymber leaned forward to kiss

Kendra tenderly.

"Hey, babe - you okay?"

Kendra opened her eyes just long enough to answer. "Yes, thank you, I'm

fine. Dinner was good." Her eyes closed again as she drifted off to sleep.

Kymber laughed softly as she gathered herself onto her knees, moving to

one side as not to awaken the sated youngster. Just in time to feel the

12-inch long, 4-inch thick dildo bludgeon its way into her.

"Hi there, my darling step-mother; I've been waiting for you!"

"Ugh!" Kymber grunted as the huge tool pulled out and slammed into her

again. She felt her sister/daughter get a firm grip on her shapely hips to

hold her steady - and to keep Kymber from escaping.

"Damn it! I don't know where you got that from, but keep it going,

darling. Ream me with it!"

"Oh, you can count on it, dearest," Etienne answered, her voice low and

husky.

* * *

"Okay, I've had just about enough of waiting! I'm going up there!"

Devon launched himself out of his chair, heading for the staircase.

"Devon! Hold up!" Lorne almost tripped over his own chair attempting to

catch up with his impatient son.

Being younger and, hence, faster, Devon made it up the steps, taking

them three at a time, stopping at the top. Looking left then right, he

tried to determine where the women were. On a hunch, Devon headed towards

his old bedroom - with his father right behind him.

* * *

Etienne looked down at the perspiration-drenched form of her

step-mother, taking extra care in removing the mini-dildo from her tender

orifice. Even semi-conscious, Kymber's prone form continued to twitch in

response as her final orgasm cascaded through her. Nodding to herself and

feeling quite satisfied with a job well done, Eti placed the impressive

implement on the floor next to the bed before curling up next to the

closest warm body, falling instantly asleep.

* * *

Lorne caught up with Devon just as he reached the door of his former

room. "I wouldn't go in there," he warned.

"Why not? Is there something going on you're not telling me?"

Lorne held up his hands defensively. "No, no. Of course not, son."

"Then there's no reason why I shouldn't go in."

Lorne had to think about that for a moment before answering. "No, I

suppose not."

"I didn't think so."

Devon turned the doorknob and gave it a little push, the door opening

soundlessly. Peering around the doorjamb and looking to the left, he

didn't see anything out of the ordinary, so he poked his head further into

the room, looking to the right.

Behind him, Lorne whispered, "What is it? What do you see?"

Devon stepped fully into the room, followed by his father, who followed

his gaze.

"Will you look at this?" Devon whispered.

"Oh, my goodness," breathed Lorne. "What the hell happened in here?"

father and son looked in total disbelief at the women of the Williams

family, all peacefully sleeping with their bodies interlaced with one

another.

"I'll be damned if I know, Dad," Devon admitted, noticing his daughter
nestled like a spoon against his mother, thumb in mouth, sound asleep. And

totally naked, just like his mother, aunt, and sister.

Lorne scratched his head. "Whatever it was, it must have really been

something - it's a shame we missed it."

As he crossed to the night stand to turn off the light, Devon's foot

brushed against something. "Hey, look at this!" He bent over and picked up

the object, holding it up for his father to see.

"Jesus!" Lorne exclaimed, taking the monster dildo from Devon. "What in

the world is this?"

Devon had made his way back to his father's side. "I've got a better

question. Who used it on whom?" He frowned for a moment before his eyes

went wide with alarm.

Lorne saw the look - he was thinking the same thing. "I'm sure they

didn't..." he started.

"Lord, I hope not!" Devon hissed, going over to Kendra's sleeping form.

Gently, he opened her legs, looking for any signs of blood and finding

none. Gingerly, he inserted a finger into her.

Kendra smiled and said, "Yummy. More please."

Lorne and Devon exchanged mystified looks, both wondering what she was

dreaming.

Devon's finger continued to probe his daughter's tight orifice until he

came in contact with her hymen. Finding it intact, he withdrew his finger,

noticing it was slick with girl stuff.

He motioned for his father to follow him out of the room. Once safely

in the hallway, Devon first sniffed then sucked the juices from his finger.

"Well, that thing wasn't used on her, but she's had herself one hell of

an evening."

Lorne nodded in agreement. "I can't wait to hear about this in the

morning."

Part V, Chapter Six

"Will you please sit still!"

Kendra winced under her mother's sharp tone, willing herself to sit

patiently while Ellie finished with her hair.

"I can't help it," she complained. "I'm a little nervous."

Ellie inserted an amber-colored bead, putting the finishing touch on the

last braid. "I know this is a big event for you, but it's nothing to get

wired over."

Kendra turned and looked at her mother. "I'm a few hours away from

becoming a woman and you think it's nothing to be wired about?"

Ellie regarded the 13-year-old with a mixture of pride and amusement.

She and Devon had agreed the day after the all-girl orgy on waiting a while

before Kendra would be allowed to officially give up her virginity. The

decision was met with a great deal of disappointment, however. Ellie

remembered how much Kendra had protested all too well.

* * *

"But, Mom! I'm ready for it!" Twelve years old, going on thirty, Kendra

stomped across the room, flopping down on Devon's recliner.

"I'm sure you really believe that, Kenny. The bad news is I don't agree

with you."

"You're being unreasonable."

Ellie hated when Kendra got like this. "I am not being unreasonable.

In fact, it's more reasonable than you can imagine."

"I have to have him inside me - I need to feel my father's cock inside

me."

A bit of a filthy mouth, too, it would seem.

"And I want you to have him - it's all he talks about anymore. But,

you're not old enough for the implant."

"Oh, that again."

"Yes, that - again. Your father and I feel it would be better for you

to wait until you've had the contraceptive implant done. This way, you can

go for what you know without ever having to worry about having children at

your age."

"It didn't seem to stop you. I remember you telling me you were 16 when

you had me."

Ellie knew where this was going - they've had this argument monthly for

the last three years. "Your grandfather hadn't invented it then - and you

know it." She made a point of tapping the bracelet worn on her left wrist.

"Sometime I think Granddad invented it just to frustrate me."

Ellie rolled her eyes heavenward. "Kendra, please. Try to look at it

from our point."

Kendra didn't have one problem understanding her mother's point. In

fact, she actually agreed with it - better to be safe than sorry. This was

just Kendra's way of pushing the situation, hoping to get under her

mother's skin just enough to allow her to join with her father.

"I know where you stand. I have to be 13 to legally have the implant

and I won't be 13 for another three months."

"Then why do we have to keep going through this?"

"I might get lucky and you'll change your mind." Kendra flashed her

mother an impish smile.

"Fat chance, young lady. Nice try, though. Now, let's get ready for

dinner."

"Oh, all right."

* * *

It seemed to Kendra the three months lasted three years. She glanced

down at the gold and silver bracelet on her left wrist. Born from Lorne's

genetic scanner technology, the bracelet was the only visible part of the

contraceptive device. Implanted under the skin of her forearm, just above

her wrist, a receiving device had been placed - the bracelet was the

transmitter. Attuned precisely to her genetic structure, the transmitter

sent a coded signal to the receiver which prevented her from becoming

pregnant. If pregnancy was desired after implantation, all the wearer had

to do was remove the bracelet and place it in a special box which cut off

the signal. Since no two genetic patterns were exactly alike, each

bracelet had its own unique signal.

Kendra didn't quite understand how it worked, even though her

grandfather and father explained it to her a few times. She knew the

bracelet represented a breakthrough of major proportions to the medical

community, as well as making her grandfather an extremely wealthy man;

however, to Kendra it meant the fulfillment of a life-long desire.

"When will Dad be home?"

Ellie looked at the wall clock. "In about forty-five minutes. You'd

better go get ready."

Kendra nodded and headed for her bedroom. Once inside, she stood in

front of the mirror as she undressed. Pulling her shirt over her head

exposed her breasts, taking note of her nipples which were already erect in

anticipation. Frowning, she remembered her father liked her mother's

large, pendulous breasts; immediately, she worried about whether or not

he'd find hers attractive. "I'm sure he'll like them - he spends a lot of

time looking at them," she assured herself. Satisfied, her gaze when down

her flat tummy to the nest of light brown hair surrounding her mons.

"A little too bushy," she said aloud. Opening a drawer, Kendra withdrew

a pair of scissors. Soon the room was filled with the slight sound of hair

being cut as she trimmed the excess hair. After a few well-placed snips,

Kendra was finally satisfied with the results. Checking the clock by the

bed, Kendra saw she only had twenty minutes to get ready.

After making sure her braids were covered, Kendra stepped into the

shower spray. The hot water soothed and relaxed her tense body. Grabbing

the body shampoo, Kendra quickly worked up a luxurious lather; within

minutes, she was clean and refreshed. Stepping from the warmth of the

shower into the relative coolness of the bathroom sent a delicious chill

through her, further hardening her nipples.

Kendra quickly dried herself. After remembering to hang up the damp

towel, she rushed into her room, looking at the clock.

She muttered a curse; "I've only got ten minutes left!" Kendra was in

the process of spraying her favorite perfume on her when a soft chime

sounded - the intercom her father had installed a couple of years ago when

she had fractured her ankle after falling out of a tree.

"Kenny?"

"Yes, mom - I'm here."

"Your father's home."

"I'm almost ready."

Ellie could tell her daughter had been rushing to complete her

preparation. Serves her right for taking too long in the shower!

"Take your time, honey; he just went upstairs and should be in the

bathroom even as we speak."

"Does he suspect anything?" Kendra was counting on taking her father
completely by surprise.

"Not a thing."

"Mom, thanks."

"For what?"

"For everything."

"Enjoy yourself, darling."

"I will, believe me!"

Kendra could hear her mother's soft laughter just before the intercom

clicked off. Another glance at the clock told her she had about five extra

minutes. Crossing to her closet, she reached inside to retrieve the

package containing the teddy nightgown she'd bought for this special night.

Removing it from the box, Kendra held it up to the light, hoping her

father would like its sea-green color. More, she really hoped he loved

what the teddy contained!

The silk-and-lace garment felt deliciously cool against her skin.

Turning, she made one final check. Hair braided in her customary

corn-rows, no make-up, just a hint of perfume. Perfect. Turning out the

light, she went to fulfill her destiny.

* * *

Devon felt human once again after his shower, glad to have the dried

perspiration and dirt off and down the drain. With some luck, his parents
would enjoy the new shrubbery for years to come. He sat on the edge of the

bed taking a moment to view the spectacular sunset.

"I am one lucky man. Can it ever get any better than this?" he said

aloud, stretching out on the bed. The sun had disappeared in a blaze of

gold and orange, along with the prettiest shade of violet he'd ever seen.

"Yes," he repeated. "A lucky man." Smiling at his good fortune, Devon

closed his eyes for some much needed rest. Or so he thought.

Kendra stood before the closed door trying to calm herself - to no

avail. Instead of knocking, she walked away, silently cursing her

foolishness.

"It's not like I've never been here before. It's not like we've never

done anything, so why am I nervous?"

"Because," she said, answering her own question, "tonight we play for

keeps." Having settled matters with herself, Kendra returned to the door,

knocking on it with conviction.

"Come in."

Kendra took another moment to make sure everything was perfect before

entering the room, which was in total darkness. The anxious young woman

was momentarily blinded during the transition from the light in the hallway

to the darkness of the room.

Devon, however, was completely acclimated to the darkness. "Hi, Kenny!

What can I do for you, honey?"

With her eyes slowly adjusting, Kendra moved in the direction of her

father's voice. "There's something we need to discuss if you have the

time."

Devon felt the fatigue fall away at her announcement; anything which

concerned Kenny required his undivided attention. For example, he noticed

Kendra wasn't in her usual nighttime attire - especially since it wasn't

bed time.

"Come on over, sit, and let's talk," he said, patting a spot next to him

on the bed.

Her heart pounding, Kendra sat next to him.

"That's a lovely outfit you've got on - is it new?"

"Yes - I've never worn it before."

"You look good in it. What's on your mind?"

Kendra's mind picked that precise moment to draw a blank.

"Kenny?"

"Huh?"

"You said you wanted to talk, so talk!"

"Um, well, I love you very much."

"Thanks, hon. I love you, too."

"We've had a lot of fun together and you've taught me a great deal about

love."

"You're too kind, darling."

Kendra frowned; this wasn't going the way she planned. Didn't he notice

her perfume or the way the teddy showed off her breasts in such an enticing

way?

"Was there something else you wanted to say, dear?"

Frustration began to set in, making Kendra feel as if she were five

again. Okay. So much for the coy approach. Looking into her father's

eyes (or in the general direction, anyway), she said, "I just have one

other thing to say."

It was all Devon could do to keep from laughing hysterically. Somehow

he managed long enough to say, "What's that."

Kendra held out her left arm in response.

"Hey, you've been implanted! Congratulations! You know what that

means, don't you?"

"No, what?" Kendra's deepening frustration was beginning to show.

Devon sat forward until his nose was mere centimeters from Kendra's.

"It means, my love, I am going to eat you alive and love you like you've

never been loved before." Cupping Kendra's face in his hands, Devon kissed

his daughter deeply.

Kendra melted into his embrace, his tongue reawakening her desire to

become one with him. His hands, cool against her rapidly heating flesh,

missed nothing as he fondled Kendra through the flimsy material of the

negligee.

Devon broke the kiss, looking into Kendra's eyes for only a moment

before untying the silken cord holding things in place.

"You are so lovely," he whispered. "I've been waiting for this moment

for a very long time."

Kendra's only response was to moan softly as Devon opened the gossamer

strands of her nightie, exposing her breasts. Soft, fluttering kisses lips

trailed lusty fire along her neck while his fingers toyed with hard,

sensitive nipples.

Devon pressed his daughter onto her back before continuing, inhaling the

scent of baby-soft skin at her throat.

"Oh, yes. This is so nice," he muttered, lowering his mouth to capture

an erect nipple, nipping it with his teeth. All Kendra could do was submit

to her father's energy as one nipple, then the other, received lavish

attention, heighten her lust and fueling her desire.

"More, please give me more," Kendra purred.

"Whatever you wish, my lady." Standing, Devon removed his briefs freeing

his manhood, pausing for a moment for Kendra to take in the sight.

"Yeah," she cooed. "That's what I want. Give it to me, Daddy."

"Oh, no! Did you think it would be that easy?"

"Please, don't tease me."

Devon laughed softly as he removed the nearly invisible panties. "I'm

not through with you yet," he teased, moving to cover her mons with his

mouth, his talented tongue expertly cleaving her labia to flutter against

her clitoris.

Kendra's back arched at the contact, her back arching. "You bastard!"

she shrieked, grabbing two hands full of curly hair to hold him against her

center. "Eat me, you fucker! Eat my pussy!"

Devon smiled - he just loved it when she got like this. It never failed

to excite him and this time wasn't any different. He sucked Kenny's clit

savagely as the young woman continue to curse him, humping her pussy
against his face.

"Go, go, go," she chanted as an orgasm wormed its way along her nerve

endings. "One more, damn it, gimme another. Work it, Daddy!"

Devon's passions were fired and running at full throttle. He slipped a

finger inside her, feeling her slick juices coat it. He let it linger for

a few second as he continued to torture her clitoris.

"Oh, no you don't! Get that finger out of there! I only want one thing

inside me tonight!"

The hotter she got, the more filthy her mouth became. What an

interesting transformation for someone normally quiet and reserved! Devon

let his finger hang out for one more second before plunging it into her

anus.

"SHIT, YES!"

Yeah, Kendra was clearly over the edge and having big fun, Devon

thought, as he slid into her tight orifice up to the second knuckle.

Without giving her a chance to adjust, he pistoned the invading digit into

her savagely several times before removing it.

"Play time is over, little girl," he growled, forcing her legs open with

his hands. "Your ass is mine!"

A chill went through Kendra at his words as she felt her father's hands

slide under her buttocks, lifting her.

"Daddy, no..." she protested weakly - and not meaning it one damned bit.

Tiny jolts of ecstasy coursed through her as she felt the first touches of

his swollen glans.

"Too late, baby; I gotta do you - I just gotta love you."

"Do it, then." Kendra held her breath as the pressure against her

opening increased. The young woman shuddered as the spongy head passed

into her, coming to rest against her cherry.

"Come on, you bastard; don't make me wait for it."

Devon smiled evilly. "Whatever you say."

A white-hot bolt of pain tore through Kendra as Devon plowed into her,

easily shredding the overmatched membrane. With nothing to stand in his

way, Devon filled his daughter with hot, hard man-meat, feeling his balls

slap against her ass.

Devon held Kendra, kissing away the tears which flowed freely down her

face, not knowing if they were caused by his entrance or her happiness - or

both.

"Hey, hey," he said softly. "You okay?"

Kendra looked at him through tear-filled eyes. "What did you stop for?

You're not done yet."

"That's all I needed to hear," Devon said - and proceeded to pound the

living hell out of Kendra, fucking into her with short, hard strokes and

setting off a series of erotic explosions inside her body. The pain

quickly became a distant memory, being as replaced by a soothing sense of

fullness as Devon stretched her wide and deep.

"How do you like it? Is it what you thought it would be?"

"I never thought it could be like this."

"Kenny?"

"Hmm?"

"I love you so very much." Four rapid thrusts pinned Kendra in place as

Devon's urgency grew.

"I love you, too, Daddy," she moaned feeling his cock beginning to swell

inside of her. Kendra could feel his movements getting short and faster.

"DAMN IT ALL TO HELL!" The curse exploded from his lips just as the

first strong spurt of semen jetted from him to coat her once-virginal

sheath.

"Oh, shit - I can feel it!" Kendra was off in her own world as her

father continued to spill his love inside her. The final wave was

beginning to crest inside her and Kendra rode it, reveling the high it gave

her.

"Oh, no, oh, shit, OH FUCK!" Kendra was a screaming, gyrating demon as

she crashed and burned with lust, the orgasmic riptide carrying her off.

She struggled against the darkness which had appeared at the edge of her

consciousness as wave after wave of pleasure inundated her senses.

Devon continued to fuck into Kendra's spasming flesh, feeling spurt
after spurt of girl-juice flowing from her. "Geez," he thought. "Is she

ever gonna stop?"

Kendra continue to buck against him as the intense feelings took their

toll on her, overloaded already overtaxed senses. Her motions became

weaker and erratic until, finally, she collapsed.

Devon looked down at the unconscious woman's perspiration drenched face,

smiling. As he pulled his shrinking member from the tight grip of her

vagina, Devon couldn't help from feeling good and satisfied. He got out of

the bed, going into the bathroom. Closing the door, he flipped on the

light and examined his cock. After running the water, he wiped away the

blood-streaked remnants of semen. Grabbing another washcloth, he soaked it

before returning to the bed.

Devon hesitated for a moment to take a good look at his daughter. Even

though she was out like the proverbial light - she always did it when a

particularly good orgasm got the better of her - Devon could see Kendra had

turned out to be a very lovely young woman. Counting himself amongst the

luckiest of men, he applied the cool cloth to Kendra's overheated body.

The cool water did its job, reviving the exhausted woman. Kendra's eyes

fluttered open and she smiled.

"I did it again, huh?"

Taking her hands in his, Devon said, "Looks like it, babe. How do you

feel?"

"Good. Happy. Sore. God, you are one huge man!"

"No, I'm not - it just feels that way now. Don't worry, you'll get used

to it soon enough."

Devon placed the washcloth on the table beside him before joining Kendra

on the bed. He kissed her softly several times while stroking her face.

"Daddy?"

"Yeah, Kenny?"

"Thank you for loving me."

"Thanks for letting me love you, darling. Now, get some rest."

"'Kay," she muttered before drifting off to sleep.

After making sure Kendra was comfortable, Devon went to find Ellie.

Sitting in the kitchen, Ellie heard Devon's approach and greeted him

with a huge smile.

"You must have really done a number on her," she said after hugging and

kissing her brother. "I could hear her all the way down here."

"Yeah, it was pretty wild," Devon admitted, taking a seat next to his

sister. "You know, that girl has a very filthy mouth."

"Don't I know it!"

"I wonder where she picked up that bad habit," Devon mused while casting

a sideways glance at Ellie.

"Not from me," Ellie said - unconvincingly at that.

"Come on, El. Let's use Kenny's room and get some sleep."

"Right behind you!"

Hand in hand, they climbed the stairs, stopping to check on Kendra who

was sleeping peacefully.

As they snuggled in Kendra's bed, Ellie said, "You've created a monster,

you know."

"Have I?"

"Just wait and see."

Part V, Chapter Seven

Pressure, friction, motion, anxiety, calm. One moment, fullness, the

next, emptiness. Kendra experienced all these sensations as the hard penis

invaded her body again, restoring the feeling of fullness. She held her

breath as her weight nearly doubled, pressed into the firm but yielding

mattress as the man above her increased his movement inside her. Wet,

slurping sounds mingled with their breathing adding their special arousal

factors to the heavy, heady scents generated during lovemaking.

Kenny sighed with contentment as the thick, hard cock filled her

completely, feeling the engorged head collide with the entrance of her womb

as the man's mouth captured an erect nipple, sending another pleasurable

sensation through her to be added to those already present. The young
woman added her own movements to those of the man, thrusting her hips

upward to meet his, causing him to grunt in appreciation.

The man's strokes were getting longer and faster, the force of his body

meeting hers caused her full breasts to move in perfect counterpoint to his

thrusts. Kendra lifted her shapely legs higher, to give the man greater

access to her sweltering sex. Her senses were becoming overloaded, her

body literally rebounding from the bedding, only to be met by the man's

savage thrusts, their bodies slapping together wetly.

More friction, the woman felt more heat as she felt a very familiar

tingling. A deep thrust by the man, causing the tingling to increase

twofold. Another long, deep, thrust - the feeling quadrupled and her eyes

closed tightly in anticipation of what was to happen next.

The man's strokes, once sure and steady, were becoming erratic as his

thick tool grew larger inside her. Her own sex was already contracting

sporadically, sending rippling waves of moist flesh against the smooth

hardness inside her. A white hot, intense explosion ripped through her,

causing her inner muscles to clamp down tightly on the invading shaft.

Darkness also clamped down on her, her breathing barely noticeable. Then

she felt the first spurts of the man's seed, hot and sticky inside her.

Kendra floated on the edge of consciousness as the man hammered his

spurting cock into her as if he could get further into her body. The

frantic pounding sensation triggered another release somewhere deep inside

her, further pushing down the veil of darkness, causing her to shake as if

electrocuted.

Another contraction, another splash of juices to mix with his as,

finally, the intensity began to subside, leaving her with a drained, tingly

feeling. The man's last spurts of semen flowed into her as he collapsed

against her, breathing heavily.

"You know, " she said, her voice cracking slightly, "For an old man, you

ain't half bad."

The man propped himself up on one elbow, looking down at her smiling

face. Laughing, he replied, "Seems you didn't think I was so old just a

few moments ago."

"A few moments ago, I wouldn't have cared if the earth opened and

swallowed me whole." Kendra looked over at her grandfather with deep love

and affection.

"You were wonderful, Granddad; everything they said you were and them

some."

"Aw, 'twas nothing!" Lorne leaned across the short distance between them

and kissed Kendra while tweaking her still-erect nipple.

"Mmm," she moaned. "Better watch yourself, old guy; don't start

something you can't finish."

"Not very damned likely, little girl," Lorne replied, running his hands

along the curves of her body. "You're good, but you're not that good."

"I see you wanna find out the hard way," Kendra responded, moving slowly

toward him..

Lorne refused to back down. "You'd better bring friends because you're

going to need them to save your young ass."

Kendra sat across Lorne feeling her passion renewing at his challenge,

biding her time for just the right moment. Lorne relaxed and she made her

move, swiftly capturing his penis with her mouth, swirling her tongue

around the sensitive knob as fast and as hard as she could.

Lorne went from being completely relaxed to total rigidity, his raw

nerve endings screaming in protest. His hands went to her bobbing head in

an attempt to remove the source, just as Kendra relaxed her throat and

swallowed him whole. Instantly, the fiery sensations vanished - only to be

replaced by the luxurious feeling of his cock swelling in the deep recesses

of her mouth.

"Oh, it's gonna be like that, huh? Granddaughter, you just bit off more

than you can chew."

Kendra ignored the seemingly empty threat; what could he possibly do?

Satisfied that Lorne was bluffing, she continued to suck him, savoring the

unique flavor of pussy-flavored dick. Working her way back to the tip of

his shaft, Kendra once again teased his knob with her tongue while

massaging his thickening shaft with her hand.

Lorne settled into the moment, loving the feel of Kenny's soft, wet

mouth on his flesh. For long moments, he watched his granddaughter loving

his cock as it disappeared into her mouth. He looked up from the

intoxicating scene taking place between his legs and nodded in apparent

approval.

Kendra looked up at her grandfather just as he nodded, feeling a great

deal of pride and pleasure at his acknowledgment of her skills. Taking a

breath, Kendra took Lorne deeper into her throat...

And felt the incredible impact of a steel-hard penis driving into her

from behind. Shock and surprise registered on her face as she lost her

hold on Lorne's phallus. "Pick on my father, will you?" Devon's voice made

Kendra realized she had been set up from the very beginning.

"Didn't I teach you to respect your elders, Little One? No? Well, this

is the price you have to pay."

Lorne's low, lusty laugh reached her unbelieving ears. "Son, your

timing is perfect, as always. Shall we teach this little vixen of yours

some proper manners?"

Devon grunted as he drove into his daughter. "Why the hell not?"

Grabbing two hands full of young, sweet ass, he removed his cock from her

reawakened pussy, holding her firmly in place while Lorne shifted his

position under her. Devon reached down with one hand and massaged his

father's penis, stopping long enough to give the head a generous dollop of

saliva before positioning it at the entrance of Kendra's cunt.

"Ready?" Devon asked his father, who responded by nodded.

"No!" Kendra screamed. "What are you..."

"Shut up, woman," Lorne said with a viciousness he really didn't feel.

He did, however, know of her fondness for hot, raunchy, no-holds-barred

sex. Although not his preferred methods, he played his role to perfection.

With an arm around her waist to prevent escape, Devon guided Kendra's

quivering center onto his father's cock. Then, using his hands on her

shoulders, Devon sat her down - hard.

Kendra gasped at the sudden penetration, her breath releasing in one

long hiss. She looked down at her grandfather with lust-filled eyes.

"You think I can't handle this? old man, you're dead wrong!" To prove

her point, Kendra began to ride his maleness, slamming her buttocks down

hard. She let a curse fall from her lips as the knob of Lorne's cock

rammed into her womb. "Oh, shit, yes! I love this fucking thing!"

Her father's voice appeared in her ear. "Then you'll like this even

better!"

Without warning, the crown of his penis pressed against the opening of

her anus. As the bulbous head passed into her, Devon grunted with the

effort. The ultra-slick lubricant did its job well as Devon continued his

passage into her back hole, grimacing at the incredibly tight feeling as

Kendra's sphincter vainly tried to deny him access to her nether regions.

With two hot erections filling her, Kendra was stunned into silence, her

mind frantically trying to concentrate on the two sensations assaulting her

- and failing. All she could do was hold on for dear life as the tag-team

effort continued against her.

"Damn, Dad," Devon exclaimed, "I can feel your cock against mine - it

feels so fucking good!"

Lost in the dual sensations, Lorne decided to let his body do his

talking. father and son had fallen into a steady, comfortable rhythm; now

it was time to put some shit into the game. Lines of concentration creased

his forehead as Lorne increased his strokes inside Kendra, feeling Devon's

thickness through the thin membrane separating them. Quickly, they fell

out of time, each man pounding into Kendra at will.

"Damn it! Oh, fuck! You're tearing me apart!" Not surprising, neither

man deigned to answer her pleas - not that Kenny expected one, each lost in

the all-encompassing grip of passion.

The friction was becoming unbearable as precious lubricating fluids were

whisked away by the invading phalluses; Kendra felt as if her body were on

fire. In an act of what could be called desperation, Kendra did the only

thing she could do. With a massive effort, she willed her battered muscles

to clamp down, trapping father and son within her. The sudden pressure

against their cocks was enough to launch them straight over the precipice.

Devon felt his manhood expand suddenly, pressing hard against the veined

dagger under him. "Damn!" he cursed. "Not now!" Past the point of no

return, Devon flooded Kendra's anal cavity with his seed.

Lorne felt his son's meat swell, felt the strong pulses against his own

swollen member. He released pearly love into Kendra in great spurts, his

body shaking with the effort.

"Oh, yeah! That's what I'm talking about! Fill her, Dev! Fill your

daughter's hot ass!"

The room was filled with grunts and groans of agony/ecstasy as the men
continued to feed Kendra's body with their sperm. Not to be left out,

Kendra had reached her limit right after they began to ejaculate, washing

their thrice-joined bodies with a little liquid of her own.

Exhausted and sore, Devon withdrew from Kendra's rectal prison, allowing

the spent young woman to collapse onto Lorne's chest. On his knees behind

Kendra, Devon could see his father's cock still deeply imbedded in her

pussy, long streams of semen flowing along the exposed portion of his

shaft. Leaning forward, Devon greedily lapped up the offering, feeling a

rush of exhilaration as the musky tastes flowed across his tongue.

Lorne asked, "Well, Kenny, what did you think?"

When she didn't answer, Devon said, "Kendra?" Moving around to his

right, he peered into Kendra's face.

Kendra's face was wet with tears and her mouth was open slightly. Devon

reached up and stroked her tangled hair before looking at his father.

"Out?" Lorne asked.

"Like a light." Devon confirmed. "She really enjoys herself, doesn't

she?"

With a little help from Devon, Lorne freed himself from Kendra, laying

her down in a spot which wasn't too wet with the juices their love had

wrought.

"She does, at that. You were right when you said she'd enjoy this."

Devon nodded in agreement.

"I'm worried about something, though," Lorne continued as he stood and

stretched like a cat.

"What's that, Dad?"

"She likes it rough and raunchy; did you teach her this?"

"No way, Dad - it surprised me and El, too. Maybe this is her way of

expressing those things she doesn't when she's not being made love to."

Lorne looked thoughtful. "I suppose you're right, son; normally, you

can't get her to say two words at the same time."

Devon's soft laugh filled the room as he joined his father. "Maybe she

saves it all up for moments like this."

"Hey, she's your daughter - live with it!"

"You know it. How 'bout something to drink? I don't know about you,

but all this loving makes me thirsty!"

"You're on." Reaching the door, he turned to take one last look at the

incredibly sexy young woman on his bed. Kendra had curled up on her side,

sleeping the sleep of the innocent.

Part V, Chapter Eight

Joined together in love and happiness, life for the Williams family
couldn't be better. Kendra grew into a fine young woman, taking every

opportunity to add to her already impressive store of knowledge in the

subjects of loving and living, often to the chagrin of anyone foolish

enough to tangle with her. She seemed to be insatiable, making love with a

gusto no one expected of her.

Once everyone decided Kendra's behavior was simply her way of

expression, it made making love with her easier to understand. Devon and

Ellie were concerned her wild, lusty behavior was some sort of rebellion

against their chosen lifestyle, so they asked her about it.

"Rebelling? Against what?" came the exasperated answer. "Mom, Dad, I

couldn't be any happier! Whatever gave you an idea like that?"

Devon had the audacity to look sheepish. "Um, honey, it's just, shit -

how can I say this without sounding insulting?"

"Just say it, Dad."

"When you make love, you're, ah..."

Kendra smiled and finished the sentence for her father. "'Wild' is a

good word."

Relaxing, Devon looked at Ellie with obvious relief. "Yeah, I suppose

it is at that."

"You two worry too much. After all, you made me this way."

This time Ellie jumped in. "We did what?"

Kendra turned to look at her mother, love softening her already soft

expression. "Mother, what have you and Dad been teaching me all my life?

To live life with gusto, right? Well, I choose to express the gusto part

of it when I'm making love with my family."

Kendra's parents just looked at each other, realizing she was right.

"I hope we didn't offend you, darling; we were just a little concerned."

"No offense taken! May I be excused? I'm supposed to pick Adam up in

20 minutes."

A moment of silence passed as Devon looked from Kendra to Ellie and back

to Kendra.

"'Adam?' Who is Adam?"

Kendra looked directly at her mother. "Mom, you didn't tell him about

Adam? You promised!"

It was Ellie's turn to look sheepish. "Oh, hell! I knew there was

something I forgot to tell you."

"So it would seem, woman. So, who's Adam?"

"Adam is a guy I met at school - he plays in the band. He's really nice

and I agreed to go out with him."

Alarms began to sound off inside Devon's head. With a coolness he

didn't feel, he asked, "Are you sure you want to do that?"

mother and daughter looked at Devon curiously.

"Is there a reason why I shouldn't?"

"Think about it for a moment."

Kendra made a show of thinking. After a second or so, she threw her

arms up. "Okay, I'll bite. Why shouldn't I go out with Adam?"

Ellie was the first to get Devon's point. "Your father's concerned he

may discover our 'little secret.'" Devon confirmed with a nod; until now,

they hadn't had to deal with this situation before...

Kendra sat down as her mother's words sunk in. "You know," she finally

said after a moment. "It never occurred to me. What should I do? I

really like him!"

"Kenny, darling, I'm not saying you can't go out with him. I'm not even

saying you can't make love with him. I just feel you should be careful.

If our family has a weakness, it is the 'fear' of discovery."

"Even today, society just doesn't want to understand our way of life,"

Ellie added. "One 'wrong' word to the wrong person, and there could be

trouble for us all."

Of course, Kendra was already aware of these facts; it had been an

integral part of her upbringing.

Devon continued with, "How well do you know him?"

"Well enough to have decided to go out with him. He seems pretty

level-headed about a lot of things."

"Kenny, honey, I don't think your father is trying to sour you on

getting into a relationship with someone else, but he does have a point."

"You're right, mom - he does. I'm sorry; I just never thought about it

before I met him. I always figured on not meeting anyone I'd find

interesting."

"Tell you what. Why don't you invite him over for dinner, say, Friday?

This way, we can get to know him."

Kendra brightened. "That's a wonderful idea, Mom! How 'bout it, Dad?

Sound like a winner to you?"

"Sounds like a plan to me," Devon agreed. "Let's go for it!"

Kendra got up to leave, taking time to kiss each of her parents in turn.

"Thank you! You won't regret it - Adam's a great guy and I know you'll

like him. See you later!"

"'Bye, honey - don't be late!" Ellie shouted after her. Returning to

her seat next to Devon, she asked, "Are you sure about this?"

Devon frown at the question. "As sure as I can be, El. We can't keep

her all to ourselves, now can we? We've taught her love is something to be

shared without exception. It was just a matter of time before she decided

to share her love with someone not of the family."

* * *

Adam Harrison couldn't take his eyes off the lovely vision sitting

beside him; it was all he could do not to pinch himself. Sitting next to

her in Chemistry was one thing. Eating lunch was another. Being out on a

date, well, were there any words left to describe it?

Adam sighed. Kendra was everything he ever wanted in a woman.

Beautiful, intelligent, confident - did he mention beautiful? Even though

she was obviously from mixed heritage, it wasn't the first thing you

noticed about Kendra. No, the first thing you noticed was her personality:

Quiet and reserved. Not in the least bit withdrawn, though; the first word

which came to mind was 'focused.'

"This is absolutely wonderful, Adam. I've passed by this place a

thousand times without ever stopping to take in the view."

Was she talking to him?

"Hello? Earth to Adam! Come in, Adam!"

"Huh? Oh, I'm sorry Kendra. My mind was a million miles away."

"No kidding!"

Adam blushed. "Before I forget, thanks for going out with me. I've

really enjoyed your company."

Kendra smiled brightly. "Wanna enjoy more of my company?"

"How?"

"My parents have invited you to dinner on Friday."

"Really?"

"No. I'm pulling your leg." Adam could be so goofy at times!

"I'd be honored. Tell your parents I accept. What time should I be

there?"

"We usually eat around 5:30 or so; be at my house at, say, 5:00?"

"Okay." As they lapsed into silence, Adam scooted closer to Kendra,

placing a tentative arm around her.

Kendra looked at Adam for a moment before settling against him,

wondering what had taken him so long to figure out she wanted to be held.

Boy, he sure had a lot to learn - and she was just the person to teach him!

* * *

Friday arrived without incident. All through the school day, Kendra

found it hard to stay focused on her lessons. Understandably, she was

concerned with the outcome of the evening's activities. Sitting next to

Adam in chemistry was pure torture; each tried to look at each other

without making their involvement obvious to their classmates.

After living through what seemed to be the longest school day in

history, the final bell rang. Kendra made her way through the throng of

students, climbed into her car, and made the drive home. Even the traffic

lights seemed to be plotting against her, increasing her ride home by five

minutes. Pulling up to the house, Kendra hurried inside.

"Mom? Dad? I'm home!"

When neither parent answered, Kendra wondered where they were. They

were still home - their cars were still in the carport.

"Oh, great," she exclaimed. "I wonder if they went down to the lake?"

Kendra headed for the back of the house. As she reached the swinging doors

leading to the kitchen, Kendra heard her mother's voice.

"Damn it, Dev! Will you stop? Kenny's due home any minute!"

"She won't see anything she hasn't seen before."

"What if Adam is with her?"

"Be quiet."

Kendra went through the doors, giving her parents a reproving look.

Ellie was bent over, her arms resting on the counter. Devon was behind

her, pumping away into her.

"Ahem."

Ellie and Devon turned their heads in unison. "Oh, hi, babe! Be done

in a minute!"

"I don't believe this! The most important day in my life and you two

are in the kitchen, screwing like a couple of teenagers!"

Devon increased his strokes inside Ellie, grunting with pleasure.

Kendra recognized that grunt - her father was filling Ellie with hot sperm.

Moments later, he slipped out of her, stuffing his still jerking cock back

into his pants and zipping his fly.

"I couldn't help it," Devon confessed. "Your mother always has this

effect on me, especially when she bends over!"

Ellie whirled on her brother. "You've always blamed your horniness on

me! You started it!"

Devon treated her with a smug look. "Did not."

"Did, too!"

Kendra left brother and sister playing out an age-old game, shaking her

head incredulously. She had things to do before Adam arrived!

* * *

Adam waited nervously for someone to answer the door, wondering if he

was making the right decision by coming here. He looked around to take in

the scenery of the woods surrounding the lake. Off in the distance and on

the other side of the lake, Adam noticed a rather large residence, idly

wondering who owned such a lavish piece of property.

Further speculation was cut-off by the sound of the door opening and a

strong voice saying, "You must be Adam. Come on in!"

Adam turned and faced the owner of the voice. Immediately, he

recognized the eyes and the same cafe au lait complexion he'd come to love

and respect. Obviously, this was Kendra's father, Devon.

"Mr. Williams? I'm Adam Harrison. I believe Kendra's expecting me?"

Devon waved the younger man inside. Closing the door, he said, "Kenny's

upstairs getting ready. Have a seat."

"'Kenny'?" Adam's puzzled look spoke volumes as he sat.

"Our nickname for her. She never told you we call her that?"

"No, sir."

"I see. So tell me about yourself, Adam."

For the next 20 minutes, Adam talked about himself and his family.

Devon listened with great interest along with Ellie, who had joined them

from the kitchen. Early on in the conversation, Adam felt their intense

gaze upon him; however, when he saw they weren't out to give him the third

degree, Adam found himself rather relaxed and comfortable with Kendra's

parents.

Devon was answering a question about the house; as he did, Adam couldn't

keep from noticing how much Mr. and Mrs. Williams resembled each other.

His mind dismissed the resemblance - it was often said that people who stay

with each other for a long time tend to resemble each other after a while.

The conversation was just turning to Adam's thoughts on the upcoming

election when Kendra finally appeared.

"I hope I haven't kept you waiting too long," she apologized. Kendra

sat next to Adam and took his hand in a show of support.

Adam felt flushed with warmth at the contact. "Not at all. I've had a

great time talking to your parents."

"Since we're all here," Ellie announced. "Let's eat!"

Conversation during dinner was held at a minimum, with Adam adding in a

compliment here and there. All during the meal, Kendra would steal a look

in Adam's direction, occasionally winking and smiling at him. Which didn't

escape notice, of course; Ellie and Devon were quite aware of the little

signals being passed between the two teens.

"No, really Mrs. Williams - I couldn't eat another bite!" Adam said,

politely refusing another dish of orange sherbert. "I'm stuffed!"

As they cleared the table, Ellie nodded to Devon, who turned to Kendra

and said, "Why don't you show Adam around the property and the lake?"

Kendra's smile lit her face. "Sure! Are you ready, Adam?"

"Why not? I've love to see what your parents have built here!"

"Then, scoot!" said Ellie. "We'll see you later. Oh, one other thing."

"Yes, Mom?"

"If we're not here when you return, we'll be at your grandparents'."

"Okay." Taking Adam by the hand, Kendra led him out the back door.

As he watched the youths make their way down the rise behind the house,

Devon turned and embraced his sister.

"They look happy together, don't they?"

"Yes, they do," Ellie agreed. "I hope we've made the right decision."

"Doesn't matter, dear," Devon said, kissing her forehead. "What does

matter is has Kenny made the right decision. Only time will tell."

* * *

Kendra stopped so suddenly Adam nearly lost his balance. "Oops! Sorry!

Well, this is it, my favorite place."

Adam took in his surroundings. Off to his right, the path they'd

followed continued on towards the lake, which shimmered with reflected

light through the canopy of evergreen trees. Above him, the canopy was

open to the sky, allowing a clear view of the oranges and reds which mixed

with the fading blue sky as the sun set.

"Oh, my." Adam was momentarily stunned by the overall beauty and quiet

of this place. "I can see why you come here - this is absolutely

beautiful."

"I'm glad you like it. I often come here when I want to be alone to

think." Kendra walked a few paces to her left and opened a medium-sized box

Adam failed to notice. When she turned around, he could see her arms

filled with the contents of the box.

"What's all this?"

"I spend so much time here, my father built this storage locker for me.

It gets rather cool in the evenings, so there's blankets and stuff inside -

even a tent if it should rain."

Adam could help but be impressed. "Your father thinks of everything,

doesn't he?"

"He loves me very much. Besides, it's his job to see to my needs - he's

very dedicated."

For a brief moment, Adam felt a pang of jealousy as Kendra spoke of her

father. Clearly, there was a lot of love between the two of them; somehow,

he resented it without knowing why.

Kendra had finished spreading out the blankets to cover the dried pine

needles, patting the spot next to her. "Well, are you going to come over

and sit down or do you plan on spending the evening standing?"

Adam stood for a moment to drink in Kendra's beauty. Her braids, tipped

with their customary beads cascaded onto her bare shoulders, making soft

clicking sounds each time she moved. The yellow tank top accented the

color of her skin, which was several shades lighter than his own.

Continuing his downward gaze, he could see the outline of her firm breasts,

unencumbered by a bra; her nipples stood out against the material, no doubt

caused by the cooling air.

Flat, muscular tummy showed itself at the bottom of her top,

disappearing into the shorts Kendra was wearing, only to appear once again

at her firm thighs.

"Hello? Adam?"

"Coming," he finally answered, his mouth a little dry.

"You did it to me again."

"Huh? What did I do?"

"Faded out on me, like you were somewhere else."

Sitting next to her, Adam leaning back using his arms to support

himself. "I'm sorry; you are so beautiful I find it distracting when we're

together."

Kendra placed her head in Adam lap. Looking into his chocolate-brown

eyes, she said, "Flatterer."

"It's the truth," he replied. Kendra's beauty aside, Adam was aware of

another distraction, one which had begun during his appreciative

appreciation. Looking down into Kendra's light-brown eyes, Adam was sure

she could feel his erection pulsating under her.

And he was right; Kendra noticed it before he sat down. Inwardly, she

smiled at the warm feeling f the growing shaft felt through his pants,

pleased of her obvious affect on him.

"Adam?"

Adam blinked at the sudden change in her voice, now soft and husky.

"Huh?"

"Kiss me." Kendra lifted his head toward him.

Blood roaring in his ears, Adam leaned forward until their lips met,

cradling her head in his hands. Kendra's tongue flicked across his lips

for a moment before the kiss was broken, leaving Adam feeling lightheaded

and dizzy.

"Hmm," she cooed. "That was nice."

"Uh, yeah." Adam's discomfort was becoming more apparent with each

passing second. "You kiss very well." In his head, Adam kicked himself for

such a lame statement. Obviously, his brain didn't want to work right

around this woman.

"Thank you. I do a lot of things well. You interested in finding out?"

"I... uh, don't know what you mean."

"Just as I figured," Kendra thought. Aloud, she said, "Let me show

you." Kendra's hands moved toward the closures of his pants, quickly

undoing them to reveal his throbbing member, which was barely contained

within the bikini briefs he wore.

"I don't think we should be doing this," he protested while wondering

why he didn't have any control over his muscles.

Kendra ignored him long enough to make sure she had what she wanted in

her hand. "Adam, love, I don't remember asking you what you think." That

said, she quickly took him into her mouth.

Nothing Adam had ever imagined during his many masturbation sessions

ever prepared him for such an exquisite sensation. Ever since meeting

Kendra, he had dreamed of losing his virginity to her, envisioning two

groping neophytes exploring love for the first time.

Adam was finding it hard to breathe as the lithe woman engulfed him once

again, her tongue tracing patterns along the shaft which were driving him

insane. He opened an eye and found Kendra looking back at him, her lips

forming an 'O' around him. Kendra blinked once before returning to the

matter at hand, slurping him back into the deep recesses of her throat.

Kenny was immensely enjoying herself, savoring Adam's fresh, clean taste

and scent. She happily sucked him, not caring if he found her whorish or

trashy. From their very first encounter, she knew he was the man she'd

spend her life with. As she ran her tongue along the edge of his glans,

she could feel the beginnings of his orgasm. Kendra's eyebrows arched in

surprise as Adam's seed flowed into her mouth, filling her with a

surprising sweetness which she drank down.

Adam, now flat on his back and at Kendra's mercy, was caught in the

throes of orgasm. His chest moved in great heaves as he tried to get his

breathing under control as Kendra continued to drain him. An instant

later, he sensed more than felt Kendra remove her mouth from his rapidly

shrinking cock, leaving him disoriented and dizzy.

"Hmm," Kendra moaned, licking her lips. "Poor baby! You've never done

this before, have you?"

All Adam could do was shake his head as Kendra sat beside him and

caressed his face.

"W-why did you do that?", he finally managed to croak.

"I've fallen in love with you, silly! That's why I did it."

Adam tried to focus his eyes on the Nubian goddess above him; after a

few seconds, Kendra's smiling face came sharply into view. "You're in love

with me? You've got a funny way of showing it."

"If you love someone, you should always show it every way you can."

The cool evening air had revived him some. "But, we hardly know each

other!"

"We've known each other long enough, dearest. Can I tell you

something?"

"Sure."

"I've known for some time now you were the man for me. During dinner, I

made up my mind to share my love with you, something I've wanted to do

since our first date."

"I don't understand."

Kendra cupped his face in her hands, seeing the tears welling in his

eyes. "I'll make it easy for you, then. I know what I want in life - and

what I want is you. Will you have me?"

Something in her words struck a chord within Adam as the tears flowed

from him. Never before in his life had he met someone who affected him so

much. His body knew Kendra was the one for him, even if his mind didn't

understand why.

Kendra waited patiently for Adam to answer, a moment of fear coursing

through her. Did I come on too strong? Was I wrong about him? Her mind

was a roiling miasma of questions.

"Yes, oh God, yes!"

Kendra smiled, all worry vanishing from her mind. "You won't regret

it," she said. Standing, she removed her shorts and panties and tossed

them aside.

Adam's eyes went wide at the sight of her half-naked body, his cock

stirring in response as Kendra straddled him, a look of fierce

determination on her lovely face. Reaching between them, she massaged Adam

into full erection in no time flat, positioning him at her entrance. "I'm

going to love you like you've never been loved before - I promise!", she

said huskily, lowering herself onto him.

For Adam, reality went on vacation as Kendra filled herself with his

cock. "Oh, shit," he moaned, as the sensations of well-lubricated pussy
sliding along his cock registered in his mind.

"Just relax and enjoy it, baby," Kendra said. Closing her eyes, she

wallowed in the wonderful feeling of cock inside of her, even though he

wasn't nearly as large or thick as her father and grandfather. Didn't

matter, though, just as long as they loved each other.

Kendra's relative experience was no match for Adam; she could feel the

tremors running along the length of him. "Ah, yes, baby! Give me your

love! Don't hold it back!"

Hold it back? Hold what back? Adam had no idea what she was talking

about as the feelings welled inside his body. They were a little like the

feelings he experienced while masturbating - only a million times more

intense.

Kendra felt him swell inside, screwing her ass down onto him frantically

as the first spurts of his seed flowed into her aching center.

"Yes, my darling! Fill me with it! Cream me!"

Adam could only groan in response as he continued to empty himself into

Kendra, leaving him to wonder if it would ever end. To their mutual

pleasure, Adam's spasms began to subside. A few moments later, his soft

manhood slipped from Kendra's velvety enclosure. She lay across him,

gently kissing away his tears.

Adam wrapped his arms around her, hugging her close. Who would have

known making love would be so wonderful! He laughed softly to himself,

getting Kenny's attention.

"What's so funny?"

Smiling, he looked at her. "This isn't exactly the way I planned on

losing my virginity, here on a blanket under the stars."

"Did it matter how you lost it? Or does who you lost it to matter?"

"The latter, of course. I just don't know how to explain how I feel."

"Then don't. Baby, I've got a feeling we'll have plenty of time for you

to explain it later. Right now, I think we should either head for the

house or set up the tent." Kendra rose looking for her discarded clothing.

Adam rolled over and got to his knees before standing. When he got to

his feet, the world started to rotate in the opposite direction and he

flailed his hands to balance himself.

Kendra, now dressed, was dragging the tent from the storage bin. "You

okay?"

"Yeah, I just got up too fast."

"So sit back down, silly. I'll have this thing up in no time." She

grinned at him. "Then I'll have you up in no time!"

"Again? I barely survived the first time!"

"Yes, my darling, again. And again. And again! I'll never get enough

of loving you!"

* * *

A mile or so away, Devon turned away from the large bay window which

overlooked the lake. Even in the darkness, he knew the location of

Kendra's favorite spot.

Lorne looked at his son, a wry smile on his face. "So, do you think she

had her way with him?"

Devon returned to his seat next to his mother. "I'm sure she did, but

that's not what I'm worried about."

"What worries you, Dev?"

Devon looked into his mother's green eyes. "Mom, what happens when he

finds out? He will, eventually, you know. Kendra is as open and honest as

the day is long. We've taught her not to deceive or mislead the people she

loves - and the girl had love written all over her face for this boy."

Etienne went to Devon's side as well. "Devon, I think you're worried

about nothing."

"Aunt Eti, I hope you're right."

Part V, Chapter Nine

Thoughts from Kendra

When I look at my family, I often wind up shaking my head at the irony

of it. First, there's my grandfather, Lorne. So calm and cerebral as the

patriarch of the family! If there's a problem, he usually has a solution

for it. But he won't solve the problem, leaving it up to the individual to

get it squared away.

Then there's his daughter and my grandmother, Etienne. Had it not been

for them, I wouldn't be here today! Grandmom Eti is so much like her

father, you'd think they were husband and wife. That's how well they

compliment each other.

Oh, did I mention that they're both very good in bed?

Okay. So, there's Lorne and Etienne, who gave birth to my mother,

Eleanor, who is named after Etienne's mother. Stay with me, 'cause this

gets a little complicated! Etienne had a friend, Kymber, who was also an

occasional lover to her and Granddad. From what I've been told, they all

got together at some party where some pretty wild things happened. Not too

long afterwards, Kymber came to live with them after Kymber's father died.

That was about the same time my mother was conceived. After my mom was

born, Kymber married my grandfather and they gave birth to my father,

Devon. Devon and Ellie do their thing and, voila! Here I am!

Whew! Trying to figure out who is related to whom and how can give you

a headache! Sometime, I think of it as a math problem:

Lorne + Etienne = Eleanor Lorne + Kymber = Devon Eleanor + Devon = Me!

I know what society thinks about incest and, frankly, I don't see their

point at all. When others think about it, all they see is the sexual

aspect of it and they always get it wrong. If someone were to ask me if

I'd been abused or molested as a child, I would laugh at them and tell them

no. Which is the truth. I've never known anything but love and affection

my entire life. As you can imagine, however, my family and I have a rather

different definition of being loved.

I've grown up doing the three-L thing taught to me by my parents and

other family members: Live, Learn, and Love. And it all makes sense. What

girl could ask for more?

Then I met Adam. At first, I had no problem sharing my love with him

because it just came naturally to me. My parents were a little bummed out

about it, of course, because they had no way of knowing if Adam could be

trusted with our little secret - but they left it up for me to decide.

So, I've got a fiancé now and things couldn't be better. If you're

thinking having Adam in my life changed things where my family is

concerned, you couldn't be any more wrong. I love Adam very much; he's

absolutely wonderful. But I also have great love for my family and have no

problem at all showing them.

I remember the time I went over to visit my grandparents and got into it

with Grandmom Kymber. Wow! I thought I had a lot of love to share!

Kymber taught me a few things I'll never forget!

My point is when I need loving or need to show love, I know I can go to

any of them and express myself fully.

Adam doesn't know about any of this, though. I'm a little hesitant to

bring it up, even though I suspect he has some questions he'd love to ask.

For instance, he got to see all of us together for the first time last

year; I could see him looking at everyone with a funny look on his face,

noticing the resemblance we all bear with each other. Afterwards, I could

tell he was dying to say something about it - I almost told him and thought

better of it.

It's not a question of whether I trust him or not; he is the man I will

spend the rest of my life with, the one I will bear many children for.

However, as you might expect, this will be one hell of a shock to him, one

which could cause me to lose him forever. Since we're planning on getting

married in a couple of months, losing him now wouldn't be the smartest

thing to do. I suppose I'll just have to worry about it when the time

comes.

Part V, Chapter Ten

Even a week before the wedding, Adam was discovering just how deep the

river Kendra ran. Witty and charming, intelligent and thoughtful - the

epitome of a classic woman. Get her in a situation where love was the

order of the day and watch out! Sophisticated woman turned into an

insatiable, exciting she-devil!

Adam had to admit a bit of disappointment upon finding out someone had

her before he did, realizing it was a foolish fantasy. No way a woman as

beautiful - and as hot - as Kenny goes untouched for very long. The manner

in which she relieved him of his virginity by the lake was intense and a

little frightening at first; however, as he became more accustomed to her,

his fear of Kendra's sexual intensity subsided.

Well, almost, anyway. Adam shivered as his intended buried his cock

inside her body once again, grinning at him in that evil way of hers which

told him Kendra was very horny today. Pleasure flowed through him like a

current, ebbing and flowing at times, but always constant.

The last eighteen months had been quite an education for Adam. Subtly

and slowly, Kendra had been changing his entire outlook on life. Like now,

for example. They had just returned to Kendra's place, going to her room

to get the last minute details together. One moment they were talking

about possible honeymoon locations, the next, Kendra had his cock out,

gotten it hard and in her before he'd realized what had happened.

Now, after getting an earful of lusty curses and having his lower half

drenched with girl-juice, Adam was spurting inside her, his hips thrusting

strongly against her unyielding tightness.

"Ooh, baby! That was just what I needed!" Kendra dismounted slowly,

listening to the wet, sloppy sounds created by their parting.

"Damn, Kenny! Don't you ever get enough?" Adam asked as her looked at

his sweat-drenched shirt.

"Can you ever get enough love? Better yet, would you ever get enough of

being loved by me?"

"I suppose not."

"There you go, then! Now, where were we?"

Adam sat on the edge of the bed, shaking his head in awe at this

wonderful creature. Hot and lusty one moment, cool and business-like the

next.

For the next couple of hours, Kendra and Adam went over their wedding

plans. Actually, confirming all the plans would have only taken 30 minutes

or so; you can guess what they spent the rest of their time doing, can't

you?

Once again, Adam found himself drenched in perspiration and girl-stuff.

Kendra, as was her habit when completely satisfied, had passed out next to

him, sleeping peacefully. Good thing, too; Adam knew he'd be unable to

continue.

That passing out business really bothered Adam until Kendra had

explained it to him. In fact, Adam had learned just how much Kenny knew

about making love, all the while knowing she knew more than she was

telling.

He shivered. If this was only the tip of the iceberg...

Reaching over, he stroked her smooth skin, feeling so much love for her.

The future looked bright and clear. Well, almost. There was one thing

Kendra had insisted on which didn't make sense to him: After the wedding

and honeymoon (compliments of her grandparents), she had insisted they live

with her parents. Adam had argued eloquently as to why they should have

their own place; however, Kendra promptly announced there would be no

wedding without his agreeing to her terms. After more discussion, Adam

caved in to Kenny's 'demands'.

The following day, Kendra had announced to her parents the "good news."

Adam had expected a major argument from Devon and Ellie (they told him that

Mr. and Mrs. Williams lived on the other side of the lake, thank you very

much) and was shocked at their quiet acceptance.

Hell, Mrs., uh, Ellie had actually smiled!

Again, Adam shivered; there was something vaguely familiar about that

smile, something he couldn't quite put his finger on.

"Hi, lover!"

Adam turned at the sound of his beloved's voice, smiling. "'Bout time

you woke up! How are you feeling?"

"Fantastic! Lovely! Hungry!"

Adam's heart skipped a beat - for a moment, he thought she was going to

say "horny!"

"Glad to hear it. You wanna go out?"

"Nope! Let's hit the kitchen!"

As Kendra bounded off the bed and into the bathroom, Adam shook his

head: Where did she get all this energy? Three minutes later, Kenny

reappeared wearing a green and gold embroidered kimono; in her hands was a

red, gold and royal purple kimono.

"Here," she said tossing him the silk garment. "Go clean up and slip

into that; I'll toss your clothes in the washer while we eat."

* * *

Minutes later, the kitchen was awash with the fragrance of broiled

steak; potatoes were baking in the oven and the salad had just been

completed. Adam crunched away happily while watching Kendra eat.

"My God," he thought. "She even eats with the same gusto she has for

sex!" The thought struck him hard - why was it he never noticed it before?

As he contemplated this latest revelation, his fork dropped from his limp

fingers onto the floor.

"Clumsy," said Kendra, attacking her salad.

Adam smiled and bent to pick up the fork, getting a great view of her

treasures hidden away under the folds of silk.

"Adam?"

The groom-to-be ended his perusal of Kendra's gifts, picking up the fork

and placing it onto the table. Sitting up, he found Kendra looking at him

with a fierce intensity, mixed with... sadness?

"What is it, hon?"

"There's something we need to talk about before we get married."

"Can't it wait until after we get married?"

"I would prefer not to, if it's all the same to you."

Adam frowned - what in the hell was this about? Giving a mental shrug,

he said, "Whatever makes you happy, Kenny." As he shifted in his seat, he

added, "Although, I can't imagine what you want to talk about that's so

important it can't wait."

"There are a few things about me you should know." Kendra studied Adam

intently, searching for any signs of disinterest. Finding none, she

continued.

"You know I love you very much, don't you?"

If this was any other woman, Adam knew he would have simply humored her;

however, he knew Kendra wasn't a woman to be patronized in any way. "Yes,

darling; you tell me - and show me - every chance you get."

"If there was something, say, unusual about me, would it change the way

you feel about me?"

"Let's see: You're incredibly bright, absolutely beautiful and hornier

than ten women. What could possibly be unusual about you?"

Kendra smiled, taking some of the edge off her current mood - just as

Adam planned.

"Come on; I'm trying to be serious."

"And you think I wasn't?"

Kendra's scathing remark was cut short by the sound of the front door

opening.

"Kenny? We're home!"

"In here, Dad." Kendra felt a moment of frustration at her parent's

unintentional interruption. Perhaps it was for the better.

Devon and Ellie walked into the kitchen, taking in the view of the

soon-to-be married couple in their resplendent kimonos.

"Did we interrupt anything?" asked Ellie, taking a seat at Adam's right;

Devon sat on his left.

"We were just talking," Adam answered, feeling suddenly surrounded.

"Oh; I see. By the way, Kenny - your grandmother says "hi."

"How are they doing?"

"Everyone's feeling better; nothing a little rest can't cure."

"Were they sick?" asked Adam, his concern genuine.

"Exhausted - they were up all night."

"Doing what?"

"I'm not sure, Adam; they won't tell me anything other than they had

some fun." Changing the subject, Devon said, "Are you ready for the big

day?"

"About as ready as I'll ever be!"

"How about you, Kenny?" Ellie asked.

"You know me, Mom; I'm good to go!"

Just as Adam was about to speak, he was interrupted by the dryer's

buzzer.

Ellie and Devon looked toward the laundry room. "You have something in

the dryer, Kenny?"

"Just Adam's clothes - they got a little messy."

As Adam blushed, Devon and Ellie exchanged a knowing glance, furthering

Adam's embarrassment. One of the things he learned about Kendra which

bothered him was her willingness to discuss their sexual activities with

her parents. Even more surprising was their lack of reaction, as if such

behavior was expected and encouraged!

Adam stood. "Yes. Well, I guess I should get dressed and be on my

way."

"Don't rush off on our account," said Ellie, smiling sweetly.

"No, really - I have to get going. I've still got a million things to

do before the wedding." Why was this woman smiling at him like that?

Didn't she know the effect it was having on him?

"Okay, if you insist."

Adam went over to Kendra, kissing her. "See you Saturday - don't be

late!"

"Bye! You just remember where the church is, okay?"

Adam flashed a smile in her direction before disappearing. A few

minutes later, Kendra heard the door closing and his car starting up.

Turning to her parents, she fixed them with a chilly stare.

"You two have a knack of showing up at the wrong time."

"Huh? What did we do?" Devon was incredulous.

"I was about to tell him about the family when you walked in."

It was as if the air stopped moving in the room as Devon and Ellie

realized the implication of her announcement.

"Kenny," her mother began. "Do you really think Adam is ready to hear

this?"

"Mom, I'm going to have to tell him one of these days! Why not now?"

Devon looked at both women before speaking. "Honey, perhaps telling him

now wouldn't be a good idea. Give your marriage some time to settle in

first; enjoy each other's love. Maybe after a year or so, he'll be ready

to deal with it."

"You think so?"

"All you can do is hope for the best, dear."

* * *

On Saturday, Kendra Etienne Williams became Mrs. Adam Ryan Harrison.

The newlyweds posed for pictures after the ceremony and, with rice and well

wishes flowing, departed the reception for their honeymoon.

During the flight, Adam stole looks at his bride, noticing the slight

puffiness under her eyes. Come to think of it, Kenny did appear to be

tired when he first saw her standing at the altar, but assumed it was

caused by late night preparations.

Adam was closer to the truth than he realized. For Kendra, it had been

a very late night and, as far as preparations were concerned, you can use

your imagination.

Kendra sat next to her husband, alternating looks out the tiny window

and the stunning ring set on her left hand. She was still tired from

Friday evening's family gathering - what a night! Still, when they arrived

at their destination, she would be more than ready to handle the

consummation of her marriage.

Adam's voice cut through her musings.

"Honey, is everything okay?"

"Just fine, love. How are things with you?"

"I'm still having trouble believing we're married. I know it's real,

but..." Adam stared pointedly at his wedding ring.

Kendra smiled. "It's a lot more real than you believe, darling."

Adam blinked at her cryptic response. "It is?"

"Of course! Just think of the future we'll have, the things we'll do

together. The love we'll share!"

The aircraft banked hard to the left coming up on its final approach.

Minutes later, they were embroiled in the usual hassles of deplaning and

elbowing their way through the crowded terminal to reclaim their luggage.

After a little trouble with the rental car, they were tooling along the

main highway - Adam driving, Kendra acting as navigator.

Two wrong turns later, the newlyweds pulled up at the entrance of the

bungalow rented for their use. Adam fumbled with the key for a moment

before succeeding in unlocking and opening the door. Turning to Kendra, he

opened his arms.

"Well, Mrs. Harrison! May I have the honor of carrying you across the

threshold?"

"You may, kind sir!"

Kendra allowed herself to be picked up and carried through the door.

Once inside, Adam placed her gently on the bed.

"And now, my love, shall we, ah, get to the business?"

"Ooh, by all means, you brute!"

Adam lowered his mouth to Kendra's parted lips, ready to lose himself in

their tenderness when she tapped him on the shoulder.

"Adam?"

"Yes?"

"You forgot something."

Just a little irritated at the disruption, Adam asked, "What did I

forget?"

"The door. It's still sitting open."

"Oh. Just a moment - don't go anywhere!"

Adam jumped up to deal with the offending portal while Kendra made

herself comfortable. Seconds later, he rejoined her.

"There! Now, where were we?"

"Right about here, lover," came the husky reply as Kendra wrapped

herself in man-flesh, loving the feel of his body against hers, hot and, oh

yeah, very hard!

Their bodies ground together hotly as each tore at the other's clothing

until only bits and pieces remained. Within seconds, the room was filled

with the enticing sounds of lovemaking. After minutes of kissing and

biting every exposed inch of flesh on his body, Kendra fixed her husband

with a lusty, feral look.

"Enough of the dumb shit," she growled. "I want cock and I want it

now!!"

Adam knew better than to keep her waiting. Moving between her

outstretched legs, he drove into her wetness, feeling the moist, hot heat

of her center clutching him, drawing him deeper inside.

"Ah, yes! Fuck my hole, baby! Nail my hot ass!"

Through the haze of lust, Adam managed a smile: He just loved it when

Kendra pulled out all the stops. With all the force he could muster, Adam

plowed into Kendra's orifice, delighting in the slapping sounds their

bodies made with each thrust.

"Is this what you want, bitch? Is it? I'm gonna give it to you good!"

"Oh, yeah, lover! Talk that nasty shit to me!"

Between the incredible, sweet slickness surrounding him and the lusty

curses flowing from Kendra's mouth, Adam knew it wouldn't be long before he

spilled his love.

Kendra more than enjoyed his efforts, too, loving the way their bodies

fit together. She was hot and getting hotter as her fingers dug into his

back. An orgasmic spike ripped through her, teasing her senses with the

promise of more to come.

Adam was close to climax. He shifted his position, hooking Kendra's

legs into the crook of his elbows before using his legs to lean forward.

The results were exhilarating as Kendra was practically folded in half,

giving Adam the right angle to plunge deeper.

"Oh yes! Oh yes! Fuck me, you bastard, oh you son of a bitch! hurt
me, damn it! Tear my pussy apart!" Kendra's lust was out of control; she

wanted to meet his thrusts with her own but this position didn't allow it.

She was trapped, helpless and completely at his mercy - just as she liked

it.

"Here!" came Adam's savage reply. "Take my cock! I'm gonna cream your

sweet pussy, gonna do it, gonna..." The sudden onrush of ejaculation caught

up with Adam, cutting off any further speech, as his cock swelled inside

her. Just as it seemed his turgid flesh would explode, the first pearly

spurts splattered inside Kendra, each pulse spreading more of his love

inside her.

"Ah, shit! Shit!" Adam's passionate cries echoed through the room as

the world continued to dissolve around him.

"More, damn it! Give me more!" Kendra's body convulsed with the force

of her own final climax. Wrapping her legs into his arms tighter, she drew

Adam deeper into her velvet embrace, clamping her vaginal muscles onto his

spurting shaft as tightly as possible.

With a groan, Adam collapsed onto his wife, unable to continue, his cock

continuing to tremble with the effort to fill her body with semen.

Exhausted, he released his hold on Kendra's legs. He smiled as Kendra

reached up to stroke his face, while the other massaged his chest.

"Mmm, that was great," he said.

"And the night is young, darling - we're just getting started!"

Adam opened his eyes, looking at the hand stroking his face. And sat

straight up, capturing her left hand. Turning his head, Adam look at

Kendra's wrist.

Her bare wrist. The one without the bracelet.

"Kendra!"

Kendra followed her husband's gaze and smiled. "Is there a problem,

love?"

"Your bracelet! You took it off!" Adam was about as close to a full

panic as he could ever remember.

"Yeah?" Kendra looked at her wrist then back to Adam. "What about it?"

"We just, well, I, uh..." Clearly at a loss for words, Adam decided to

be quiet.

"We have to start our own family, dearest. Can't do that wearing the

bracelet, now can we?"

"But, why?"

Kendra moved to lay alongside him, running her hands along his smooth

chest and watching his nipples harden.

"It'll all be clear to you soon enough, my love. I'll explain

everything to you in good time. Until, then, I need you to fill me with

all the love you can." Kendra lowered her lips to an erect nipple, sucking
on it.

"Uh, shouldn't we discuss this some more," he asked, squirming under her

touch.

"We are discussing it, love." Kendra allowed her tongue to trail down

his chest and stomach, lingering at his navel for only a moment before

reaching her true goal - the head of his penis. Kendra felt him shiver at

the wet touch as her mouth closed around the plum-shaped glans.

"Oh, fuck," Adam hissed as more of his shaft found its way into her

mouth.

Kendra moaned low in her throat as Adam grew within her mouth, exulting

in the pungent taste of their recently spent juices. Greedily, she ran her

mouth and tongue along the rising thickness of him.

All Adam could do was lay there as Kendra's passion continued to consume

her in its fiery depths, purifying her soul. He could feel her moaning in

delight as his pulsing maleness filled her throat and her hands tortured

his nipples.

Kendra continued to assault his shaft with a terrible hunger, burying

her nose in his curly pubic hairs time and time again. She felt his hands

close around her face and, for an instant, she became angry: How dare he

interrupt her pleasure! The price of such an "insult"? Holding him inside

the steamy prison of her mouth, Kendra slipped a finger inside to join her

tongue, coating it with saliva. Withdrawing her finger, she immediately

and accurately plunged the slick digit into his puckered asshole as deep as

she could.

Adam's body tensed at the finger probed his depths, the pain of its

sudden entrance causing his entire body to arch, shoving more cock into her

mouth.

"Baby, no..." he pleaded as the pain quickly turned to pleasure. He

thrust against the finger, forcing it deeper into his nether region,

bringing closer to an orgasm which promised to top anything he'd ever

experienced before.

Kenny had other ideas, however, feeling the tiny tremors signaling his

pending release.

"Oh, no you don't. I have a better place for you to deposit this in!"

Kendra removed her finger from his ass so fast it made a loud, popping

sound. Freeing his cock from her mouth, Kendra quickly mounted Adam,

impaling herself on him. Rising slightly, she looked into his feverish

eyes before slamming her body downward onto his, their pubic bones coming

together hard.

"Give me what I need, Adam. Come on, baby! I need your stuff so bad!

Fill me. Plant the seeds of our future!"

With a mighty heave, Adam unwillingly complied with her desire as he

began to flow into her waiting sheath. Incredible, undeniable pleasure

tore through him as Kendra rode him hard, grinding onto his shaft without

mercy.

"Yes! God damn it! Keep it coming baby, oh, it feels so hot, so good,

so nice!" Kendra was beyond reason as she milked him for every precious

drop. A pulse, followed by a spurt, then another; her own climax was

threatening to shove her kicking and screaming over the edge.

Adam looked at the wild woman astride him through slitted eyes as Kendra

rose until only the head remained inside her before slamming onto him with

such force the entire bed rocked and groaned in protest. Faster and

harder, Kendra rode Adam right over the brink, free-falling into an orgasm

which brought along the darkness for company.

"YES!!" she screamed going completely limp on top of him, her

unconscious body quivering with orgasm after orgasm. Adam, with tears in

his eyes, held Kendra tightly as the intense feelings continued to

devastate her until, finally, the quaking form grew still and quiet.

Exhausted beyond anything he'd ever known, to the point that he couldn't

move. Adam could feel his eyes closing on their own accord. As sleep

claimed him, he couldn't help entertaining one prominent thought:

What have I gotten myself into?

Part V, Chapter Eleven

Adam felt like he was on trial. Before him sat the entire Williams

clan. Seated on the sofa, Lorne was flanked by Etienne on one side, Kymber

on the other. To Eti's right, sitting on the sofa's arm was his

mother-in-law, Ellie, while to Kymber's left sat his father-in-law, Devon.

Seated on the floor between in front of Lorne was his wife.

Wife. His. Adam wasn't sure what disturbed him more, dealing with the

idea of being married or the family sitting and watching him intently. The

silence was close to unbearable as Adam squirmed uncomfortably in his seat,

wishing someone would say something. Anything. Unable to take much more,

Adam spoke.

"Would someone like to tell me what this is all about?"

Lorne looked at the assembled family members before looking down at

Kendra, who had turned to meet his eyes. Clearing his throat, he answered

the anxious young man.

"There's something you need to know, something Kenny was going to tell

you some months ago. The time's come for you to understand a few things."

"I don't understand," came Adam's puzzled reply. He racked his brain

trying to remember, what?

"Son," Devon said, "do you remember a couple of days before the wedding?

You and Kenny were at the kitchen table..."

Awareness lit Adam's face like a spotlight as he remembered the night in

question. "Yes, I remember that night."

Ellie's quiet voice piped in. "There was something she wanted to tell

you about herself, but I believe you said it could wait until after the

wedding."

Suddenly nervous as the full memory return with sparkling clarity, Adam

felt the room's temperature increase along with the tension. "I remember

saying that, yes."

Kymber fixed the young man with an icy, emerald stare before saying,

"The time has now come for you to hear what she has to say."

Shaken but not cowed, Adam returned her look with one of his own. "If

this is the case, why are you all here? Surely, this is something we can

discuss between the two of us privately."

Kendra, silent throughout these exchanges, said, "What I have to tell

you concerns them as well. Besides, we have no secrets between us."

"Okay, let's hear it," he said, steeling himself for... what? What was

so important the whole family had to be present to hear it?

Kendra got to her knees and, child-like, crawled over to where her

husband sat. Taking his hands in hers, she spoke quietly.

"What I'm about to tell you will probably have a major impact on our

marriage. You have to know this and, most of all, we hope you understand

it. It'll be hard for you to hear this - I know how black and white your

mind can be." She smiled up at him. "But, it's for the better and I ask

you to believe and trust me."

Adam frowned, more confused than ever, if that was possible. "Honey,

whatever it is, I don't think it's so bad it will hurt our love."

"I hope not," intoned Lorne. "It would be a shame."

Nods from the other family members increased Adam anxiety levels. What

the fuck was going on here?

Kendra tugged on his hands to get his attention. "Adam, you know I love

you very much," she began. "You also know I would never do anything to

hurt you."

Adam nodded; this much was true.

Seeing his agreement, Kendra continued. "You also know how much I love

my family."

Another nod; where was all this going?

"Wrong, darling. You really have no idea how much I really love them."

Standing, Kendra stretched for a moment before walking over to her father,

lovingly stroking his strong, dark face. Turning to face her husband, she

continued.

"There is nothing in the world I wouldn't do for any of them. Nothing.

Whatever I have is theirs and they've given me so much."

"I understand the devotion you show them. I just don't understand..."

"Shhh. Please, let me finish. It's time for me to introduce you to my

family and I need your undivided attention."

Introduce her family? A feeling of dread began to creep into Adam.

"Adam, this is my father, Devon. Over there, is my mother, Eleanor."

"I know this - will you get to the point?"

"Adam..." Lorne's stern voice cut through Adam's frustration like a

laser. "Let her finish; then you can say what you want."

"Yes, sir. My apologies."

"This is my grandfather, Lorne, his wife - my grandmother - Kymber. On

the other side of my grandfather, is his daughter, Etienne."

"So? Kenny, I already know these people!"

"Ah, yes. But this is what you don't know." Taking a deep breath,

Kendra put her future and the futures of the family out on a limb.

"I'd like for you to meet my father's sister."

Looking around, Adam said, "Okay. Where is she?"

"Right here, Adam," answered Ellie with a wave, a smile crossing her

features.

"Adam," spoke Devon, "Please meet my mother, Kymber and my father,

Lorne."

"And," Ellie finished, "I'd like you to meet my mother, Etienne and my

father, Lorne. You already know my daughter, Kendra and my brother,

Devon."

For a moment, Adam sat quietly, not understanding. Suddenly, their

words stuck him like a runaway truck. He could feel the blood draining

from his head, leaving him lightheaded and trembling.

"You mean... oh, my God!" Adam's tone of voice clearly said he didn't

believe what he was hearing. Shock and surprise sent Adam's mind reeling

as the implication made itself at home within his very soul. He stood on

shaky legs, holding onto the back of the chair to support himself.

Kendra looked back at her family, worry written across her lovely

features, all the while thinking this may have not been a good idea.

Lorne sensed her worry, taking her hand and guiding her to sit on his

lap. "Give him a moment, Kenny. He's got a lot to think about."

Horror and disgust flowed through Adam like some dark, viscous fluid.

He felt so sick he wanted to vomit right on the spot. Swallowing back the

bitter bile, Adam found he could speak.

"I don't believe it! Kenny, tell me this is some sort of sick joke!"

From her perch on Lorne's lap, Kendra's quiet voice filled the room.

"It's no joke, Adam. You've heard the saying 'the family that loves

together stays together?' Well, we love together in every way imaginable."

Nightmarish visions of every kind filled Adam's head as the truth of

Kendra's words settled in. Dumbfounded, he could only ask one question.

"For the love of God, why?"

"For love," answered Lorne, hugging Kendra tightly. "We have all

learned the best way to experience true love and happiness was to know it

in our home."

Adam dropped to a kneeling position as if pole-axed. His mind was

threatening to shut down from the sheer overload being placed upon it.

"You lied to me," he said to Kendra weakly, feeling the need to say

something.

"No, I never lied to you about anything, Adam. I just didn't tell you

certain things - it's not the same as lying."

Adam looked up at the calm, confident voice. "How can you sit there all

cool and collected? Don't you know what this is doing to me?"

"Yes, I do, my love. I told you it would be hard for you to hear, let

alone understand."

"You're damned right I don't understand it! What kind of sick people

are you?"

Devon shook his head. "We're not sick, Adam. We are very much in love

with each other. We believe and trust in each other. Just as we believe

and trust in you."

Adam's head snapped up, the angry glint in his eyes catching Devon in

its venomous grip. "What's stopping me from going to the authorities? I

should turn the lot of you over to the police!"

Etienne looked at Adam with a mixture of love and sadness. "You won't

do that, dear."

"Oh, no? Watch me." Having decided a course of action, Adam stood,

crossed the room to the telephone and picked up the receiver. The eerie,

warbling sound of the dial tone sounded louder than it should as each

member of the family watched Adam with unnerving calm. "I'll do it, I

swear!" he vowed.

Lorne's calm, steady voice easily crossed the room. "Do what you feel

you have to, son."

"Yes, son," said Ellie, "if you feel you must do this, then by all means

follow your heart."

Tears flowed down Adam's cheeks, creating dark circles upon the fabric

of his shirt. "This is all wrong - it must be stopped!"

Kymber said, "Stopped? Adam, you can't stop love, no matter how hard

you try."

Devon said, "There's something you should consider before you make that

call."

Adam's angry reply sound like a gunshot in the spacious room. "What?

That you're all sick freaks?"

Ellie frowned, as did Kendra.

Lorne said, "Who's going to believe you, Adam? What are you going to

tell them and, better yet, how to you plan on proving it?"

Adam's finger had pressed the first number which would summon the police

when the truth of Lorne's words hit him. What, indeed? Lowering the phone

for an instant, he looked back at the family as if they were aliens.

"I have to do something! Kenny, what should I do?"

"Come to me, my husband," she called, extending her hand. "There's two

things you can do. You can either reveal our secret to the world or,

accept and embrace the love we have for each other. And for you."

The staccato beeping of the phone invaded the ensuing silence as Adam

surveyed his options. He looked at each in turn, taking note of the calm

way they were handling his threat. No fear could be seen, no regrets or

apologies. Just love.

The receiver clunked onto the tabletop before coming to rest dangling

from its cord. Adam's eyes were fixed on the outstretched hand of his

wife, his true love. Woodenly, he crossed the room, taking her hand in

his. Tears cascaded unashamedly along the contours of his face, forming

tiny salty droplets which dripped onto his shirt.

"I don't know what to do, Kenny. I love you with all my heart. I don't

know if I can live knowing this!" Adam wept openly, absently noting several

pairs of hand touching him, soothing his pain and anguish.

"Believe me, darling; I know how you must be feeling. You have to

believe this is the best for all of us. Look around you! Do you see

anything wrong with any of us? The only difference between my family and

yours is we're a lot closer with each other."

Adam allowed his head to lifted while a hand - he didn't know whose -

dried his tears. "You've all slept with each other." More statement than

question.

"Yes," answered Etienne. "You can't imagine the joy of having someone

making love to you who truly cares about you. This isn't about just sex,

Adam; any of us can get sex anywhere. This is about loving and being

loved."

"Aren't you ashamed?"

"Shame? What's that?" asked Kymber. "Like you, I was brought into the

family, only I got to see it firsthand. Even then, I knew there was no

more beautiful way to express love."

"Adam," began Devon, "there's no shame in being in love like this.

We've eliminated shame and deception from our lives. There isn't one

person in this room I wouldn't trust my soul to, no questions asked."

"But, how can you make love to you own sister! Don't you know how wrong

it is?"

"Says who?" asked Ellie. "The Bible? The government?"

Adam cast a defiant look at his mother-in-law. "It's against the law."

Lorne laughed, as did Kendra and Kymber.

"Why are you laughing? There's nothing funny about this?"

"It's not against the law to love your family, Adam." Lorne looked the

younger man in the eye and said, "Besides, whose going to tell me the best

way to keep my family happy? The mayor? The governor? Reverend Jackson

at the church? I don't think so."

"Why not?"

"Only I know what it takes to make my family happy. As father and

husband, it's my solemn goal in life to make them as happy as possible."

"Even fucking them?" Adam's voice dripped venom.

"Yes, even that," said Eti, looking at her father with undisguised

fondness.

"And I suppose you go along with all of this?" The barbed question was

aimed directly at Kendra.

"Of course I do; why do you think I'm so good at loving you? I told you

I had good teachers."

Quiet sobs wracked Adam as all of the truth made a nest in his heart and

soul. That didn't stop him from asking, "What about me? If you have them,

why do you need me?"

"Because I love you, silly. From the very first day, I knew you were

the one for me."

"That still doesn't explain why."

Etienne answered, moving to sit next to the stricken young man. She ran

a hand along the tear-streaked face before her. "The why of it is easy,

Adam. Love has no power if it isn't shared. That's what spreads the

happiness from one to the other."

"I still don't understand." Adam trembled as Etienne continued to run

her fingers against his skin, finding the sensation strangely comforting.

Kymber's soft voice offered an explanation. "From the time you're born,

you get introduced to love. Truly, it is because of love that you were

born. Your parents show their love for you in many ways. They feed you,

clothe you, and keep you safe from harm. When they want to show you how

much they care, didn't you get lots of hugs and kisses?"

"Yeah, I suppose so."

"Even when they were angry, you knew they loved you," Devon said.

"I would only realize it after I thought about it later."

"Your parents," Lorne added, "taught you most of what you know, prepared

you to face the world. But, tell me; when was the last time your mother or

father hugged you?"

"The day of the wedding," Adam answered, not getting the point.

"What was different about it? Did it seem a little too impersonal?"

Now that Lorne had mentioned it, his parents did seem a little distant.

Lorne could see he had Adam's attention. "Like your sister, Andrea, I

believe. When did you notice your relationship with her changed?" I'll bet

your relationship with her was at its peak; you did everything together,

even bathe."

Etienne: "Then, one day, you were told you couldn't bathe with your

sister any more. Did it make sense to you?"

"No," Adam admitted. "It didn't. They just said we were getting too

big to take baths together."

"And," added Devon, "from that day on, your relationship with Andrea

hasn't quite been the same, has it?"

"No, no it hasn't. We rarely speak these days."

"She feels like you no longer love her, doesn't she?", asked Kymber,

stroking Adam's curly hair.

"Yes! How did you know?"

Lorne's gentle laughter filled the room. "It's easy, son. Your parents
spent a lot of time teaching you to share your feelings with them and

Andrea. As things progress and your feelings and, perhaps theirs grew

stronger, they saw too much love and affection could lead to lovemaking."

All of this was beginning to make sense to Adam, adjusting his head so

Eti could have better access to his ear.

"So, you're saying they taught me to love and care for my family then

decided to stop because they were afraid things would go too far."

"Exactly." Kendra said, getting up to stand next to her father. Kymber

took her place, holding his hands. "When you stop sharing love, it dies,

leaving you to find it elsewhere."

Adam looked confused. "But, Kendra married me! Obviously, there's

nothing wrong with the love she has for you. How do you explain that?" Was

it getting warmer in here?

"When love is strong, it lives. It grows stronger as the love is shared

with others. Simple."

Adam looked toward Kymber as she spoke. Were her eyes always that

green? Funny, he'd never noticed it before...

Lorne looked up at Devon and nodded. Slowly, he removed himself from

the tangle of bodies at his feet, going to stand next to his son.

"Go to him, daughter," Devon said as he handed her off. "He needs you

now more than ever. Show him love."

"Thanks for helping me with this; I couldn't have done it without you."

Lorne gave a loving look at his granddaughter. "What's family for,

honey?"

Turning, Kendra looked down at her husband. Adam was lost in thought,

not even noticing the circle of women around him. With a smile, she joined

them.

Part V, Chapter Twelve

Kendra took a spot directly in front of Adam. He looked so lost, so

vulnerable. Taking his face in her hands, she called softly to him.

"Adam? We love you very much. I'm sorry if we caused you any pain, but

it had to be brought out into the light. I feel so much better now."

Adam looked first at Kendra then to Eti, Ellie, and Kymber in turn. In

the eyes of each woman, he found no hate or dislike. Only love. And,

something else...

"I'm sorry I behaved so badly; this is all sudden and different."

Kymber turned Adam's head and kissed him gently. "Don't worry, Adam,

take time to let it all sink in."

Adam's blood, which been a chunk of ice an hour earlier, thawed quickly

at the contact. Looking into her eyes, he reasoned this really wasn't as

bad as it sounded.

"Adam."

Adam turned, finding himself looking into Eti's hazel eyes. "We all

love you dearly." Leaning forward, Etienne kissed him.

As did Ellie. True to her devilish nature, Ellie let her tongue slide

between his lips.

With Kendra, the circle became complete as she pulled Adam to her,

locking their lips together with fierce passion.

Adam's head was swimming dizzily, attempting to figure out what was

happening to him. His body knew, though, as he was also very much aware of

the throbbing erection making a tent in his pants.

"Adam, love," Kendra said after breaking the kiss. "It's time for you

to take your place in the family. No one is going to force anything on

you; it must be accepted on your own."

That said, Kendra sat back on her haunches to wait for Adam's decision.

She looked toward the other three women waiting with her, taking note of

Eti's calmness, Kymber's twinkling eyes, and her mother's outright look of

anticipation.

Adam, too, had noticed those looks. Turning, he looked for Lorne and

Devon, hoping to gain some support from them - only to discover them gone.

A troubled sigh whispered from his lips as Adam pondered how to respond.

There was no doubt in the young man's mind about his love for Kendra; now

he was faced with extending that love to his mother-in-law and the other

women of the family.

Glancing down at his hands, he recalled something Kendra told him one

night after a steamy session of making love, something about love being the

only true answer to one's happiness. At the time, a lifetime ago, it

didn't make any sense so Adam had pretty much dismissed the cryptic remark.

Adam smile wryly as he realized the meaning of Kendra's words that

night.

"Might I be allowed to ask a question?"

"Go ahead, honey," Kendra answered. "What do you wish to know?"

"Must I be a part of this? I mean, this goes against everything I've

ever learned."

Etienne answered him. "Being loved goes against your teachings? You've

been loved by your parents, haven't you?"

Adam rolled his eyes in exasperation. "Yes, but they would have never

dreamed about something like this!"

Kymber spoke up, green eyes flashing. "True enough. You don't seem to

have a problem loving Kendra, do you? She doesn't seem to mind sharing her

love with you!"

"Of course not!"

"Adam," Ellie said, "I'm going to be a bit more blunt than my mother and

grandmother. You look me in the eyes and tell me you haven't wanted to

take me to bed. Come on, admit it! I have no problem telling you I'd jump

your bones in a minute!"

"Why?"

"Because you love my daughter and I love you. And, shit, you're a stud
to boot!" A spattering of laughter bubbled up from the assembled women at

this.

"All we're saying, darling," said Kendra, "is that we all love you. All

of us want to show our love for you and, yes, want to be loved by you in

return. Is that so terrible a thing for a person to want?"

Adam could feel himself weakening under the combined logical assault as

he answered his wife. "No, it isn't. But what if someone gets jealous?"

For a moment, the four women looked at each other before becoming

suddenly hysterical with laughter.

"Jealousy!"

"Is he kidding?"

"Kenny, he isn't serious is he?"

"I don't believe he said that..."

Adam's mouth was open in disbelief; why were they laughing?

Kendra reached for her husband's hand, squeezing it gently. "Baby, in

this family, there's no such thing as being jealous. The only thing anyone

ever gets around here is loved."

Adam had only to look at the lovely faces around him to know Kendra

spoke the truth. Taking a deep breath - damn, it was hot in here - he made

his decision.

"I suppose it isn't fair to love Kendra as much as I do without showing

the rest of the family how much I love them as well." He chuckled before

saying, "I guess it's all or nothing, huh?"

"That just about covers it, Adam," Ellie said.

"Then count me in. It seems to me not sharing my love with you would

make Kenny unhappy - and that's the last thing I want to do."

As the four women stood, Adam searched his soul for signs of discomfort

with his decision, surprised to find himself comfortable with it. At the

same time, he could shake the feeling he had just gotten in over his head.

* * *

Lorne looked across the table at Devon, grinning. "Gin. I believe

that's $20 you owe me."

Devon tossed his cards down with feigned disgust. "You take credit

cards?"

"I'll put it on your tab. Let's see, you now owe me, um, $135,000, give

or take a couple of hundred."

"Dad?"

"Yeah?"

"It's awful quiet in there. You wanna go take a peek?"

Lorne cocked his head slightly, listening. Shaking his head, he said,

"No, not really. This is something Kendra has to deal with in her own way.

Adam will either accept it - accept us - or he won't."

"I don't think he will; he doesn't seem open-minded enough."

"I think he will, Dev. He loves Kenny and, frankly, I've seen the way

he's been looking at Ellie."

"Yeah, I know - Ellie wants to eat the boy alive!"

"You want to play another hand?"

"No, I owe you enough as it is, you old card shark!"

"Tell you what. Loser goes to see what's going on in there - deal?"

"Deal. Okay, get ready to take a walk, Dad!"

"In your dreams, son."

Three minutes later, Devon was heading for the living room, shaking his

head in disbelief. I don't know how he does it, Devon thought. As he

entered the living room, Devon came to an abrupt stop: the living room was

empty.

"Dad! You gotta see this!" Devon heard a crash, followed by a muffled

curse. Seconds later, Lorne joined his son.

"Where are they?"

Devon looked around the room, his eyes catching a flash of yellow.

Crossing the room, Devon picked up the golden cloth, instantly recognizing

it as the blouse as Kymber's. Turning, he showed it to his father.

"Looks like you were right, Dad."

"So it would seem. What say you and I go even up the odds?"

"It's the fair thing to do! Can't let Adam have all the fun, can we?"

"After you, then."

"No, after you - I insist!"

"Age before beauty!"

"Then you'd better get going, Grandpa!"

Together, father and son climbed the stairs. Once at the top, they

listened for the sounds of love being made.

Lorne looked to his right, cocking his head. "This way," he said moving

in the direction of Devon's old room.

When Devon saw where they were going, he said, "It figures she'd use my

room."

Lorne nodded in silent agreement. Turning the doorknob, he pushed the

door open and stepped into the darkened room with Devon close behind.

"Come on in and leave your clothes at the door," a voice invited, barely

heard amongst the groans and sounds of sexual pleasure.

As their eyes grew accustomed to the darkness, the men could make out a

tangle of flesh in motion - somewhere under the mound of femininity was

Adam. "Still dressed, eh?" The voice of his wife came to him and Lorne

turned his head in that direction, finding the still-lithe redhead seated

on Adam face, her breasts bouncing gently against her chest as she gyrated

her hips smoothly against his mouth. Behind Kymber, Eti was riding the

poor boy for all she was worth, his shaft of dark meat standing out against

the lighter hues of her body.

Devon took in the scene, feeling his manhood swelling in anticipation.

Looking to his left, he found his sister and daughter, locked in a frantic,

yet highly erotic, sixty-nine, each woman moaning with exquisite pleasure.

Lorne had already shed his clothing and was standing in front of Kymber,

who took his turgid member deep into her throat, causing the older man to

visibly shudder. Devon, now undressed, stepped across Adam's prone form,

offering his hardness to Eti. He exhaled loudly as warm, moist mouth

covered hard, hot cock.

* * *

Adam couldn't believe what was happening to him. Once inside the room,

the women quickly deprived him of his clothing, casting hungry glances at

his body. He turned to Kendra, suddenly afraid; Kendra looked back at him,

shaking her head.

"It's out of my hands, love. You belong to all of us now."

Before he could protest, a mouth covered his erection completely while

other lips and tongues explored his body. Adam felt hands caressing him,

probing and touching before easing him to the carpeted floor. Soon, he

found himself smothered in hot, wet pussy - he had no idea whose, but

Christ, what a huge clit! He found his concentration slipping away as

several tongues bathed his cock with varying degrees of tenderness.

A wet finger penetrated his bottom and his back arched in response,

driving his cock skyward before being swallowed whole. Lips ticked and

tantalized his scrotal sac, while teeth gently nipped the tender flesh they

found there.

A flurry of motion found Adam's face covered with yet another mound of

flesh. Another large clitoris slipped between his lips as dark thighs

clamped around his head. More in self-defense than anything else, Adam

sucked at the invading bit of hard flesh, flicking his tongue over the

exposed head. He grinned as the body above him shook in reaction to his

touch, restoring his confidence and allaying his fears. Reaching up, he

grabbed two hands full of firm buttocks, pulling them down harder onto his

awakening tongue.

Seconds later, a hot flood of tangy liquid exploded into his mouth, the

flesh above him trembling mightily. The thighs removed themselves from

around his head, only to be replaced by a set a tanned ones. The flame-red

thatch of pubic hairs identified the owner as Kymber. He felt her fingers

entwined themselves into his hair, pulling his head hard against her; at

the same time, he felt wet pussy enveloping his cock, clamping down on him.

Dimly, he was aware of a voice saying something about coming in and leaving

clothes somewhere...

* * *

Devon crossed to the tangle of females he knew to be his Ellie and

Kendra, his erection throbbing in his hand. Deftly, he moved behind

Kendra, now on top, and with one powerful thrust, split her tender flesh

with his smooth hardness, grunting as he slid deep into the slick sheath.

Immediately, Ellie's tongue could be felt at the base of his shaft,

flittering and teasing as he fucked into his daughter.

Kendra's efforts on Ellie's clit doubled as the thickness invaded and

spread her wide. She sucked hard on her mother's clit, feeling it

throbbing between her lips. The darkness was approaching and she wasn't

about to give in to it, not yet, not now. She drew her tongue across the

sensitive head, felt it quiver crazily, then the flood of sweet juices as

Ellie's orgasm and release washed over her, hips thrusting upward to meet

Kendra's mouth.

Ellie cried out as the orgasmic wave continued to punish her, feeling

the spreading pool of wetness under her. Above her, she could see the

delicious sight of Devon's hard cock spreading Kendra wide, glittering

patches of pussy juices covering the veined shaft. Ellie watched as

Devon's sac began to tighten - he was close to filling Kendra with his hot

spunk.

The sounds of love filled Devon's head as he continued to thrust into

Kendra's yielding flesh. An instant later, he was spilling inside of her,

his cock pulsing jet after jet of love into her sweet hole.

"Shit! Yes! Pump it, baby, pump it!" Kendra pushed back against the

hardness, feeling the hot stickiness coat her insides. "Fill that bitch

up! Flood it!"

A scant few feet away, Lorne looked up, smiling: Kendra could be so

sluttish when it came to loving! He reached down and removed Kymber from

Adam's face, noting the green eyed beauty's look of pure bliss as she

poured love down Adam's throat, so much the younger man was choking with

the effort to keep up with the hot flow. Laying his wife down, Lorne

impaled her with one hard thrust of his hips, then settled in to ravage her

body, savoring the familiar feel of her. His lips locked onto an erect

nipple and he bit down on it lightly, feeling Kymber's nails digging into

his back.

Kymber gasped as her husband filled and spread her, the feeling

intensified by the over-sensitivity of her sex - Adam's lips and tongue had

done quite a number on her! When his mouth closed onto her nipple a

soothing warmth flowed through her which quickly changed to a raging

inferno as Lorne's teeth scraped across the hard surface. Sharp, delicious

pain flowed through her breast, heading straight for the junction of their

bodies as she dug her nails into Lorne's back.

"Ah, damn it!" Lorne could feel a trickle of blood running down his

back, encouraging him to double his efforts. He plowed into her with long,

hard strokes, which moved them along the carpeted floor. His knees burned

with the irritation caused by friction against the abrasive material;

however, he was beyond giving a flying fuck, concentrating on burying his

cock deeper into Kymber.

Kymber could feel the scrape of carpet against her back and buttocks as

well, the additional pain adding to the pleasures being heaped upon her.

She opened her eyes to see Lorne's perspiring face and the fierce,

passionate look in his eyes. With each thrust, Kymber could feel Lorne's

large knob against the entrance to her womb, building the feelings within

her beyond tolerance. For what seemed to be forever, Kymber tottered on

the brink of release; Lorne withdrew once more, too aware of the tight,

tingling feeling at the base of his cock. With a grunt, he set himself

deep into his loving wife, feeling the rippling flesh part with his

passing.

"Ooh, darling! Now, baby, now!" Kymber's words became incoherent as

love sent her flying over the edge of sanity, crashing into the orgasmic

rocks below, while Lorne's passionate grunts changed into a low, lusty

growl as he flowed into her, bathing her womb with thick, spermy love.

Meanwhile, Etienne sat astride Adam's cock, immersed in the wonderful

feeling of having his hardness inside. She smiled while looking down at

the helpless young man beneath her. Adam's eyes were screwed tightly shut;

a light sheen of Kymber's juices coated his face. Leaning forward, Eti

kissed Adam deeply, while focusing her concentration on a certain set of

muscles.

Adam was close to losing it - and he knew it. Somehow, this woman knew

how to keep him right on the edge, prolonging his pleasure. He felt Eti's

weight shift just before her mouth covered his. Hot, snaking tongue

slipped in to find his and they battled with each other; to Adam's 'shame',

he was losing - and badly! Just as he was about to make an attempt to

assert himself, he felt Etienne's pussy contract around him, hard, then

soft, then hard again. Etienne's smile widen as Adam grew thicker within

her.

Adam's world spun out of its orbit as the first milky spurts of love

were drawn from him. It was like making love to Kenny, only three times

more intense as he found himself caught in the throes of the most powerful

orgasm he'd ever experienced.

Eti continued to smile as the first spurts splattered into her, using

her well-trained muscles to coax more of the precious fluid from him.

"Come on, Adam! Don't be so stingy with it - let it flow!" All Adam could

do was groan as Eti's pussy milked the last drops from him until he grew

soft.

"Grandmother? Did you leave anything for me?"

Eti turned toward Kendra, sparing a glance at Adam. "I don't know -

maybe. Adam?"

"Hmm?"

"Are you okay?"

"Hmm?"

Kendra smiled. "He's okay - I know that confused sound."

Ellie's voice floated across the room. "Hey! Don't let him go to sleep

before I get a shot at him!"

Kendra looked at her mother with mock anger. "Mom!"

"What?"

"Give him a break, will you?"

Ellie's answer was to crawl toward Adam, a cat stalking her prey. "I'll

give him a break - trust me!" Reaching her son-in-law, Ellie's body flowed

onto his, her tongue finding his softened shaft and the dried juices

encrusted along its shriveled length.

"Oh, look," Ellie purred. "He's not ready yet. Well, we'll just have

to fix that, won't we?" Taking a breath, Ellie swallowed Adam whole, the

flakes of his dried seed dissolving in the liquid warmth of her mouth.

"Mom..." Kendra knew Adam wouldn't be able to deal with this new assault

on his tender manhood.

Ellie waved a hand at her daughter, signaling she should be quiet.

Beneath her, Adam moaned, his body jerking. She added a moan of her own,

feeling him growing in her mouth. She sucked gently yet with a firmness

not to be denied until the young neophyte was once again proudly erect.

Ellie let Adam's cock slip out of her mouth. Holding it in her hand,

she looked at the assembled family members. "Anyone want some of this?"

Throughout all of this, Adam lay stunned and just a tad bit confused.

It was bad enough Etienne had worked some sort of spell on him, draining

him effortlessly. Experience had taught Adam he'd be unable to continue.

Now his mother-in-law had not only revived his member, but was offering it

to the others like it was dessert! And now, adding to his disbelief, here

was Devon, all male, lowering his mouth, enveloping him in its warmth.

Somewhere in the dark reached of Adam's thoughts, instinct warred

against learned behavior. His instinct was to lay back and enjoy the

scintillating feelings while his learned behavior just wasn't buying

another man blowing him. Confused by the internal battle, he turned his

head, only to find another cock just mere inches from his face! While he

was focused on Devon, Lorne had obviously moved next to him, joining Ellie

who was whispering comforting words in his ear.

What kind of person did they think he was? Adam's thoughts were in

turmoil. Being a part of an orgy, well, he could deal with that (couldn't

he?), even if all the participants were related to each other. And, having

his cock so lovingly tended to by Devon, well, it wasn't all that bad (was

it?) - it really felt nice and showed his appreciation by flexing his hips

upward to meet Devon's mouth.

But a cock in his face! What did they expect him to do?

"Dad? Would you scratch my back? It really itches!"

Adam felt and saw Lorne move to comply with Ellie's request, bringing

the thick, veined shaft more into his field of vision. As it hovered just

mere inches from his face, Adam took a moment to look at it closely as a

clear drop of liquid hung precariously from the slit.

Devon was doing something tantalizing with his tongue causing Adam to

gasp aloud. As his mouth opened, Lorne shifted his position again, done

with scratching Ellie's back. The crystal droplet fell, finding its way

onto Adam's parted lips; instinctively, he licked his lips and, surprise,

it didn't taste all that bad...

Part V, Chapter Thirteen

As the men were momentarily occupied, Kendra, Etienne, Ellie, and Kymber

busied themselves with each other. Kendra felt a rush of excitement run

through her as she watched her husband happily slurping away on her

grandfather's cock. Who would have thought it? Further thoughts on the

subject were driven away by the raspy sensations being provided by Kymber's

tongue on her nipple.

Kendra shivered as chills radiated from her erect nipple outwards

leaving goose bumps in their wake. This was a special joy for Kendra as

the chills reached her pubic area, instantly changing into a soothing heat.

"Mmm, that feels so nice!"

Kymber smiled and shifted her attention to Kendra's other nipple - lest

it begin to feel left out, you know? Within seconds, the once-flat nipple

responded to Kymber's touch, becoming erect and waiting for more

stimulation.

"Mmmm," Kymber moaned, washing her tongue across the underside of

Kendra's breast, her hands gently cupping its weight. "You have such

lovely tits - I can't keep my mouth off of them!"

Kendra's only reply was a seductive smile as the warmth continued to

change into a moist, penetrating heat, running her hands along the smooth

contours of the elder redhead's body, all the while marveling at how firm

it was for a woman her age.

With practiced ease, Kymber continued working her way down her

granddaughter's body, stopping only long enough to flick her tongue into

Kendra's navel, delighting in firm tummy muscles rippling in response.

Straddling the younger woman's body, she offered her own musky nest for

inspection.

Kendra wasted no time in plunging her mouth onto the fleshy offering,

capturing Kymber's clit between her full lips, sucking gently until the bit

of flesh there began to grow firm.

"Oh, yes!" Kymber gasped, shuddering at the contact. "Do me, eat me!"

Gasping once more, Kymber lowered her head to the dark triangle between

Kendra's now-open legs, seeking and finding what she desired.

Not to be outdone, Ellie and Etienne were deep into an oral battle of

their own, each woman sucking and licking the other with a passion which

wouldn't be denied.

The room filled with the sounds of love being made. The soft rustle of

flesh against flesh was occasionally punctuated with heavy breathing,

grunting and moaning.

And, of course, the equally occasional curse from Kenny as Kymber's

experienced tongue took her to higher levels of pleasure.

Adam was lost in the new - yet familiar- sensations. Devon's mouth

continued to do wonderful, delightful things to his swollen member while

Lorne continued to pump thick cock meat into his mouth.

"This is crazy," he thought. "There's a man sucking my dick and another

man has his dick in my mouth - and I'm loving every minute of it!"

Lorne was loving it too, feeling his sac tighten and the indescribable

tingling sensation crawling up his spine. With shorter, faster strokes, he

continued to assault the young man's mouth urging himself on to completion.

Adam could feel Lorne's cock growing thicker, knowing what the faster

strokes meant. He backed off until just the bulbous head remained, running

his tongue across what he hoped was a sensitive area.

It was. One moment there was nothing but fat, hard cock in his mouth.

The next, Adam's mouth was flooded with a copious amount of sticky, salty

fluid which was spilling from his mouth at an seemingly incredible rate.

The shock of this latest experience was enough to shove him over the edge,

very much aware of his own manhood pumping spurt after spurt of man-love

into Devon's waiting mouth.

Unlike Adam, Devon didn't miss one precious drop. Once the last of

Adam's seed was taken, Devon got up and straddled Adam's chest, his hand

furiously working the elongated hard shaft of his maleness, seeking his own

release.

Lorne, momentarily drained, moved to one side and watched as Adam

grabbed Devon's hips, pulling him closer until the head of Devon's cock

disappeared into the novice's mouth.

Now with his thighs on either side of Adam's head, Devon leaned forward

to rest on his elbows before thrusting gently into Adam's mouth, once,

twice... There! Devon's body stiffened as his seed began to flow from him

in hot spurts.

If Adam felt he was lost before, where was he now? Devon's sperm, just

as thick (but not as salty) continued to flow into his mouth and into his

belly, creating a satisfying warmth and, strangely, putting an end to a

hunger he had been feeling.

Rolling to one side and panting heavily, Devon looked at his son-in-law,

the younger man's face covered with gooey love. Without a thought, he

leaned forward and began licking Adam's face clean until nothing remained.

Crossing the room to where four exhausted women lay sprawled in various

positions, Devon and Lorne found places between their bodies and stretched

out beside them; however, Adam remained where he was. Kendra noticed his

absence and called to him.

"Honey, why don't you come on over?" Her question went unanswered;

suddenly alarmed at his silence, Kendra freed herself from the tangle of

flesh and crawled over to him.

Reaching him, she could immediately see something was wrong as indicated

by the large teardrops cascading along the contours of his face. Gently,

Kendra reached out and placed a hand on his chest.

"Baby, what's wrong?"

Adam's eyes fluttered open, blinking away the tears. The sight of his

lovely wife (once his vision cleared, that is) gave him great comfort - and

just a bit of distress as well. He reached up to stroke her face and

quickly dropped his hand, noticing how bad it was shaking. The physical

and emotional repercussions rapidly renewed themselves in his mind and his

river of tears began again. The rest of the family was alert and watching

as well. Ellie started to move towards them and was stopped by Lorne.

"Ellie, no. They have to work this out for themselves."

"But, Dad..."

"No buts. Everyone stay right where you are."

Kendra cradled Adam's head in her lap and began rocking, feeling his

tears dripping onto her. Deep sobs wracked his body as Adam gave in to the

overwhelming turmoil. For long minutes, husband and wife sat like this

until his sobs subsided. Kendra could feel his pain and confusion as if it

were her own, causing her to fight against the emotions building inside her

own soul.

Finally, Adam turned over until he was looking up at his wife, wiping

his face with the back of his hand. Clearing his throat, he spoke for the

first time since this all began.

"I'm sorry... I don't know why I broke down like that."

"There's nothing to be sorry for, my darling. If anything, we should

apologize for dumping all of this on you at one time and forcing you to

make a decision."

"You didn't force me into anything."

"I know, but we let our love for you - and each other - put you into a

bad situation with yourself."

"Kenny, you don't understand; I'm not angry with any of you. What

happened was, well, more than what I thought it would be."

Adam sat up, shaking his head to clear his thoughts. Turning slightly,

he addressed the family.

"When we were talking about this, all I could see was some pretty wild

sex. It wasn't until Devon and Lorne, ah, had their way with me I realized

this family loving thing was bigger than anything I could have imagined."

Adam suddenly stood, going to the bathroom. A moment later, all in

attendance could hear the sounds of him blowing his nose, followed by the

unmistakable sound of running water. Seconds later, the toilet flushed and

Adam reemerged, looking much more composed.

"Sorry - had to take care of some business." He flashed everyone a smile

before sitting down again, this time with the family. Kendra scurried to

sit next to him. When he had their attention, Adam continued. "When I was

alone with all of you," nodding at the women, "I was thinking how kinky it

would be having all this attention from them. When the guys showed up, I

thought 'so much the better!'"

"What I didn't realize was all of this wasn't about fucking - it was

about being in love. When us guys were getting it on, it hit me. I saw

myself doing things I've never done before and loving every minute of it.

My feeling went beyond just mere sexual satisfaction and it wasn't until we

had finished I realized I'd never been loved so much before in my life."

"Guys, I do apologize for not giving you as good as I got, but like I

said, I've never done anything like this before."

"The only thing which matters is you accepted our love and gave love in

return," Lorne said. "It doesn't matter if you were good at it or not."

Heads nodded in agreement.

Adam nodded, understanding Lorne's words. "I had a lot to think about

in a very short space of time and, shit, it got the best of me. I was

crying because I've never been so happy before."

Etienne's soft voice floated in the air. "That's what it's all about,

Adam - love and happiness." Eti rose from her place next to Kymber and sat

next to Adam.

"You see, when my father and I began all of this, all we had was love

for each other. When Kymber joined the family, there was still a great

deal of love. When the children were born," she gestured to the assembled

young adults, "we knew then our love was too much to keep all to

ourselves."

Kymber spoke up, her voice low and husky. "Remember, dear Adam, love is

nothing if it isn't shared. Without sharing, love never has a chance to

spread and grow. Even my father realized this; I'm just glad we had a

chance to share our love before he died."

"It's all we've known all our lives," said Ellie while Devon nodded in

agreement. "For us to do anything else, well, just doesn't make sense."

A lull settled over the room as Kendra, her voice very quiet, had her

say. "And then I met you."

Lorne's baritone voice filled the room, sounding all the world to Adam

like the voice of God.

"Son, look at it this way, if you will. Eventually, you would have

discovered our secret. We all felt it better to introduce you to the

family in this manner instead - it's a lot easier on the nerves, wouldn't

you say?"

"Yes, sir. I hate to think how I may have reacted had I found out about

this somewhere down the road."

"Good. Now, if no one has any objections, let's all go to bed - I'm

tired and need my beauty rest."

As everyone moved to first collect their respective mates, Kendra

cleared her throat for attention.

"Uh, could I have your attention for a moment?" Even Adam stopped in

mid-stride, turning toward his wife. Convince everyone was paying

attention she continued. "I have an announcement to make."

"What is it, honey?" Adam asked, clearly curious as was everyone in the

room.

"I've got something I need to show everyone. Just a minute." Kendra

dashed to the pile of clothing under the window, picking through the

remnants until she found what she was looking for.

"Ah! Here it is!" Returning to the sleepy group, she held up the object

in her hand. "Ta-da!"

In the semi-darkness, everyone strained to identify the object.

"Oh, shit." That from Lorne. As everyone realized what Kendra was

holding, the room quickly filled with gasps.

"You mean..."

"Nah, that can't be right... can it?"

"What? WHAT?" Adam was still a bit punch-drunk from all which had

happened this evening. "What in the hell is going on?"

Devon turned and patted Adam on the shoulder. "What's your favorite

color, son?"

"Blue. Why?"

Ellie planted a kiss on his cheek. "Glad to hear it, Adam. Goodnight!"

Adam turned to his wife, who handed him the object of everyone's

excitement. It took him a moment to recognize it and what it meant.

"This is, oh shit, this means..."

"It sure does! I'm pregnant!" As Kymber, Etienne and Lorne moved close

to congratulate Kendra, they all heard a muffled thump. Kymber and Eti

both looked at Lorne who, if he could, would have vanished right on the

spot.

"Does that sound familiar?" asked Kymber.

"Oh, I believe it does, dear sister - I believe it does! Doesn't it,

Dad?"

"No comment. Come on, let's get the poor child out of the floor and

into bed."

Together, they picked Adam's insensate form off the floor. Lorne

unceremoniously slung the unconscious father-to-be across his shoulder and

headed off in the direction of Kendra's room.

Kendra looked puzzled, however, Etienne provided the explanation.

"It seems to be a family trait - we get pregnant, they pass out."

"Men."

"I know. Can't live with them, can't live without them. Go figure."

Part V, Chapter Fourteen

The next morning, Adam drove to his parents' home to tell them the good

news. During the drive, Kendra noticed her husband's silence.

"Are you okay?"

The car rolled to a stop at a traffic light, allowing Adam to turn and

look at Kendra. "Yeah, I'm fine."

"You're awfully quiet this morning."

"I've got a lot on my mind, that's all."

"Would you like to talk about it?"

The light changed. Adam pulled away from the intersection, shaking his

head. "No, not right now. I don't mean to be rude or anything, but I've

got to get all of this sorted out."

Kendra wasn't upset over his silence nor was she offended by it. "Well,

whenever you're ready to talk about it, let me know."

Adam squeezed her hand. "I will, Kenny. Don't worry, things will work

out - I just need a little time to get it all together."

A few minutes later, they arrived at the home of Adam's parents, Roger

and Allison Harrison. Adam was surprised to see his sister's car in the

drive. Within seconds of ringing the door bell, Adam and Kendra were

greeted by Allison's smiling face.

"Well look at what the wind blew in our direction," she exclaimed.

Embracing first Kendra then Adam, Allison led them to the family room where

Roger and Andrea were sitting.

"Come on in and grab a seat! It's good to see you!" Roger Harrison

stood and shook hands with his son. "And Kendra! Come here and give me a

hug!"

Kendra crossed the short distance to where her father-in-law stood and

embraced him affectionately, letting the embrace last just a tiny bit

longer than what was considered normal. "It's good to see you again, Mr.

Harrison. I take it you've been well?"

"As well as can be expected, thank you. Oh! Where are my manners? You

do remember Andrea, don't you?"

"Of course I do! How could I forget my maid of honor?" Kendra leaned

over and planted a kiss on Andrea's cheek, catching the scent of an expense

perfume.

Andrea returned the sisterly peck, noticing the smooth warmth of

Kendra's cheek. "Hi, Kenny! Looks like married life is treating you

well!"

Kendra smiled broadly. "Yeah, well, it has its advantages. How about

you and your husband?"

The atmosphere in the room dimmed slightly, immediately informing Kendra

she had hit on a touchy subject. "Oh, I'm sorry..."

Andrea waved a hand in dismissal. "It's all right, Kenny. Dale and I

are just having a minor disagreement."

Still a bit uncomfortable, Kendra took a seat beside Adam.

"Well! What brings you kids here?" asked Allison, glad to break the

somber mood.

"We have some good news to share with you," said Adam while turning to

look at Kendra.

"Don't keep us in suspense, son," Roger prompted. "What's the good

news?"

With barely disguised glee, Adam looked at his parents and sister.

"We're going to have a baby."

For a moment, all heads turned to Kendra for confirmation, which she

gave with a tiny nod of her head. Another second for the news to sink in -

and the room exploded in well-wishes and questions as to what the

parents-to-be wanted, boy, girl, or both. Of course, this was followed by

the age-old answer of it didn't matter as long as...

father and son shook hands, both grinning like idiots while Kendra

exchanged more hugs with mother- and sister-in-law. Andrea took the

opportunity to whisper something in Kendra's ear.

"I'm so happy for you!"

"Thanks, Andrea."

"One thing, though - can I talk to you about something?"

Kendra leaned back from the embrace, her curiosity piqued. "Sure," she

answered. "Whenever you're ready."

Andrea interrupted her parents and brother long enough to excuse herself

and Kendra from the room. Motioning Kendra to follow, Andrea led the way

upstairs.

Adam glanced in their direction as they disappeared upstairs. "What's

that all about?"

Allison patted his hand. "Wife talk, Adam - nothing you'd be interested

in." However, in the back of her mind, Allison had to admit curiosity.

"Oh, let them go! This calls for a drink to celebrate!" Roger rose from

his seat, heading for the oak and leather bar in the other room. "All

right folks, belly up to the bar! Drinks are on the house!"

* * *

Andrea stepped aside to allow Kendra to enter the room before following

and closing the door. She crossed the room and sat on the bed, motioning

for Kendra to sit next to her. As Andrea framed her thoughts, Kendra took

a moment to look around the room, thinking how perfectly it reflected its

former occupant.

Colonial-style furniture, with carpeting and wallpaper done in lively,

yet subtle pastel colors. This was a woman used to getting what she wanted

without being brash and pushy about it. Kendra's examination of the room

was halted by the sound of Andrea clearing her throat. Turning toward the

sound, Kendra gave her sister-in-law her full attention. "As I said

downstairs, Dale and I, well, we're having some problems. Nothing major,

mind you, but I was wondering how you and Adam settle any differences

between you."

"Oh, that's easy," Kendra answered. "We don't disagree with each

other."

"That's impossible," said Andrea, not attempting to hide the disbelief

in her voice.

"No, not really. Adam and I get along just fine. If we have a

difference of opinion on something, it's no big deal - he's entitled to his

opinion."

"Are you telling me if he wanted to do something and you didn't, you

wouldn't argue with him?"

"No, I wouldn't. I trust Adam; if he wanted me to do something, then it

must be important to him."

"So you'd go along with it."

"When possible. Despite what you might think, I do have a life. Adam

knows and respects this."

Andrea shook her head. "It can't be that easy."

"No, it isn't, but love goes a long way in helping to avoid ugly

situations."

Andrea's laugh had a bitter sound to it. "Love. Right. The only thing

Dale loves is Dale. Ever since the day we got married, it's always been

about him and to hell with what I want."

Kendra placed a hand on Andrea's knee. "You're saying Dale doesn't love

you?"

"He does, but..."

Kendra nodded, suddenly understanding. "He loves you but has a funny

way of showing it."

Andrea frowned at Kendra's comment, thinking just how much truth the

statement contained. Her features softened as she turned to face her

sister-in-law.

"Kenny? Tell me something."

"If I can, Andrea."

"How do you deal with Adam? I mean, why do you two get along so well?"

Kendra thought for a moment before answering. "Well, I understand Adam

and of course I love him. I respect and value his opinions."

"It can't be that easy!"

Kendra smiled, gently touching Andrea's hand. "It is, believe me. As

his wife, it's my trust to keep him happy, something I'm proud and pleased

to do."

Andrea's face brightened, thinking she had found a flaw in Kendra's

thinking. "Ah-ha! Does he feel the same way?"

Kendra's smile widened. "Of course he does - why wouldn't he?"

"I suppose you have a point. Adam has always been the agreeable type.

How does he get along with your parents and the rest of the family?"

"Just fine. They love and respect each other very much. In the

beginning, there were a few difficulties, but they were quickly resolved."

"Difficulties? Like what?"

Kendra knew she had to be careful here, taking a few extra seconds to

form her answer. "He had to get used to a few things about my family, like

our somewhat affluent lifestyle."

Andrea nodded; the Williams' family wealth would be something Adam would

have to get used to, not that his own family wanted for very much.

"Also, he had to get used to everyone wanting to do things for him and

expecting nothing in return."

"I can imagine that just fine; Adam was always the type who wanted to do

things for himself and wouldn't hear of not repaying a favor done for him."

"Other than those things, my family and Adam get along just fine."

Andrea's frustration began to show. "There's got to be something I can

do, something I haven't thought of yet."

"If there's anything I can do," Kendra offered, "let me know."

"Perhaps there is something else," Andrea said.

"Anything. Just ask it."

Andrea's features flushed crimson. "If I'm not being too nosey, how is

your sex life?"

The yellow warning lights of caution flashed brighter in Kendra's mind.

"It couldn't be any better. Adam is so loving and thoughtful." Kendra

smiled devilishly. w "He's pretty good, too. But, like most men, he could

be better. I don't worry about it though; we've got plenty of time

together."

Andrea took in Kendra's statement, feeling a momentary pang of jealousy

- her sex life with Dale often left a lot to be desired. "You're one lucky

girl."

"I like to think so."

Standing, Andrea looked around the room. "I'd give anything to have the

kind of happiness you've got."

Kendra regarded Andrea closely. Clearly, the poor woman didn't have

enough love in her life and it make Kendra sad. She mentally crossed her

fingers and made a decision.

"The price of happiness can be rather steep, you know. Andrea?"

"Huh?"

"Be careful what you wish for - you might get it and find it wasn't what

you wanted."

"I don't get it."

Kendra rose and went to stand in front of Andrea. Taking her hands,

Kendra looked into the dark-haired beauty's deep brown eyes. "The secret

to my happiness. I can share it with you if happiness is what you're truly

looking for."

Tears began to form at the corners of Andrea's eyes. "I don't want to

lose Dale! Despite his crazy behavior, I really do love him!"

Kendra reached up to wipe Andrea's tears away. "Hey! Don't cry - it'll

be all right!"

With a sob, Andrea threw herself into Kendra's arms, her tears flowing

freely. Kendra held her close, feeling Andrea's pain... and something

else. As she held Andrea against her, Kendra could feel the other woman's

tears, first warm then cool against her cheek. Kendra was very much aware

of the increasing pressure their bodies were creating as a trembling Andrea

held on for dear life.

Kendra was becoming more and more excited, finding it a bit difficult to

resist the natural urge to provide the ultimate comfort to her

sister-in-law. Still, it didn't stop her from using one hand to stroked

Andrea's long dark hair. "There, there. It's okay, Andrea. Let it all

out." Through the fabric of her clothing, Kendra could feel Andrea's

nipples harden which caused her own nipples to respond in kind, wondering

if Andrea could feel it as well. This was starting to get dangerous...

Within the midst of her sadness, Andrea could feel an excitement

building within her. It felt strange yet somehow familiar. As her tears

continued to flow, a part of her mind reached out and touched the

excitement... And recoiled as she recognized it. Oh, yes, she felt this

excitement before! But where?

Nuzzled in the crook of Kendra's neck, inhaling the natural scent of

her, Andrea remembered where - and when - she had felt this excitement

before: The first time she and Kendra had met. That wasn't the only time,

either! Andrea knew she felt it at the wedding, from the time they arrived

at the church, all through the ceremony, and during the reception. And the

moment Kendra walked in the door an hour ago.

* * *

Adam cheerfully filled his parents in on the details of Kendra's

pregnancy, all the while wonder what his wife and sister were talking

about.

"You must be very happy," his mother asked.

"I am, Mom, I am. This is a happy time for all of us."

Roger Harrison sat forward in his seat, leaning slightly in Adam's

direction, his face becoming a bit more serious. "Mind if I ask a

question?"

"Roger..." Allison warned. "Don't start it - not now."

Roger waved a hand in dismissal at his wife. "Woman, don't start on

me."

Disagreements were rare between his parents, Adam thought, but he still

felt uneasy whenever a difference in opinion cropped up. "Dad, ask your

question."

Shooting his wife a triumphant look, Roger turned back to Adam. "How

are you getting along with your in-laws?"

Adam was puzzled. "Fine. Why do you ask?"

"I was just wondering."

"I seriously doubt you were just wondering, Dad."

Allison opened her mouth to speak, only to close it after a look from

Roger.

"Heh, heh," the elder Harrison chuckled. "You've got me there, son.

It's just, well, I still think it's strange you're still living there with

them."

Adam shook his head. "Dad, have you seen the house? It's huge, big

enough for three families."

"So I've been told. Son, a man should have his own home to raise his

family in! That's all I'm saying."

"Dad, you worry too much. Kendra and I are more than happy right where

we are."

With the debate heating up between father and son, Allison began to

wonder about Andrea and Kendra - they've been gone for some time.

Curiosity began to set in as Allison quietly left the room and headed

upstairs.

* * *

Kendra quickly discovered she was between the proverbial rock and hard

place. On one hand, she felt good being able to comfort Andrea at this

time in her life. On the other, the close contact between them was

beginning to make things, uh, interesting.

The scent of Andrea's perfume, combined with the heady scent of her

pheromones, was awakening a different kind of sympathy within Kendra, who

bit her lip against the mounting excitement. One part of her mind,

however, was glad to see she wasn't the only one being carried away by the

moment.

Andrea's sobs weren't as deep now as they were moments ago. In fact,

just standing here hugging Kendra made every problem she ever had seemed

trivial in comparison. And, since you mentioned it, doesn't this wonderful

woman have the smoothest skin, so soft and velvety?

Something in Andrea's mind was saying it was time to break the embrace,

pull herself together, and go on with things. However, for some reason,

she didn't want to let Kendra out of her arms.

Kendra's lust was stirring with each passing moment, her hands beginning

to move along the other woman's body of their own volition. Her fingers

massaged the tense muscles along Andrea's lower back, feeling them relax.

As did Andrea, who responded by melting further into Kendra's warm embrace.

Without a thought, Andrea lifted her head slightly, kissing the underside

of Kendra's jaw with trembling lips.

Kendra inhaled sharply as Andrea's lips fluttered against her face.

Instinctively, she tilted her head slightly, exposing more of her neck and

throat. Her passion, which was barely held in check, began to infuse her

with its enticing warmth. Kendra's eyes closed momentarily, wanting to be

swept away. Oh, this felt so very nice! Her eyes flew open with the

realization of what would happen if this were to continue. Gently, Kendra

tried to disengage herself from Andrea's advances, only to be firmly held

in place.

"No," a trembling voice whispered in her ear. "Don't leave me. Not

now." Andrea wrapped her arms around Kendra's firm body, holding her tight

while sucking gently the soft skin of Kendra's neck.

Instinct overrode common sense for a split second. It was all the time

Kendra's lust needed to assert itself and take command of the moment.

"Okay," she murmured. "If that's the way you want it." With one hand,

Kendra reached up and found the zipper of Andrea's dress, pulling it down

in one swift motion. Once the material had fallen away from the other

woman's shoulders, Kendra used the same hand to deal with the clasp of

Andrea's bra.

Andrea couldn't believe what was happening to her, let alone the fact

she had started all of this! A dyed-in-the-wool heterosexual, Andrea had

never given one single thought about making love with another woman. Yet,

here she was, holding onto her sister-in-law with a passion she didn't know

she had, with her dress now down around her ankles and her breasts swinging

freely.

Kendra managed to free herself from Andrea's embrace; with her lust

fully in control, she began the process of bringing Andrea joy, licking her

lips in a way which made Andrea think of someone pondering a menu full of

delicious food.

Andrea's mind continued to race along at a maddening pace. "Why am I

allowing this?" she asked herself as Kendra's lips captured her earlobe,

sucking gently. "I don't like women like this," her mind screamed. "Make

it stop!"

Aloud, Andrea said, "Oh, shut up," feeling the chill racing through her

body as Kendra's tongue traced wild, sensuous patterns along her neck.

Warm hands massaged and kneaded her buttocks as Andrea gave in to Kendra's

insistent advances, feeling her juices pooling in the crotch of her

panties.

Kendra nuzzled her face into Andrea's more than ample cleavage. Gently,

she guided Andrea backward until they were able to fall onto the bed.

Hungry mouths sought and found each other. Tongues battled for dominance

while hands roamed with minds of their own.

Kendra raised herself long enough to assist Andrea in removing her

clothing, which was tossed aside. She took a moment to look into the other

woman's eyes, searching for acceptance of what was to happen, what had to

happen.

The intense gaze of those hazel-brown eyes froze Andrea, leaving her

suddenly afraid. She knew she couldn't allow this to happen, yet, she did

nothing to stop it as Kendra lowered her head, capturing a very erect

nipple, giving it a tongue lashing it would never forget. Moaning, Andrea

held Kendra's head to her breast, committing herself to the unthinkable and

the unknown.

Wet, flickering tongue washed over every inch of one breast and ran

along the deep cleavage splitting the fleshy orbs before moving to the

other breast, repeating the tantalizing washing. Hot, moist breath

preceded soft, sucking lips as the other nipple was held prisoner and made

to suffer the consequences of being on Andrea's body.

Andrea sighed despite herself as soft, firm hands kneaded her flesh in

the most fascinating places! And that wonderful mouth was, oh God! It was

moving down her tummy, teeth nipping here and there. Andrea knew what was

next, knew it shouldn't happen, knew she wouldn't stop it. She lifted and

parted her legs as Kendra's breath on her pubic hairs heralded better

things to come.

Kendra lost herself in the passion, feeling it devour her. Andrea's

body was such a delight! Smooth and curvy in all the right places, while

here at her center, the coarseness of her hair provided a stimulating

contrast. Even now, the scent of hot, inviting pussy reached her - and she

wasn't about to turn down the invitation! Reaching under Andrea, Kendra

filled her hands with plump, luscious bottom, feeling the heat and the need

to put out the flames.

* * *

Allison Harrison reached the top of the stairs, the sounds of the father
and son discussion fading in the distance. Turning right, she headed in

the direction of Andrea's bedroom; logically, it would be the place she'd

go to have a private conversation. Like her husband, Allison was worried

about this nonsense with Dale. If Kendra could shed some light on the

solution, then perhaps it would be best to hear of it first hand.

Reaching her destination, Allison took a breath before tapping lightly

on the door. For long seconds, there was no immediate response, so she

tapped again, not wanting to interrupt but needing to know everything was

going all right for her daughter.

When no response was forthcoming, Allison turned away from the door; she

was pretty sure Andrea would have used her old room! As she took a step

towards Adam's room, she heard Andrea's voice, muffled by the heavy oak

door. Placing her hand on the ornate door knob, Allison turned it, giving

the door a push. It responded by opening silently, a tribute to Roger

Harrison's attention to squeaky hinges. Cautiously, Allison stuck her head

into the room.

* * *

"Oh, God! Yes! Ooh, I love it! Please don't stop!" Andrea thrashed

wildly under the relentless assault of Kendra's more than experienced

tongue and lips. If there was any doubt about the right or wrong of this,

it had long since taken a much deserved hike! Face contorted, Andrea

flashed a decidedly feral look at the heavenly creature God had sent to

free her who was, at this moment, causing a most scrumptious rush of

orgasmic pleasure to weave its way amongst her nerve fibers.

"Oh, shit, Kenny! Do it again! Oh, fuck!"

Kendra grinned against the writhing flesh, happy to bring her

sister-in-law so much love and pleasure. One slender finger insinuated

itself into Andrea's fleshy sheath, which was slowly joined by another.

Then another. Hell, why not add another?

Andrea screamed soundlessly as the last finger made its way into her

sopping wet cunt. The pain was sharp and sweet as the four fingers worked

their way deeper into her before spreading as wide as they could. A

massive, paralyzing orgasm of epic proportions took that moment to land on

her.

Real hard.

Swirling baubles of bright lights danced beneath Andrea's eyelids as the

pleasure continued to jump on her. Her hips bucked out of control and her

whole body felt as if someone had plugged her pussy into the nearest

electrical socket.

Shorted out and drained, Andrea's body relaxed. Kendra gently removed

her hand and absently licked it clean while listening to the husky allure

of Andrea's once-labored breathing. Satisfied, Kendra sat up and

stretched, feeling the glow of her own orgasms gained while pleasuring

Andrea. Continuing her stretching, Kendra turned her head...

And found Allison Harrison standing in the open door.

Allison could hardly believe the scene spread out before her! Andrea -

her own flesh and blood - being tended to by - gasp! - her

daughter-in-law! Shocked and most definitely repulsed by the activity

taking place in - shudder - her own home, Allison just knew something had

to be done to stop this. She moved toward the bed - and stopped dead in

her tracks just as Andrea's mouth opened.

Experience told Allison her daughter was caught up in one hellacious

orgasm as Andrea continued her silent scream until she finally relaxed and

lay breathing heavily on the bed. Allison found herself transfixed and

suddenly very excited as she watched Kendra remove her hand and slowly lick

Andrea's juices from her fingers. Allison's nipples hardened as she

watched Kendra's tongue languidly devoured every precious drop of musky,

tangy dew before stretching like a cat.

Allison felt her excitement growing despite herself. Like Andrea, sex

between women was something which just wasn't done; yet, she felt herself

drawn by some strange magnetism. About to lose control of things, Allison

wanted so very badly to just be able to turn and go back the way she came.

Just as the thought crossed her mind - but before she could act on it -

Kendra turned in her direction, locking her hazel-brown eyes onto Allison's

black ones.

"This is how a deer feels," Allison thought as she found herself looking

back into those expressive eyes. She could feel Kendra looking into her

without a hint of emotion. Well, this really wasn't true, was it? There

was something there, something enticing and alluring, something she

couldn't quite put words to.

Kendra returned her mother-in-law's gaze, feeling neither fear nor

concern at being caught. Instead, her ever-present calm was firmly in

place, as usual. The two women looked at each other for what seemed to be

an hour before Kendra felt it time to break the silence.

"Mrs. Harrison."

Allison blinked at hearing her name, feeling as if she'd been drugged.

Feeling weak-kneed, she sat on the edge of the bed, taking a long moment to

collect her ragged thoughts before turning to Kendra.

"I want to know one thing. Why?" Allison nodded in Andrea's direction.

"This wasn't supposed to happen, Mrs. Harrison," Kendra said. "We were

sitting here talking about her problems with Dale when she started crying."

"I suppose she would," Allison said with a calm she didn't really didn't

have. "That boy has been nothing but trouble for her from day one. I just

don't understand how things got to this point."

Kendra nodded before continuing. "I held her and, well, things got a

little out of hand. I tried to talk her out of going any further, but she

wouldn't hear of it."

Allison's eyes went wide with surprise. "You mean to tell me my Andrea

started all of this? I don't believe it!"

"Believe it, Mother."

Allison and Kendra turned to look at Andrea, who was just now getting to

an upright position. "Before I say anything else," Andrea said, "Kendra, I

have to thank you for what you did for me."

"Hmpf," grunted Allison. "That's a hell of a way to help someone! At

least you could have come and talked to me about it!"

Andrea tuned to face Allison. "Oh, Mother, be quiet. What would you

have done? Suggest I leave Dale and move back in here with you and Dad?

That's no solution and we both know it."

Kendra felt a bit uneasy as she listened to mother and daughter; this

kind of stuff didn't happen at home. However, Kendra understood not all

homes were like the one she grew up in.

Allison's voice fairly dripped disgust. "You may be right, young lady,

but at least I wouldn't have stooped to something like this."

"And you want to know why I spent all my time away from home."

Kendra decided it was time to get dressed and leave. Rising, she

started to pick up her clothing."

"Don't move," Allison commanded. "I want to know why you allowed this

to happen - and in my home!"

Always one to speak her mind, Kendra turned to her mother-in-law, a

picture of calm. "I realize you may be thinking horrible things about me

right now. However I make no apologies for what happened here today and

for good two reasons. One, Andrea needed to be comforted. Two, because

she's family and I love her."

"Oh, really? I suppose if I fell into your arms crying, you'd comfort

me in the same manner."

"Yes, if it was what you wanted."

"Do I look like a lesbian?"

"Such a harsh word," Kendra chided. "Do I look like one? Does your

daughter?"

Allison wasn't ready for the answer Kendra provided. And, she noticed,

Andrea had moved closer to Kendra, lending her support. She also had to

admit the two women were, ah, exciting in their nakedness.

"So, I'm supposed to act like nothing happened?" Allison was beginning

to run out of effective arguments, feeling her own emotions misbehaving.

What was going on here?

"No, Mother," Andrea said. "What happened here just might save things

between Dale and I." She placed a hand on Kendra's thigh. "As well as

giving me a chance to know my sister-in-law better. If I'm right, I know

just how to change things for the better."

"Allison," Kendra said, taking the older woman's hand. "What happened

here today was all about love and togetherness. I'm sure Andrea will go

home to Dale and screw his brains out, just as I will with Adam."

Allison looked at the hand upon hers then into the face of the owner.

"I don't know about this; it isn't right."

"When it comes to love, everything is right, Allison. You just have to

believe." Kendra spoke the words with deep conviction.

Andrea sighed, taking her mother's free hand. "Mother, there's nothing

you can do about it. It's done and over with now - please let it go."

Allison made one last attempt to seize control over this situation.

"What would your father say?"

Andrea wrapped an arm around Kendra, pulling her closer. "Wanna go ask

him?"

Allison's mouth fell open with an audible click. "You can't be serious.

He'd have a stroke!"

"Probably." Andrea giggled at the mental image of her father walking

into the room, seeing daughter and daughter-in-law stark naked. "He'd shit

a gold brick!"

Allison took a very deep, much needed breath, knowing she should be

angrier than Hell - and finding she could accept this truth. Freeing her

hands (with great reluctance), she made a show of straightening her blouse.

"I'm going back downstairs before your father really does come up here.

Kendra, you and Andrea obviously know something I don't - I just hope it's

the right thing for everyone."

Standing and heading for the door, Allison looked back at Kendra and

Andrea. Part of her didn't want to leave; there was something magical

taking place here. To her surprise, Allison found she wanted to be a part

of it. But not now. Without another word, Allison opened the door and

stepped into the hallway.

Alone, Andrea looked at Kendra. "Wow. I thought she'd have a fit! I

wonder why she didn't?"

Kendra leaned over, letting her lips brush against the silken smoothness

of Andrea's cheek. "I know why."

Andrea's eyes closed as Kendra continued to kiss her face. "Tell me."

"Later. Right now, I want to get to know you better. Lie back..."

* * *

"Dad, you just don't understand what's going on here!" Adam's

frustration continued to grow as he paced the room.

"Why don't you explain it to me?" Roger remained seated, a smug,

confident look plastered across his features.

Adam exhaled loudly. "It's simple, Dad. I live with my wife's family
because I want to. How many times do I have to tell you?"

"As many times as I have to tell you a married man should have his own

house."

"Roger. Leave the boy alone."

Roger and Adam turned toward the sound of Allison's voice as she

descended the staircase. "He's a grown man and can do whatever the hell he

wants to. It's his life and perhaps you need to give him a chance to live

it his way."

Roger's jaw unhinged. Allison hadn't exactly shouted nor had she raised

her voice; however, both men knew Allison meant business. She sat,

motioning for Adam to join her. "Your father means well, of course; he

comes from the old way of doing things."

"Mom..."

"Hush, child. You are your own man. Behave like one." Turning to her

husband, Allison's face grew stern.

"And you need to back off and give the boy his space. He's got

decisions to make about his life and he can't make them with you

interfering in his affairs. If he wants your advice, I'm sure he'll ask

for it."

Roger sat back in his seat, not believing what he was hearing.

Momentarily numb and truly at a loss for words, he asked, "Is Andrea okay?"

Allison's face softened slightly at the question. "Andrea is just fine

now she's got a chance to talk to someone about her troubles, someone who

will listen without putting their two cents in."

Roger recoiled as if slapped, exactly the reaction Allison had hoped

for. Deep inside, Allison felt somehow liberated and at peace with herself.

Adam cleared his throat before speaking. "Mom, Dad, there's no need for

us to argue about this. I know what I have to do and why." He paused for

only a moment. "Where's Kendra?"

"Upstairs with your sister. They should be down in a moment." Allison's

words couldn't have been better planned for as she spoke, Kendra and Andrea

descended the stairs, both women looking radiant and happy.

"Darling," Kendra spoke. "Andrea's coming home with us for dinner, if

you don't mind."

Adam looked at Kendra then his sister at once understanding what had

happened. Adam looked at his mother who imperceptibly nodded her head.

"No, I don't mind at all." Adam turned to hug his mother. "Mom, thanks

for having us over. We'll stay in touch and let you know how things are

developing with the baby." Standing, he went to where his father continued

to sit, the stunned expression written on his face.

"Dad, you may not agree with me on these things, but I know what I'm

doing. Just as I trusted you when I was younger, you'll have to trust me

now."

Having said that, everyone gathered their things and left. Roger could

only watch as son, daughter, and daughter-in-law passed through the

doorway. As the sound of their cars faded into the distance, Roger turned

and looked at his wife. "What in the name of God was that about?"

Allison looked lost in thought as she remembered the scene she stumbled

upon. "Nothing you'd understand," she answered. She smiled, knowing her

path and Kendra's would cross again.

"Nothing you'd understand."

Part V, Chapter Fifteen

Ellie sat up, wiping her mouth with the back of her hand. Spread out

before her, Devon watched his sister clean away the remnants of his seed

with love and amusement.

"Mmm, that was tasty."

"You like the way I taste?"

In answer to his question, Ellie lowered her head, flicking her tongue

across the sensitive head of Devon's maleness, grinning when he flinched at

the touch.

"Hey! Take it easy!" Devon complained half-heartedly. "Last time I

looked, it was still attached, though you did your best to rearrange

things."

Ellie settled into the crook of Devon's arms, breathing in his heady

male scent. "Oh, you're complaining now? I can stop, you know."

Devon hugged his sister closer for a long moment before replying. "You

know I'm not complaining. It's just even after all these years, you can

still wow me with your intensity."

"I love you, silly - why wouldn't I give you my very best?" Devon's

reply was cut short by the sound of the front door opening.

"Mom? Dad? We're home and we've got company with us."

Devon and Ellie smiled at the combined announcement and warning, which

meant "put your clothes on and stop acting like a couple of horny teenagers

long enough to be civil to our guest."

"We'll be down in a moment, Kenny. Make your guest comfortable and

welcome." Devon playfully slapped Ellie's still-firm bottom. "Come on,

woman. Can't keep company waiting."

"Oh, all right. Damn! What happened to the good old days when you

could screw all day without being interrupted?"

Devon laughed while slipping into his shirt. "Beats the hell out of me.

Let's go."

Minutes later, Devon and Ellie stepped into the living room. Finding it

empty, they followed the sound of voices into the kitchen where Kendra,

Adam and - goodness - Andrea sat. The trio had steaming mugs in front of

them. Adam looked up at their approach and waved for them to join the

group.

"Mom, Dad, you remember my sister, Andrea?" Adam said by way of

introduction.

Ellie extended her hand to Andrea. "Of course I remember! How have you

been?"

"Fine, thank you," Andrea answered while clasping Ellie's hand in her

own for a moment before accepting Devon's hand.

"It's good to see you again, Andrea," Devon said. "What brings you to

our neck of the woods?"

Kendra looked her parents. "I invited Andrea over for dinner, You know,

to spend some time with us."

Little warning lights went off inside Devon's head. Obviously, there

was something more here. Keeping his surprise from reaching the surface,

Devon replied, "I see. Doesn't sound like a bad idea, does it El?"

Ellie had the same look on her face as Devon, meaning she also had some

thoughts about what may have brought this on. "Sounds great to me! After

all, we don't know very much about Andrea and it'll give us a chance to get

acquainted."

Kendra leaned over to Adam and said, sotto voice, "See? I told you they

wouldn't object."

Adam reached into his pocket and withdrew a five dollar bill. "Here's

your blood money. I feel like I've been hustled."

Andrea looked at her brother. "What was that about?"

Smiling triumphantly, Kendra turned toward Andrea. "He bet me five

dollars mom and Dad would object to your staying. I won."

Andrea looked at her brother. "You never did know when to go with the

sure thing."

Adam looked at Kendra. "Oh, I don't know about that. Looks like I've

got a pretty sure thing right here." He patted Kendra's hand

affectionately.

"I'll say," Andrea muttered as she remembered the day's earlier events.

"Well, now that we've got this settled," Ellie said, "Kenny, will you

come help me get the guest room prepared?"

"Sure, Mom. Will you excuse me?"

"Guest room?" Andrea asked. "Am I staying longer than just dinner?"

Kendra stopped in the doorway. "I didn't think you'd mind spending the

weekend, particularly after our conversation."

Andrea felt a flush of warmth course through her as she ran through her

options. Dale was away on business and, honestly, the thought of spending

another night alone didn't appeal to her. Andrea frowned. "What do I do

for clothes?"

"Don't worry about it - we can go over to your place later if you want.

If not, I'm sure we can find something for you to wear."

Okay, I accept your invitation!"

"Great! I'll come back for you in a few minutes and get you settled

in!"

"Thanks, Kenny."

"Think nothing of it," Kendra said sweetly.

"Kendra! I need a hand up here!" Ellie called.

"On my way, Mom!" Waving, Kendra disappeared.

* * *

Ellie was opening the drapes, allowing the sunlight to stream into the

room when Kenny finally joined her. "It's about time you got here."

"Sorry, Mom. I was clearing up some last minute details."

"Uh-huh. Check the bathroom and make sure the towels are there and

clean, will you."

"Sure thing," Kendra said, skipping into the bathroom.

Ellie busied herself with the bed for a few moments before calling out

to Kendra. "What happened between you and Andrea?"

Kendra stuck her head out the bathroom door, having the good grace to

look embarrassed. "I loved her."

"Why?"

Kendra looked thoughtful for a second before answering. "It seemed like

the right thing to do. She's so sad and lonely right now."

Ellie rolled her eyes, looking at the ceiling. "I can understand your

compassion, honey, but I'm not sure making love to Andrea was the smart

thing to do."

Kendra stepped from the bathroom and sat on the edge of the bed. "Mom,

I didn't intend for it to happen. She needed comforting and one thing led

to another."

Ellie nodded, understanding the situation. "I'm wondering if it was

worth the risk of exposure."

"Perhaps," Kendra said. "Even though thing happened quickly, I really

didn't think there was much of a risk."

"Oh? Why not?"

Kendra smiled. "She is family, after all."

"True enough. Okay, you've explained what happened. Would you care to

explain why you invited Andrea here?"

Kendra's voice took on a more serious tone. "She needs our guidance to

help her with some problems she and Dale are having."

The yellow alert which had been flashing in Ellie's mind instantly

changed to red. "What are you proposing?"

"That Andrea sees firsthand how we get along with each other. It

wouldn't help her much if someone just told her how well we live together;

Andrea has to see it for herself."

"You're right, of course," Ellie agreed. "However, she may see more

than what anyone has bargained for."

Kendra shrugged. "She's family and, unless I'm wrong, all things are

applicable."

Ellie had to stop and think about this. Within the family, their way of

life was an accepted norm, one which was never argued or debated. The

philosophy covered one and all, without exception. Still, there was a

measure of common sense which had to be applied. For example, one didn't

take out a full page ad in the local newspaper declaring one's love for

their family members and include all the juicy details.

"One more question, then you can show Andrea the room. What if she

can't deal with our version of love? It could hurt her more than help."

A smile tugged at the corners of Kendra's full mouth. "You had the same

concern about Adam and he survived it."

"He did at that. Okay, we'll just have to see what happens."

* * *

Adam and Andrea were out behind the house, exploring the wooded area

which led to the lake.

"Jesus," Andrea exclaimed. "They own all of this?" Adam nodded.

"This, the lake and a lot of the land on the other side of the lake.

Dr. Williams has done well for himself and the family over the years. Look

over here."

Andrea turned in the desired direction and found herself looking at the

lake, which was framed with trees bearing the bright colors of early fall.

"What am I looking at?"

Adam drew closer to his sister, pointing across the lake and up. "See

that house up there?"

"Yeah?"

"That's where Lorne lives. Pretty nice, huh?"

Andrea whistled. "I'd say nice is a poor choice of words. They must

have a spectacular view of the whole valley from there."

"They do, trust me." Adam's voice had grown strangely quiet - and Andrea

noticed it.

"What's the matter with you?"

"Oh, nothing. Just remembering something."

"What?" Facing her brother, Andrea could see he was clearly embarrassed

- Adam's coloring had darkened noticeably and he was doing everything he

could to avoid eye contact with Andrea. "Come on, spill it!"

"Well," Adam started, shuffling his feet. "This is where I lost my

virginity." He pointed to one spot in particular and Andrea noticed the

man-made box nestled under one large tree.

Andrea stepped away from Adam, making her way over the indicated spot.

Stopping, she turned back in the direction of the lake. It took only a

moment to grasp the reason for his predicament. She turned, barely hiding

her amusement.

"They saw it all, didn't they? This is the only angle where you can see

into this place - the trees make it impossible from anywhere else." Andrea

studied her surroundings closely before glancing in the direction of the

large house on the other side of the lake.

"I'll be damned! They could have watched the whole thing with

binoculars or a telescope." Adam looked like he wished he were invisible.

"Seems like your in-laws are some kinky people!" Andrea laughed as she

returned to her brother's side, running her fingers playfully through his

hair. "I wish I could have seen your face when you found out they had been

watching."

Adam chuckled, remembering the look. "We had made love for, oh, about

the third or fourth time when Kenny turned toward the house and waved. She

turned and pointed to me, telling me to wave. I thought she had lost her

mind or something, but I did it just the same."

Andrea was near hysterics as she asked, "When did you think to ask her

about it?" Clearly, she was enjoying this moment.

"We were on our way back to the main house when I asked her why we were

waving. When she told me it was to let her parents know we were okay, I

realized they must have been watching the whole thing."

Andrea gave up trying to conceal her laughter, the image of her rather

embarrassed brother firmly fixed in her mind. She leaned against him to

support herself.

Adam held his sister as the fit of laughter ran its course, feeling

comfortable in the closeness. Before his initiation into the family way of

loving, this would have been a very awkward moment for him. Feeling the

firm softness of Andrea's breasts against his chest as she laughed herself

silly, Adam could feel the beginnings of his lust stirring, his cock

quickly growing hard between them. Andrea felt it, too, the unexpected

feeling putting an end to her mirth. She pushed away from her brother, a

look of shock on her lovely features.

"Whoa! What is this?" she asked, nodding at the bulge in Adam's pants.

Adam blushed, more out of embarrassment than shame. "Sorry, Sis. I

guess I kinda forgot myself for a moment."

"I'd say you did." Andrea walked a short distance away from Adam before

turning to look at him. Not overly tall yet slimly muscular... Yeah, she

could see what Kendra saw in him, especially the imprint just a bit south

of his belt buckle.

Adam regarded his sister, taking in her beauty. Slightly taller than

Kendra, firm pouting breasts and not quite the classic hourglass figure

with neatly kept auburn hair framing her oval face - Adam decided Dale was

six kinds of a fool not to appreciate how beautiful and sensual a woman

Andrea was.

"Tell me something, Adam."

Andrea's voice brought Adam back from his erotic examination. "What do

you want to know?"

"We haven't always been the best of friends since we got older, but you

were always a good listener." Adam nodded in agreement, wondering where all

this was going.

"Tell me what's on your mind, Andrea. Is it Dale?"

At the mention of her husband's name, Andrea looked at Adam, shaking her

head. "No. Well, it has something to do with him, but not directly."

Adam held up a hand. "Hold on for a moment, will you?" Crossing over to

the storage box, Adam fiddled with the combination lock for a moment before

opening the box. Reaching inside, he withdrew two folding camp stools,

carrying them over to where Andrea was standing. He opened one, motioning

for his sister to sit before sitting himself.

"Okay, this is better. Now, take your time and tell me what the deal

is."

Andrea waited a few seconds before responding. "Something happened to

me today, something unexpected and wonderful. You know Dale and I have

been having some problems?" Adam nodded.

"Good. Then it shouldn't surprise you I've filed for a divorce."

"No, it doesn't. Andrea, what does Dale have to do with what happened

to you?"

"Everything and nothing, Adam. Before today, I didn't have a clue about

what I was going to do with my life after Dale and I go our own way."

"And now?"

Andrea smiled. "Now? Suddenly, I've got this feeling about what I want

to do. What surprises me is how I came to feel this way. It's really

weird; you think you know yourself and someone comes along and shows you a

side you never knew existed."

"You've met someone else?"

Andrea's smile grew wider. "Oh, yes. I most certainly have."

"Then it's all good, right?" Adam wasn't sure of Andrea's thoughts, but

if she's met someone else, well, then things must be okay.

"I'm hoping," Andrea continued, "that it will work out for me and my new

love."

"Anybody I know?" Adam watched his sister blush deeply.

"That's the hard part, Adam. It is someone you know."

Adam went fishing by asking, "Is this what you and Kenny were talking

about?" Andrea's blush deepened.

"We talked, yes." At first, Adam frowned at Andrea's enigmatic answer

before his mind put two and two together.

"Oh, shit! Andrea, did Kenny make love to you?"

If Andrea could turn any redder, she would be a stop light. "I'm sorry,

Adam. Things just happened so quickly! One moment she was holding me

because I was upset and crying - she felt so warm and soft! The next thing

I know, she had me out of my clothes and into orbit." Andrea looked at

Adam, expecting him to go ballistic at this news. Instead, Adam smiled, as

if he understood.

"Kenny does have a certain... something about her, doesn't she? She's

really hard to resist."

Andrea was pleased and confused at the same time. "Your wife and I made

love this afternoon! Aren't you concerned or angry or something?"

"Should I be? I don't see what the big deal is, Andrea. You got

seduced by your sister-in-law; what's so bad about it?"

"For one," Andrea began hotly, "This is your wife we're talking about.

And, I've never done anything like this before."

Adam continued to smile. "And you want more of Kenny." Quietly, Andrea

admitted the truth, more to herself than to Adam.

"Yes. In that one moment, I think I fell in love with your wife. I've

never felt anything like it before." Andrea paused for a moment, trying to

get a grip on her runaway emotions. "You must think me some kind of nut."

Adam reached cross the distance between them to take Andrea's hand.

"No, I don't think you're crazy. And, just so you'll know, I don't have a

problem with what happened between you and Kenny."

Andrea looked at her brother with a fresh perspective; clearly, this

wasn't the same guy she had grown up with. "Answer a question for me?"

"Sure."

"What's up with your friend there?" Andrea waved a hand at Adam's still

noticeable erection. "If I didn't know better, I would swear you were

having some unsavory thoughts about me."

"You wanna hear something?" Adam asked.

"What?"

"I was having unsavory thoughts about you."

"Huh?"

"When we were standing there and I was holding you, I was thinking about

how nice it would be to fuck you." Adam shrugged, feeling a Kendra-like

calm flowing over him. Andrea, on the other hand, was anything but calm.

"You wanted to what? You can't fuck me - I'm your sister!"

"So? What's your point?"

"My point?" Andrea was exasperated. "We're brother and sister, dummy!"

Even through her amazement at Adam's proclamation, Andrea felt a surge of

excitement. In a funny way, it was nice to have your brother think of you

as a woman.

"For those who didn't hear me, I'll repeat myself. What's your point,

Andrea?" Adam was enjoying every moment of his sister's confusion.

"Well, what would your wife say?"

"Kenny would pat me on my ass and tell me to stick it to you good,

that's what she'd say."

"Oh, you're telling me your wife wouldn't bat an eye? I don't believe

it!"

"Really? You wanna go ask her? Andrea, I don't know why you're acting

like this. You were honest about what you told me; why shouldn't I be

honest with you? Hell, did you happen to notice I didn't get upset with

your news?"

Andrea had to admit Adam had a point there; however, before she could

respond, the conversation was interrupted by a chirping sound. Adam

reached into his shirt pocket and removed the small cellular phone. "Yeah?

Oh, hi, babe. No, we're okay." Adam listened for a moment. "Okay. We'll

be on our way in a second." Adam folded the phone and returned it to his

pocket. "That was Kenny. Dinner's ready - we should head back to the

house. Hand me the stool, will you?"

As Andrea folded the stool and handed it to Adam, she said, "Don't think

you're off the hook on this one - this conversation is far from over."

Adam turned to Andrea, a thoughtful look on his handsome face and

extended his hand. When Andrea took it, he tugged gently, enough to bring

her into his embrace. Before she could react, Adam kissed her fully and

deeply, sliding his tongue between her full lips.

Andrea reacted instinctively to Adam's kiss, her arms closing around his

muscular body. She felt a rush of weakness as she returned the kiss,

suddenly remember who she was melting under. Finding a bit of resolve,

Andrea disengaged herself from Adam with mixed emotions. One part of her

was angry with her brother's boldness while the woman in her had been set

aflame by the forbidden contact.

"You're right, Andrea," Adam said huskily. "This is far from over.

Let's go." He headed off in the direction of the house with a dazed Andrea

following a short distance behind him.

Part V, Chapter Sixteen

Andrea lay in bed wide awake. Although it had been a physically tiring

day (not to mention emotionally), she found herself unable to sleep.

Dinner had been, well, interesting, even though Andrea couldn't remember

what she'd eaten. Her thoughts had been occupied with her experience with

Kendra earlier in the day and the discussion with Adam. All during the

meal, Andrea stole glances at Kendra, drinking in her beauty and feeling

the sinful, lusty emotions the exotic woman instilled in her. From the

sultry, sexy Kendra, her gaze would land on her brother. What had happened

to him? Once shy and reserved, he now exuded sexuality. His kiss had done

more than surprise Andrea...

In the relative quiet of the guest room, Andrea listened to the sounds

around her. The gentle rustling of the night wind through the trees just

outside the window was soothing, yet provided little comfort to the edgy

Andrea. "God," she whispered. "What is wrong with me? My husband treats

me like shit, my sister-in-law seduces me, and now my brother wants to fuck

me!" Andrea frowned at the turn of events in her life.

Finding no answers from above forthcoming, Andrea sighed in frustration.

She rose from the comfortable bed and went into the bathroom. Turning on

the light, Andrea looked at her reflection in the mirror, seeing what the

inability to rest was doing to her features. Andrea turned on the water

and let it run until it was warm before splashing the soothing liquid over

her face.

Feeling better, Andrea began drying her face on the towel when she heard

something. Looking about the room and hearing nothing, Andrea shrugged and

finished her task, chalking it up to her imagination. Placing the towel

back on the bar, Andrea turned off the light and was about to leave the

bathroom when she heard the sound again, louder this time and definitely

coming from the other side of a door she hadn't noticed. Curious, Andrea

went over to the door - the sounds were definitely coming from the other

side! Cautiously, she grasped the doorknob and turned it, hearing the

catch disengage with a soft click.

The door opened on silent hinges. Andrea poked her head through the

opening and found herself looking into a darkened room similar to the one

she occupied. The sounds were coming from her right and she cast her eyes

in that direction, thankful they had adjusted to the darkness. Andrea's

quiet breathing nearly stopped in her chest. Before her on the bed, two

figures moved in a sexual ballet. In addition to the grunts and groans

which led her to this scene, Andrea could hear the squishy, liquid sounds

of joined bodies.

Blinking, Andrea could make out a dark-skinned woman on top, her body

undulating with an almost snake-like ease, her hands massaging moderately

large breasts. Beneath her came the unmistakable sounds of a man in total

ecstasy. A burst of excitement ran through Andrea as she realized she had

stumbled upon a couple making love. Forcing her eyes to focus against the

darkness, Andrea could see Ellie Williams riding the hell out of the guy

under her, which identified the man as Kenny's father..

Andrea's curiosity deepened as she remembered the master bedroom was on

the other side of the house! Kendra had, during Andrea's tour, made a

point of showing the tastefully appointed room. Mentally shrugging, Andrea

figured it was their house and they could screw anywhere they damn well

pleased.

Except for one thing. The hand which reached up to pinch Ellie's nipple

was much lighter in color. Besides herself, there was only one other

person in the house with skin that light...

"Adam..." Andrea whispered. "My God..."

* * *

Ellie was enjoying herself as she took Adam to greater heights of

passion, riding his blood-engorged manhood for all she was worth. Beneath

her, Adam had his eyes closed and a grimace of pain/pleasure flickered

across his face as Ellie clamped well-trained vaginal muscles around him.

Ellie knew he was close, plunging herself deeper onto him repeatedly when

she heard Andrea's whispered exclamation. Leaning forward, Ellie made a

show of shaking her long black hair, using the movement to glance towards

the doorway.

There she was - mouth open, eyes wide. Ellie decided it was time to

give Andrea something to look at. Seductively, Ellie ground her hips

downward in slow, wide circles one last time before releasing the slickened

shaft from her velvet embrace. Adam groaned with disappointment as the

warmth was removed from him, his hips flailing at empty air.

Ellie used a hand to grasp Adam's cock. Licking her lips in an

exaggerated show of hunger, Ellie covered Adam's thrusting member with her

mouth, delighting in the taste of their combined fluids. Slowly, she

swallowed him until her nose was buried in Adam's nest of brown pubic hair,

holding him deep within her throat for long seconds before withdrawing.

Ellie's hand slid along Adam's hardness until a drop of pre-cum oozed from

the slit of his cock, which she greedily licked away with a flick of her

tongue.

Andrea watched the display before her with a mixture of disgust and

excitement. Imagine! Her own brother fucking his mother-in-law! Yet,

Andrea couldn't deny the tingle of excitement which flowed through her,

hardening her nipples and starting a flow of juices running down her legs.

Andrea knew she should step away from the scene before her, go back to bed

and try to put things in their proper place. However, she was frozen in

place, unable - and unwilling - to move.

Ellie was taking perverse pleasure in teasing both Adam and Andrea,

swirling her tongue around the darkening knob of Adam's maleness. After

licking away yet another drop of liquid love, Ellie tilted her head toward

the open doorway.

"You may as well join us, Andrea. You can't have any fun standing there

watching unless you're into that sort of thing." Adam raised his head at

Ellie's announcement to find his sister watching with rapt attention.

"Oh, shit," Adam murmured.

"Relax, Adam," Ellie said, placing a hand on his chest to keep him where

he was. "It's her choice, just as it was yours to make." Turning back to

Andrea, Ellie waved her to join them. "Kenny told me you wanted to know

the secret to her happiness. Now's you chance to learn for yourself."

Shocked into motion by the invitation, Andrea stepped into the bedroom,

her temper flaring. "Let me get this straight. You are in here, fucking

my brother behind your daughter's back and you want me to join you? You

must be out of your fucking mind!"

Ellie fixed Andrea with a calm, yet penetrating, look. "First of all,

darling, I am not fucking him behind anyone's back. Secondly, my mind is

doing very well, thank you." Ellie gaze flicked to Adam's erection, kept in

place with some expertly applied pressure. "Besides, there's more than

enough man for both of us, wouldn't you say?" Having said her piece, Ellie

returned to her labor of love.

Andrea watched as the older Black woman ran a very pink tongue along the

length of her brother's cock, seeing Adam's reaction as he gave in to the

pleasures offered by Ellie. Her conscious mind rambled with thoughts of

utter disgust with the act taking place before her. Deep in the back of

Andrea's mind, however, plans were being hatched, dark, sinister, and

lusty.

A low, urgent voice whispered unthinkable things to her, placing visions

of having that magnificent, forbidden erection between her own lips in the

front of her, subtly replacing every reason why she shouldn't.

The voice asked, "Don't you have needs which aren't being tended to?

How long has it been since you've had a long, hard cock inside you,

spreading you wide?" Andrea blinked and shook her head to clear the

tempting visions from her head, not wanting to give in to the desire

because it was so very wrong.

"Wrong?" the voice teased. "If this is so wrong, why are you so hot and

wet?" Andrea had to admit it was a damned good question. She shut her eyes

against the sight of Ellie sucking Adam's balls one at a time; however, she

couldn't shut off her hearing as Adam moaned in obvious delight. "Look,

sweetie," the voice said. "Either lead, follow, or get the fuck out of the

way, okay? Make up your mind already!"

Andrea took a deep breath hoping to clear her mind once and for all,

only to have the heady, sharp perfume of sex assail her which, along with

the maddening voice in her head, whispered promises of sweet, soul searing

passion.

Andrea's eyelids fluttered open - along with her mouth. Somehow, during

the argument with herself, she had moved closer to the two lovers on the

bed. From where she now stood, she could make out the glistening strands

of saliva clinging delicately to Adam's cock, as well as the tongue which

was applying it. She could also make out Adam's lust-filled rambling as he

pleaded for Ellie to continue. Another look and Andrea could make out the

heart-shaped head of her brother's phallus - dark as a plum and oh, so

inviting!

Another blink - Andrea could now make out the shape of each vein which

ran along the thickened length, pulsing with a life of their own under the

tawny grip of Ellie's hand. A simple movement of the wrist by Ellie

revealed the slightly distended opening at the tip of Adam's maleness at

which a single, clear drop of dew rested. So clear, so tempting just to

flick out one's tongue and let the droplet rest there, transmitting its

salty essence to sensitive taste buds.

Andrea felt a trickle of saliva escape her parted lips, remembering how

a man's essence tasted fresh from the source. It looked so good just

sitting there, only now beginning to dribble down the blood-engorged head

and collecting around the circular embrace of Ellie's hand, which was now

proffering the delicious morsel in her direction. Andrea blinked once

more; this wasn't right but, damn it all to hell, she was hot, horny and

straight up in need. Tossing her fate to the wind, Andrea allowed her

tongue to snap out and collect her sinful dessert.

Ah... So hot and tangy! Like the sweetest of things of which one

cannot get enough of once tasted, Andrea fell to the business of draining

her brother dry. Her mouth flowed over the spongy knob, quickly removing

very trace of stickiness with her tongue. Her distended lips ran into

Ellie's fingers, felt the cool stickiness on them and cleaned them as well.

Ellie smiled and moved aside to allow Andrea full access to Adam.

Without losing her grip on Adam's shaft, Andrea quickly filled the

vacancy left by Ellie and returned to the task at hand. Fully consumed

with lust, Andrea gave up on savoring the forbidden fruit, opting to throw

all caution to the wind, along with her eternal soul. She increased the

sucking motions along the length of Adam's cock, her tongue playing a

maddening tattoo on every inch of skin it could reach.

Through slitted eyes, Adam raised his head enough to catch a glimpse of

the she-demon attacking his cock. A massive surge of fresh lust flowed

into him as he recognized the mane of brown hair bobbing atop a head moving

on him at a blistering pace. Whatever control Adam had learned deserted

him as his sac tightened painfully, just before the first spurt of love

exploded from him. "Oh, SHIT!" Adam roared as the full force of his

ejaculation beat on his senses, his body turning into one gigantic,

uncontrollable muscle spasm.

Andrea felt the first splash of come against the roof of her mouth, took

a deep breath, and sucked hard, creating a vacuum within the confines of

her rapidly filling mouth - and we all know what happens when you introduce

liquid into a vacuum, don't we? Stream after impossible stream of semen

flowed into her mouth, making Adam feel as if his sister were sucking the

life from him. Just as he though his entire supply of seed had been

exhausted, Andrea did the unexpected, making a ring out of thumb and

forefinger and gripping him hard. Not only did this stop the flow of

sperm, it kept him hard - and painfully so, as his moan indicated.

"Oh, no," Andrea growled. "I'm not done with you yet, brother. If my

ass is going to hell, I'm taking you with me." Without releasing the near

painful grip on Adam tortured penis, Andrea turned to face Ellie. "When I

get on this fucker, you know what to do, right?" Ellie's only answer was to

smile. With her back to Adam, Andrea positioned herself over the dark

purple head of his cock and whispered, "God forgive me," just before

plunging herself onto the waiting member, feeling the thickness spread her

as it quickly vanished into her wetness.

Once fully speared, Andrea exhaled loudly. "Shit, this feels so fucking

good!" Spreading her legs wider, she commanded to Ellie, "Do your thing,

woman! Send me straight to hell!"

"With pleasure," Ellie said, quickly covering Andrea's very exposed

clitoris with her mouth and sucking it into a greater state of hardness,

feeling her victim shudder in sweet response. Ellie teased the swollen bud

of flesh with lips, teeth and tongue, extracting peals of lusty curses from

Andrea. And, for good measure, she applied a lavish dose of raspy tongue

to the exposed underside of Adam's cock each time it escaped Andrea's

velvety embrace.

Between the tightness of his sister's pussy and the insanity behind

Ellie's more than experienced tongue, Adam fell to his doom as his cock

once again swelled before coating Andrea's insides with love.

"THAT'S WHAT I'M TALKING ABOUT!!" Andrea just lost it, giving voice to

long unrealized pleasure as spurt after spurt splashed against her raw

insides, soothing the flames and, for the moment, putting out the fire.

She hammered herself against Adam, the impact causing her breasts to shake

wildly. Andrea reached down, pulling Ellie's face tighter against her,

rotating her hips against the tongue which continued to flick and tease her

clitoris.

All Adam could do was ride out Andrea's orgasmic storm as Ellie's

masterful mouth brought his sister right to the brink - and politely kicked

her to the point from which no return would ever be possible. He could

feel Andrea flooding his shaft and balls with hot, liquid love; whatever

Ellie wasn't catching ran down the crack of his buttocks, causing quite a

different sensation in itself.

Andrea shuddered as the last of her orgasm cascaded through her, leaving

satisfaction in its wake - along with something else. Still trembling,

Andrea rolled off Adam to lay panting beside him. The rush of orgasm was

being replaced with a feeling of pure terror as the realization of what she

had done, not to mention who was partially responsible for the quickly

fading warmth.

Ellie sat on ebon haunches to watch the inevitable explosion of emotion

she knew would be arriving shortly. Idly, she licked her lips, relishing

the unique taste of male and female juices. Her own lust reminded her of

its presence by hardening her nipples and allowing a trickle of juice to

flow from her. Making a mental note to resolve her own horniness in a few

moments, she returned her attention to Andrea and Adam.

Adam called out to his sister. "Andy? You okay over there?" He reached

out, seeking her hand. As Adam made contact with his sister's cooling

flesh, Andrea jerked away violently.

"Don't touch me! Just leave me the hell alone!"

"Sis, we have to talk about this." Adam kept the hurt from his voice as

best he could, knowing if Andrea picked up on it, the situation would run

out of control.

"There's nothing to talk about. God, I feel so filthy! My own brother
- how could I do such a terrible thing?"

"You didn't do anything you didn't want to do," said Ellie as she placed

a hand on Andrea's thigh, quite surprised when the other woman didn't

flinch or pull away.

"Oh, yeah? That's easy for you to say; you never fucked your brother
before." Guilt had Andrea in its grip and was squeezing her heart and soul

tightly in place while Confusion slapped her around.

"You sure about that, little girl?" Ellie asked, her voice dangerously

low. "You've only had a tiny sample of what I've been through in my life.

I hardly think one roll in the hay qualifies you as an expert on the

subject."

Andrea looked at Adam questioningly. "What the fuck is she talking

about?" Adam toyed his fingers, making a show of inspecting his

fingernails. Andrea grabbed her brother's hands to get his full attention.

"Answer me, damn you, before I lose my fucking mind! What is she talking

about?"

Adam cleared his throat, looking toward Ellie who nodded. Turning his

gaze onto Andrea he said, "Devon and Ellie are not just Kenny's mother and

father. They're also brother and sister, Andrea. I know this is hard for

you to hear - it was hard for me to listen to this when I was told."

"You mean to tell me you knew about all this and still agreed to be a

part of this hideous sin?" Andrea was incredulous. "What the hell were you

thinking about?"

"I was thinking about my love for Kenny," Adam said before falling

silent, drawing a deadly look from his sister.

"That's it? All you have to say is you did it out of love? What a

crock of shit!" Andrea burned with anger and, oh, yeah, shame as the two

emotions warred against each other for dominance.

Ellie's quiet voice reached Andrea's ears. "You didn't think so a

moment ago, Andrea. You were all too willing to work out your sexual

frustration on Adam's cock. Would you have joined in if you didn't love

your brother? Or do you make it a habit of jumping on the first hard cock

you come across?"

Andrea bridled at Ellie's statement, her face reddening with both anger

and shame, knowing the other woman's words had hit upon at least a couple

of truths. "I'll have you know I don't make it a habit of screwing

anything with pants on," Andrea shot back heatedly. "As for the rest of

it, things got a little out of control."

Ellie remained unconvinced. "I'm sorry; I shouldn't have implied such a

thing. However, in control or not, you didn't seem to mind while things

were taking place. It wasn't until after the fact your mind objected."

Andrea hung her head as Ellie's words continued to echo in her mind.

True enough, the only thing which mattered was getting some relief; that

she found it while riding Adam's maleness didn't really matter. Or did it?

Andrea could feel her eyes pooling with hot, salty tears as the truth

settled in to stay a while.

"I don't know what to think right now, even though I have to admit there

is some truth to what you've said," Andrea admitted as her tears spilled

down her cheeks. Adam fished around on the night stand until he found the

box of tissues. "Andy, there's no reason for you to be ashamed of what

happened," Adam said as he dried his sister's face. "If I've learned

anything from this, it's there's nothing wrong with showing your love for

those closest to you." Adam reached up, gently stroking Andrea's face with

the back of his fingertips.

"But, I never thought about you in sexual terms! Oh, you're a great

looking guy and all, but you're still my brother."

"I have to admit to not thinking of you in those terms either," Adam

confessed. "However, if this has done anything, it's shown me how much I

really love you."

Andrea felt a fresh flood of tears collecting. "What are you saying?

How can you love me after I practically attacked you like some crazed

slut?"

Ellie moved closer to Andrea, taking her hands. "Crazed, maybe. Slut,

well, the jury will have to deliberate on this one. Still, what does it

matter? Can't you see the main issues here are love and happiness?"

"Love and happiness?" Andrea's laugh contained a tinge of bitterness.

"I used to know what they were."

Ellie leaned closer, her lips brushing against Andrea's cheek. "You can

get to know them again."

"How? If you think I'm having a hard time dealing with this, how do you

think Dale will react?" Andrea laughed. "The boy will flip his lid!"

"What does Dale have to do with this?" Adam asked. "This isn't about

him at all."

"Then, how...?" Andrea couldn't see where this was going.

"You can rediscover love and happiness here with us, Sis," Adam

answered, letting his fingers trail along the contours of one breast.

"Just think of it! No pressures, no hassles, no sense of being obligated

to Dale and his tyrannical ways. Think of what it would be like to be

surrounded by people whose main goal in life is to make and keep you

happy!"

"Even if it mean screwing me until I couldn't see straight?"

"If that's what it takes, yes." Ellie answered, following Adam's lead by

letting one manicured finger trace circles around Andrea's hardening

nipple. "You can be sure your every need will be tended to."

Andrea began to relax under the dual stimulation. "What would Kenny

have to say about all of this? I mean, he's my brother but he's is also

her husband. It just doesn't seem right for me to, uh, take him away from

her."

"No chance of that, Andy," Adam answered. "Believe me, Kenny wouldn't

see this as an intrusion on your part."

"Besides," Ellie added, "There are more than enough men - and women, if

you like - to go around."

"Huh?"

Adam grinned in the semi-darkness. "Did you think your activities would

be limited to me alone?"

"Well... yes."

"Guess again, Andrea. Certainly, Kenny will want to love you again. It

stands to reason the rest of the family will want a piece of your cute ass

as well!"

A vision of the entire Williams clan lined up before her popped into

Andrea's head. "This is so hard to deal with. I don't want to seem like

I'm some kind of sex maniac."

Ellie laughed softly, letting her fingers toy with Andrea's navel.

"Compared to the rest of us, you're pretty tame. For now, that is."

"I can see how this could help me," Andrea said, changing the subject

while shifting her body slightly to allow Ellie better access to her tummy.

"How does all of this help solve my problems with Dale?"

Ellie's warm breath felt good against Andrea's exposed flesh as she

answered. "For one, you'll have a better idea about loving and being

loved. Once you understand the way it's supposed to be, you can use your

knowledge to educate your husband."

Andrea laughed nervously, partially out of uncertainty of Dale's

compliance and mostly due to Adam's tongue on her nipple. "Dale's one of

those men who figures it's a woman's place to put out on demand. And then,

it's his way or no way. He could care less if I got what I wanted just as

long as he got his rocks off."

Adam stopped his oral inspection of his sister's nipple. "Well, then,

your choice is a simple one. You were planning to divorce him, right?"

Andrea moaned an acknowledgment, a bit miffed at Adam for the stoppage.

"Then you should go ahead and rid yourself of him." Having said this,

Adam returned to his oral manipulation of Andrea's nipple.

Andrea's thinking was becoming fragmented by the mouth on her nipple and

the one approaching her rapidly heating center. "Where will I go? It's a

safe bet he won't let me keep the house."

"You can stay here," Ellie said. "We've got plenty of room, either here

or across the lake. Raise your knees for me, will you? Thanks..."

Andrea gasped as Ellie's tongue split her outer labia. "I... I

wouldn't want to, um, impose on any of you. Harder, please..."

Ellie's muffled reply was barely audible. "No problem - on either

account. Now, hold still..."

Any further discussion was deferred in favor of some in-depth, nonverbal

talks. For the next hour, Andrea learned what it like to love and be

loved, openly and freely, with no holds barred as Adam and Ellie took her

to greater heights of passion. As wave after wave of pleasure crashed

against the shores of her soul, Andrea realized her two lovers asked

nothing of her in return. Taking a break from the near-relentless assault

on her senses, Andrea watched as Adam moved within Ellie with long, sure

strokes.

Of equal interest was Ellie's acceptance of her son-in-law's efforts as

the older woman gave voice to each and every thrill sent her way, literally

clawing and cursing her way through orgasm after orgasm.

Andrea felt, for lack of a better word, compelled to return the loving

feelings which had been so lavishly heaped upon her. Recalling her

experience with Kendra, Andrea did her best to add to Ellie's pleasure by

alternately sucking and biting Ellie's nipples. As Ellie cried out in

response, Andrea felt her confidence building, letting her tongue trace

lazy patterns down Ellie's torso until she got a bird's eye view of hard

maleness penetrating soft womanhood.

Andrea watched with rapt attention as the head of Adam's cock, pale in

contrast to Ellie's dark folds, withdrew until only the head remained

lodged within Ellie's sweet confines. Emboldened by her newly found sexual

freedom, Andrea whispered, "Ellie, let him take you from behind - I want to

try something." Ellie's response was to groan with feigned disappointment;

nevertheless, she slid from under Adam, rolling to one side. Andrea

quickly took Ellie's place but facing in the opposite direction, spreading

her legs high and wide.

Ellie smiled wickedly. "I know what she wants, Adam. Let's give it to

her!" Ellie then straddled Andrea, covering the younger woman's face with

dark, damp, pussy before burying her own face between Andrea's waiting

thighs. Adam positioned himself over Ellie's uplifted backside, lingering

just a moment to savor the sight of his sister's tongue working at Ellie's

engorged clitoris. There being other fish to fry, Adam slid back into

Ellie's welcome warmth.

From her position under Ellie, Andrea had a perfect view as Adam worked

more cock shaft into Ellie. Above her, Ellie trembled under the dual

assault of tongue and man meat, her cries of pleasure efficiently muffled

as tried to keep up the frantic pace. Andrea smiled as an orgasmic tremor

set in, her body tensing and relaxing in sweet response. Tilting her head

back, Andrea alternated licking Ellie's clit and any exposed piece of

Adam's cock which managed not to be swallowed by Ellie's gripping orifice.

The three lovers moved with each other to the primal beat of their lust,

each giving and taking. As the old cliche goes, all good things, etc.

Andrea could actually see Adam's shaft grow thicker, his strokes becoming

quicker and more insistent. A moment later, Andrea could see her brother's

cock pumping jet after jet of man cream into Ellie. Andrea tongued Ellie's

swollen clit faster and harder, instigating a string of lusty curses from

Ellie as her own pleasure peaked and overflowed, flooding Andrea's face

with tangy essence. As Ellie's vagina contracted, a flow of sperm escaped,

running along the contours of red, puffy labia before forming one large

dollop of seed. Andrea held her mouth open in anticipation of her

brother's offering, moaning loudly as the salty droplet plopped into her

mouth just about the same time Ellie's demonic tongue exorcised a

toe-curling orgasm from somewhere deep within Andrea's soul.

The sound of wet, hot bodies was replaced with the sounds of three

people doing their level best to catch their respective breaths. Andrea

searched her soul for any signs of anguish over this incestuous act. She

had to admit the hot, tingling feelings which continued to wash over her

felt right. Still, there was one prominent thought in her heart,

overlaying the orgasmic bliss.

Andrea knew, in her heart of hearts, she hadn't just been fucked; she

had been loved and deliciously so. Absent was the usual selfishness she'd

known since her very first time. Gone was the empty feeling left by men
whose only care was their own satisfaction. Andrea realized she had been

given something that transcended mere physical satisfaction - she had been

given enlightenment. Versed in the usual ways of making love, she had

ventured into places women rarely went, let alone talked about.

Andrea had known the touch of another woman for the first time earlier

today. She shivered as she remember Kendra's loving, gentle loving which

had been urgent without rushing, insistent but not forceful. Andrea knew

how emotionally labile she'd been at that time, seeking comfort in any

form. Tonight was different. Andrea had once again ventured into the

unknown, this time of her own free will, accepting Ellie's love and

returning it as well. Another delightful shiver raced through Andrea as

she remembered her first taste of a woman. No fear, no hesitation - just

welcome acceptance and a need to love.

Andrea could feel sleep descending upon her as she looked toward Adam.

Damn! Andrea smiled dreamily, wondering why making love with him never

occurred to her before now while also realizing the silliness of her

question. Still, as sleep claimed Andrea, she vowed to correct this

obvious oversight in her life.

Part V, Chapter Seventeen

Morning sunlight streamed in the curtained window, casting its warmth

onto Andrea, who stretched luxuriously, happy and content. And sat

straight up, wide awake and wondering where in the name of God she was!

Looking around, she recognized the well-appointed guest room... but how

had she gotten in here? Her last memory was of being in bed with, oh,

shit, Ellie and Adam...

"Good morning," a baritone voice said, coming from her right, causing

Andrea to yelp in surprise. "Did you sleep well?" Andrea turned toward the

voice and found Devon sitting in the upholstered chair which occupied the

room.

"Shit! You scared me, Devon! I slept just fine, thank you. But..."

"Yes?" Devon's smile was magnetic.

"How did I get back in here?" Andrea gestured to take in the whole room.

"I happened to be looking for Ellie, knew she'd be with Adam - but I

didn't expect to find you with them. I figured it would be easier for you

to wake up in your own bed - a lot less chance of any discomfort."

"Thanks," Andrea offered, carefully noticing Devon hadn't commented

further on her presence in the bed, let alone her obvious state of undress

at the time. "About last night..."

Devon raised one long-fingered hand in dismissal. "You don't have to

explain anything, Andrea. Especially if you're not, ah, comfortable about

it." Devon settled back into the comfortable chair, taking stock of his

son-in-law's sister. Earlier in the morning, Ellie, Adam, Devon, and

Kendra had discussed the events of the night before, with Devon drawing the

short straw as the person Andrea would see upon awakening and to answer the

questions they knew she'd have.

"Oh, I'm all right," Andrea answered - and meant it. She had never felt

more comfortable in her life, even after having the strangest experience in

her entire life. "What do you want to know?"

Devon laughed at Andrea's positive stance. "If you're asking me, then

you must be handling all of this better than we expected." He nodded

approval. "That's good, Andrea. To answer your question, I just want to

know one thing."

"Go ahead," Andrea replied, feeling a confidence she'd never known

before. Remarkable, since she was about to have a talk about getting laid

to a man she only met once or twice before! "Were you loved?"

"Was I ever!" Andrea exclaimed. "You know, at first I though all of

this sick and disgusting. That was before I stopped looking at it from my

old perspective." Andrea shifted her position on the bed before continuing.

"Ellie and Adam had an interesting way to rid me of my old way of thinking,

but it worked. I never realized something so wrong could be so right."

Devon nodded in silent agreement. "It does take some getting used to.

It took Adam a little longer to get used to being a part of our loving

family. But, as you discovered, he's well adjusted."

"That isn't all he is," Andrea muttered, her body remembering the utter

joy of being filled by him. Turning her attention back to Devon, Andrea

asked, "So now what? I mean, what happens next?"

Devon regarded Andrea with a tilt of his head, as if not understanding

the question. "I don't know, Andrea; what do you want to happen next?"

Andrea fixed Devon with a puzzled look of her own. "Am I expect to

'join up' or something?"

"Don't be silly! Of course not!"

"What, then?" Andrea's confusion was parading itself openly. "I don't

get it."

Devon shrugged. "What's there to get? You are Adam's sister and, thus,

a member of the family. We wouldn't treat you any different than we do

Adam who, by the way, is here by his choice. He could have walked out on

Kenny and the rest of us on the first night. Hell, he still can."

"He's still here," Andrea said, understanding where Devon was going.

"Exactly. I know of your plans to divorce Dale and I'm supposed to tell

you that you're welcome to stay here." He looked around the room

expansively. "This room will be yours, of course. As Adam will attest,

you won't want for anything."

"What's the catch, Devon? This is too good to be true."

"You wound me, Andrea - there's no catch, no gimmicks, no nothing. Just

the family reaching out to another family member in need."

"I wouldn't have to, uh, you know, earn my keep?"

Devon frowned his displeasure. "Just allowing the family to help you is

reward enough for us. Please don't insult us by implying you have to do

something in return."

Andrea's face reddened at Devon's mild rebuke. "I'm sorry, Devon. It's

just... damn! This has all been like a dream to me, one I don't want to

wake up from. I could leave Dale today and spend the rest of my life here

without missing him one bit."

"And, pray tell, why is that?"

Andrea thought carefully over her answer, sighing deeply. "Because I

know everyone here will love me, even those of you who are just getting to

know me. And I need to show my love to everyone who loves me."

"Well, then," Devon said while getting to his feet, giving Andrea a good

long look at his trim form as well as the outline of his maleness. Devon

smiled before announcing, "It's all settled. Let someone know what you

want to do and we'll see about getting things in order. Are you hungry?

For food, I mean," letting Andrea know he was aware of her gaze.

"I'm starving," Andrea replied. "And not just for food, if you catch my

drift."

"I do, indeed. You'll have plenty of time to feed yourself. For now,

though, let's get you showered and fed. Pancakes or waffles?"

Andrea smiled brilliantly at Devon, already knowing what decision she'd

make. "Yes."

"Yes? Yes, pancakes or yes, waffles?"

"Yes."

"Women," Devon uttered as he left Andrea to her morning ablutions.

* * *

Andrea arrived for breakfast some twenty minutes later, feeling

well-rested and full of energy. Freshly showered and outfitted in jeans,

T-shirt and light sweater, she joined the rest of family, taking a seat

next to Kendra. Kendra acknowledged Andrea's presence with a nod, turning

her attention momentarily to something Ellie was saying.

"...So, we won't need to make any other changes. There'll be plenty of

room for everyone."

Adam and Kendra both nodded in agreement. "Not that it makes much

difference," said Adam, giving everyone a sample of his magnetic smile.

"We usually don't spend much time in our rooms - sleeping, that is." Kendra

giggled.

Devon spoke up, taking in Andrea with his warm glance. "All there is to

settle now is a buy-in from Andrea."

"Buy-in to what?" Andrea asked between a mouth full of waffles.

"Well, I told everyone about our conversation this morning. Depending

on your answer, we'd love to have you stay here with us."

Andrea sat her fork on the plate carefully, having nearly dropped it

upon hearing Devon's announcement. She looked at everyone around the

table, taking those few seconds to make the biggest decision in her life

since accepting Dale's marriage proposal. Andrea looked at Devon as if

some ulterior motive could be found on his handsome features. Instead, she

saw only the quiet confidence everyone in this family seemed to possess.

Turning her head slightly, she looked in Ellie's eyes, finding the same

confidence along with a look which promised a lot of interesting days and

nights. Andrea shivered involuntarily as both her mind and body remembered

the sensations delivered by Ellie just mere hours ago. Putting the memory

aside she looked at Kendra and another shiver raced up her spine.

"Get a grip, girl," she told herself before allowing her gaze to settle

on Adam. Even though born of different roots, he was clearly a member of

this family, fairly oozing the Williams family confidence and sexuality.

Who would have thought the best sex she'd ever experienced had come from

the last person she ever dreamed of?

Feeling as if she were taking too long to answer, Andrea cleared her

throat before speaking. "After everything which has happened in the last

twenty-four hours or so, the first thing I have to say I'm not really clear

about what has really happened." Andrea managed a weak smile, shaking her

head. "Still, I'd be lying if I said I didn't enjoy every minute of it."

Andrea could feel tears welling in her eyes; Kendra placed a warm,

comforting hand on hers.

"Take you time, Andy; we all know how important a decision this is.

It's not easy giving up one way of life for another."

Andrea nodded. "Dale and I, well, things haven't turned out the way I

had hoped. Last night, Adam and Ellie showed me what it was like to be

loved unselfishly." Tears spilled down Andrea's cheeks, falling softly onto

the simple tablecloth covering the cherry wood table. "I want more of this

kind of love."

Ellie spoke quietly. "Even if it means receiving it from Adam?"

"Yes. It was one of the things which makes my decision an easy one."

Andrea dabbed at her eyes, feeling her resolve return. She looked once

more at everyone seated at the table, drawing strength from them and

feeling the outpouring of love. "If Adam could make love to me without

batting an eye and not feeling bad about it, then how could I do any less?

After all, he's my baby brother and I can't let him one-up me!" Adam rolled

his eyes and placed a hand over his heart as if wounded.

"My answer is yes, yes, a thousand times yes. I want to be here with

you and experience the love and joy you share every day. Of course, I'll

have to let Dale know I won't be coming home." She sighed. "You know, I'm

leaving my husband and I don't feel bad about it at all."

"As well you shouldn't," a deep baritone voice agreed. Heads turned

toward the new voice as Lorne Williams entered the room, followed closely

by Etienne and Kymber.

"Mother. Father. Grandmother." Devon nodded to each in turn. "It's

good to see you, but I thought you were on vacation."

"We were." said Eti, taking a seat next to Andrea. "Until your father
he had enough of lying around playing victim." Turning, Eti flashed a smile

at Andrea. "Andrea! It's really good to see you again! How long has it

been... since the wedding, right?"

Andrea blushed under the rapt attention being paid to her. "Yes, ma'am.

It's good to see all of you again," she greeted, accepting a kiss from

Kymber on the cheek.

"Ma'am? Please, child - you make me sound ancient! Call me Eti."

Andrea's blush deepened. Lorne circled around the elegant table until he

stood next to Devon.

"What's this about Andrea leaving her husband, Dev?" The look Lorne gave

his son said he wouldn't be put off by some half-assed answer. Andrea's

mouth opened to answer but snapped shut with a look from Lorne.

"Andrea has decided to leave Dale and move in with us." Devon showed no

fear or intimidation. Lorne's eyebrows threatened to crawl up his forehead

and down the back.

"Ah, might I ask..l.?"

"She knows, Dad." Devon looked at Andrea giving her a big wink.

"I see," Lorne said, continuing to circle the table until he stood

behind Kendra and Adam, who at least had the good sense to look nervous.

"Andrea?"

Andrea swallowed. "Yes, sir?"

"Before I welcome you to the family, I want to be sure you understand

what you're getting into."

"I think I do, Dr. Williams."

"If I'm not being too pushy, might I ask why you're so sure?" Lorne

asked, even though he was pretty sure he knew the answer already.

Andrea looked lovingly at Ellie for a moment before letting her gaze

fall onto Adam. Lorne's only response was to raise a single eyebrow.

"Hmm. Well, I suppose the matter is settled."

"Pretty much, Dr. Williams," Andrea said. "Look, I've discovered what

your family is all about and even though I was shocked at first, I've had

time to think about it all and the whole thing makes sense. In fact..."

Andrea's voice trailed off, her eyes going out of focus as she looked at

Devon.

"Andrea?" Lorne asked.

"Hmm?"

"Are you okay?"

Andrea became aware of the entire family watching her with looks of

concern crossing their faces. "Damn! I'm sorry! My, uh, train of thought

got derailed for a moment."

Lorne had noticed Andrea's lapse of attention occurred when she looked

at Devon. Even though the oldest of the assembled group, he wasn't so old
he could tell Andrea had designs on his son. "Well, we stopped by to have

a talk with Ellie, Kenny and Adam about a few things, so if you'll excuse

us for a while..."

"Sure, Dr. Williams. I've got to go upstairs and get the bed made

anyway." Andrea turned to leave the room and remembered something. "Devon?

If you're not busy, would you give me a hand moving the chest of drawers? I

need to get something which fell behind it while I was dressing."

Devon took a moment to glance at his father, who nodded. "Sure, Andrea.

I'll be along in a moment." Andrea smiled brightly and left for her room.

Devon's attention was held by the sight of firm bottom before being drawn

back to his father's presence.

"Son," Lorne began. "I hope you know what you're doing; it's an awful

big risk you're running by allowing Andrea access to the family in this

manner."

"Dad, if what Adam and Ellie told me is true - and I don't have any

reason not to believe either of them, Andrea will fit in just fine. You'll

see!"

"I hope you're right," Lorne conceded, clamping a fatherly hand on

Devon's shoulder. "Well, I'm off to talk to the rest of the horde; stop by

when you get done."

"Okay, Dad."

* * *

As Andrea fussed over folding the comforter, she felt as if a great

weight had been lifted from her soul. It had been one thing to think about

Adam's in-laws as being part of the overall family; however, it was

something else to be in their presence, looking into their odd-colored eyes

and fairly basking in their magnetism. "Especially Etienne," Andrea

whispered to herself. There was something about the woman who reminded her

of Kendra - only a thousand times calmer and a million times more intense.

Andrea interrupted her introspective review upon hearing the light tapping

on the bedroom door. "Come on in, Devon," she called out, feeling her

pulse begin to race.

Devon's head appeared around the open edge of the door. "Ready to move

the chest?" he asked, stepping into the room.

"Sure, just give me a second to square this away." Looking up at Devon

just for an instant send an unbelievable chill through her. "This is one

good looking man," she thought. "And," her libido supplied, "he looks to

be well equipped to handle things, if you know what I mean." Andrea smiled

despite herself.

"Okay, I'm ready!" Andrea crossed the room, wiping her hands on her

thighs. Finding a place for her hands, she looked up at Devon, who had

also gotten a grip on his side of the chest. Their eyes met and Andrea

felt her jaw slacken just a little at the contact.

"On three, okay? One... Two... Three!" Devon's muscles locked as he

brought his strength to bear against the oak chest. With Andrea's help,

the massive piece of furniture move all of two inches, enough for Andrea to

look behind it.

"Whoa! There it is!" Andrea could see her lost object glinting in the

sunlight.

"Okay," Devon said, slightly winded. "Let me know when you're ready to

put this thing back."

Andrea bent over and wiggled her hand into the small space, her fingers

fishing for some purchase on the object. With a grunt, she managed to loop

a finger around the edge; from there, it was a simple matter to extract it.

"There!" she said triumphantly, standing and holding her prize up for Devon

to see.

"I can see why you'd want to get that back," Devon said while nodding to

the contraceptive bracelet dangling from Andrea's fingers.

"Yeah, I took it off to shower this morning and it must have fallen of

the back." Andrea slipped the bracelet back over her wrist, feeling the

expected tingle when the bracelet's sensor reestablished contact with the

sensor just under her skin. "The bracelet does its job, but it can be a

pain in the ass sometime. Whoever invented this damned thing must have

been out of their mind."

Devon chuckled. "He can be a bit goofy when he feels like it, but I

hardly think my father is out of his mind."

Andrea turned to face Devon, her face reddening. "Oh, shit. You mean

Lorne is THE Dr. Williams, the one who invented this?"

"The one and only."

"I feel so stupid."

"You shouldn't blame yourself. Look at it this way; it's better than

taking pills or having your plumbing cut on."

"You've got that right," Andrea agreed, sighing heavily.

"What's wrong?"

"Oh, nothing. I was just thinking about Dale."

For a moment, Devon felt irritated at the mention of Andrea's husband.

"What about him?"

Andrea flopped down across the bed, positioning herself so she could see

Devon. "I was just thinking about the argument we had over having

children."

Devon sat on the bed facing Andrea, grateful to sit. "I take it he

wasn't overly fond of the idea."

"Hmpf. That's putting it mildly. The boy lost his ever-loving mind.

Told me he didn't want to be burdened with the responsibility of bringing a

new life into the world." Andrea sighed. "At first, I thought he'd change

his mind, you know, after we'd been married a while longer."

Devon felt a twinge of sympathy for the younger woman. "Was this the

reason why things went sour between you?"

"Partly. The other part was because he just wants to have things his

way all the time, like nothing I could say or do was good enough for him."

"And now you think you've found what you're looking for with us." More

statement than question.

Andrea propped herself up on an elbow, staring intensely at Devon.

"Yes, I do. Why do you ask? Do you think I'm making a mistake?"

"No," Devon said. "I don't. I'm just wondering if our way of life is

the best thing for you. There are a lot of things to be taken into

consideration, some nice, some not-so-nice."

"My little session with Adam and Ellie crammed a lot into my head,

Devon," Andrea said confidently. "Yeah, there's the no holds barred

intimacy and the implications behind it. From where I'm sitting, though,

the good outweighs the bad here." Andrea sat up suddenly, looking intently

at Devon. "May I ask you something?"

Devon shrugged. "Sure - go ahead. One of the things you'll learn

around here is we have no secrets from each other."

"You've never had a girlfriend, have you?"

Devon's eyebrows rose in surprise. "You know, since you asked, no.

Well, not in the conventional sense anyway."

Andrea nodded, more to herself than in response to Devon's answer. "I

thought so."

"What does my not ever having a girlfriend have to do with anything?"

Devon was clearly puzzled.

"Everything. You've never had to go looking for love and affection,

never had to go through the disappointments most guys go through when they

grow up."

"Oh, I know all about the disappointment. I've seen what it did to some

of the guys I hung around with in school."

"But you've never gone through it yourself."

"Well, no. I suppose not. What's your point?"

Andrea smiled sweetly at Devon. "My point is you've never had to

experience the special feeling one gets when they meet the right person."

Devon could now see what Andrea was getting at. "Ah, of course. You're

saying because I've always had my relationship with my family, I've always

had all my physical and emotional needs taken care of. You know, I never

really looked at it from that perspective."

Andrea moved closer to Devon, stretching out beside him. "My point

exactly. See, I know this is right for me. I need to love and be loved

while being free to explore myself without having to deal with

recriminations. It's just a simple fact of when it's right, you know it."

Devon looked at Andrea in a different light, having most of his early

fears put to bed. From the descriptions provided by both Adam and Ellie,

Devon was afraid that Andrea's motives were purely sexual in nature. Devon

allowed himself a mental shrug, reminding himself there was some truth to

the sexual aspect. Oh, but wouldn't it be interesting having someone other

than Kymber to make love with. With a practiced eye, Devon let his gaze

flow over Andrea's lithe form, noticing he way her clothing clung to every

curve. And, he couldn't help but notice, she had some pretty good sized

nipples...

Andrea was very much aware of Devon's silent appraisal, hoping he liked

what he was seeing. Without making it obvious to Devon, Andrea coyly

rearranged her position on the bed, giving Devon a look at her backside

(and hoping it wasn't as fat as she thought). Even without being able to

see Devon, Andrea could feel his gaze upon her and, shit, it felt good to

be appreciated for being a woman.

"Andrea," Devon said, forcing himself to focus more on the conversation

than on Andrea's lovely body. "As my father does, I hope you've made the

right decision for yourself. Speaking for the family - my part of it, that

is - we welcome you and look forward to making your stay with us as

pleasant as possible."

Andrea was barely paying attention to Devon's warm words. Instead, she

was listening to a more insistent voice, one born of primal passion and

desire. Suddenly, Andrea was very much aware of the aura of masculinity

being projected by Devon. Her position on the bed not allowing her to look

at him didn't matter; she could feel him and, oh, God, did she want him.

"Devon?" Andrea took a split second in deciding her fate.

"Yes?"

Place your feet right on the edge and just fall forward...

"Make love to me."

For probably the first time in his life, Devon hesitated before

answering. True enough, he wanted Andrea; hearing the details of her

evening with Ellie and Adam made her much more desirable. On the other

hand, Devon knew his desire was being fueled by sheer lust. This wasn't

about showing love for another in their special way; no, this was about a

good old fashioned bone-jumping. Still, inbred responses kicked in.

Licking his lips, Devon said, "You sure this is what you want?"

Andrea's answer was to sit up, neatly pivoting on her bottom until she

faced Devon. Crossing her arms over and down, she removed her top in one

smooth motion to reveal a pair of small but perky breasts, each topped by

semi-hard nipples. Andrea cupped a breast in each hand, massaging her

nipples to full erection.

"I've never more sure of anything. I want you." Andrea's passionate

blush, once limited to her face, began to spread along her neck and

shoulders before creeping along the upper contours of her breasts.

Andrea leaned forward to crush her mouth against Devon's, submitting to

the passion. Tongues sought each other, tasting and discovering while

hands made themselves familiar. Andrea moaned as Devon's hands explored

the soft globes of her breasts before making their way down to the

waistband of her pants.

Reluctantly, the kiss was broken just long enough for Andrea to wiggle

out of her pants while Devon hurriedly removed his clothing, exposing his

muscular frame. Andrea lay back on the bed, her arms open and inviting,

not wanting to waste one precious moment.

As Devon eased himself into her embrace and his lips began to explore

the flesh just behind her left ear, Andrea realized there was more than

just lust and passion at work here. From the very first moment she laid

eyes on him, Andrea had felt drawn to Devon, a feeling which had soothed

and frightened her. As Devon's tongue traced an interesting pattern along

one nipple, causing Andrea to shiver with delight, a part of her knew she

had fallen in love with him.

Andrea cradled Devon's head to her chest as he sucked each nipple in

turn, raising her excitement and bringing the heat to searing levels. She

reached between their perspiring bodies and found him hot, hard, and

throbbing within her grasp. Her fingers toyed with the silken flesh of his

shaft causing Devon to gasp with pleasure. Andrea couldn't wait to feel

Devon inside of her - but first things first...

Wriggling out of Devon's embrace, Andrea moved between Devon's legs

before lowering her mouth onto his stiff member, effectively cutting off

any protests. The couple moaned in unison as Andrea slid two thick inches

of man meat into her mouth, savoring the musky scent and the slightly spicy

taste of the man under her. Slowly, Andrea's head began a bobbing motion,

each downward plunge gathering more of Devon's shaft into the deep recesses

of her throat. Devon's hands cradled and stroked Andrea's face as he

settled in to enjoy the oral attention, his features alternating between

smiles and grimaces as Andrea eagerly sucked him.

* * *

"Be sure to tell Dev to give me a call later this evening," Lorne said,

kissing first Ellie then Kendra before joining Kymber and Etienne at the

front door. "He must be rearranging the whole room for Andrea!"

Adam, standing behind wife and mother-in-law, hid a smirk behind his

hand. "Devon's rearranging something, alright. But I don't think it's

furniture." The departing Williams', along with Ellie and Kendra, turned to

look at Adam.

"Are you suggesting my son is doing unsavory things with your sister,

young man?" Kymber asked with mock seriousness.

"I'd say it's a safe bet, knowing my sister."

* * *

Andrea tossed her head back, a silent scream of pleasure poised to

escape her lips as Devon drove deeper into her, his hands spreading tender

buttocks to allow deeper penetration into her wetness.

"Oh, God, yes! Give me more, baby! Slide that hard cock in up to your

balls! Fuck me, Devon, oh, shit, fuck me til I can't see straight!"

All Devon could do was grunt in reply. Perspiration dripped into his

eyes, stinging them, before splashing onto Andrea's upturned ass. For

Devon, it was pure bliss being able to see and feel Andrea's entire body

shake under his hard, insistent strokes as well as hearing her impassioned

pleas for more. Better still was the incredible feeling offered by

Andrea's overheated sheath as it continued to grip him convulsively,

bringing him closer to completion. A hard thrust, quickly followed by an

even harder thrust and Devon began the delicious task of filling Andrea

with his seed.

"Oh, God! Oh, yes! Do it!" Andrea's cries dwindled into incoherent

babble as her own orgasm caught up with her. With all the force she could

muster, Andrea clamped down on Devon's jerking cock, trapping him deep

inside until, finally, Devon grew soft enough to fall out of her velvet

embrace.

"Damn! You really know how to move furniture, don't you?" asked Andrea.

Equally exhausted, Devon replied, "Something moved, but I'll be damned

if I know what. You okay?"

"Hmm, never better. You wanna know something?"

"What's that?"

"I'm hungry."

"Well," Devon chuckled. "Moving furniture is hard work." Devon patted

Andrea's firm - and slightly moist - bottom before starting to rise and

dress.

"Devon? You mind if I ask you a question?"

"Ask away."

"You know what happened between me and Kendra, don't you?"

"I heard about it, yes."

"Then you know I've never done anything like that before."

"It's what I heard. Why does it concern you?"

"I can't say if 'concerned' is the word I would use to describe hw I

feel about it."

Devon paused in the middle of putting on a sock. "If you're not

concerned, then what's up here?"

"It bothers me how easily I gave in to Kenny, not to mention how much I

enjoyed it." Andrea shivered at the memory of Kendra's oral pleasures while

feeling her nipples harden.

"So? Kenny's a little hard to resist, if I must say so myself."

"It's just that I never thought I would enjoy having another woman doing

things to me. Then, to top things off, my mother walked in on us."

Devon raised an eyebrow. "Did she really? I didn't know..."

Andrea managed a little smile. "Oh, she most certainly did. Things got

a little ugly for a moment, but I think my mom understood what was going

on, especially after Kenny had her say about it all."

Devon could easily imagine the scene. Kenny's imperturbable calm

matched up against a shocked and, probably, outraged parent. "I'll bet it

was something to see."

"It was, believe me. Funny thing, though. My mother didn't really seem

to be all that upset. Concerned, yes. But not the raving lunatic I would

have expected." Andrea shrugged.

Completely dressed, Devon held out his hand to Andrea. "Come on, let's

go raid the fridge."

* * *

Allison Harrison's eyes widened in surprise when, upon opening the door,

she found Kendra waiting patiently. "Hello, Kendra! What brings you

here?"

"Hi, Mrs. Harrison," Kendra answered while laughing.

"What's so funny?" the older woman asked.

"Well, we're both 'Mrs. Harrison...'"

Allison beamed. "You're right - we are! Come on in!" She stepped back

to allow Kendra inside.

"I came by to pick up Andrea's things. She's going to be spending some

time with us."

"I see. She's decided to leave Dale after all, then." Allison sat down

wearily. "Tell me, Kendra - do you think she's making the right decision?"

"It doesn't matter what I think, Mrs. Harrison. What does matter is

what Andrea thinks." Kendra thought for a moment before continuing. "Do I

believe she's right? Well, I know if Adam were to treat me the same way

Dale does Andrea, I wouldn't stay with him."

"That's a fair answer, dear," Allison said. "Personally, she should

have left him a long time ago, but it wasn't for me to say."

The living room fell into a nervous silence. Kendra's gaze remained

fixed on the elder Mrs. Harrison, patiently waiting for the other woman to

do... whatever.

Without bothering to look up, Allison could feel Kendra's unusual eyes

on her. Just knowing the young woman was watching made Allison flush with

warmth. Allison knew she should show Kendra where Andrea's things were

being kept but, for some reason, she didn't want Kendra to stop looking at

her.

Not wanting to be rude or rush the other woman, Kendra's gaze flicked to

her watch, which wasn't missed by Allison. "I suppose we should get Andy's

things loaded up, huh?" Allison said, trying to keep a twinge of

disappointment from her voice.

"Whatever you say, Mrs. Harrison. I do have a doctor's appointment in

a couple of hours," Kendra answered, patting the growing bulge under her

maternity dress.

"One thing, Kendra. Please call me Allison or Mom, whichever you

prefer. There's no need for us to stand on formality - you're family now."

"Thank you... Allison." Kendra's wide smile seemed to make the room

brighter. "I'm right behind you!"

Once in Andrea's former bedroom, the two women set to the task of

collecting those things Andrea might need. They worked quickly and in

relative silence, speaking only to ask a question about this dress or which

pair of shoes. Fifteen minutes later, Andrea's belongings were neatly

packed and ready to go. Kendra picked up one of the smaller suitcases and

turned for the door.

"Kendra, would you mind if I asked you a very personal question?"

"No, not at all. As you said, we're family now and I've nothing to

hide." Kendra put the suitcase down and went to join Allison, who had taken

a seat on the edge of the bed. "Ask your question, please."

"Are you a lesbian?" Allison's question was right to the point, making

Kendra smile with approval.

"You're asking this because of what you saw here the other day." A

statement, not answering a question with a question.

"Yes. I must admit what I saw disturbed me a little and, frankly, I

wanted to know."

"Not wanting to insult you but, as you can see, I am happily bisexual,

if you must put a label on me," Kendra said, rubbing her swollen belly.

"And you're comfortable with this?" Allison asked, clearly embarrassed

at having overlooked the obvious.

"Allison, there's nothing for me to be uncomfortable about. I've been

this way since birth." Kendra sighed, unsure if she really answered

Allison's question. Finally, she said, "For me, it's all about loving and

being loved. I'm sorry, but it's the only way I can explain it."

Allison nodded, envying the younger woman's easy acceptance of who and

what she was. Absently, Allison said, "I don't think I've ever seen any

so... stimulating."

"Pardon?"

"You and Andy making love. I was shocked when I first saw the two of

you together but, after a few seconds, I realized I had never seen anything

so hot and exciting." Allison managed a wry smile before adding, "For a

moment, I found myself wishing it was me instead of Andy." Having made this

announcement, Allison suddenly felt as if a great weight had been removed

from her.

Kendra matched Allison's smile with one of her own. "It could have been

you - you needed only to ask," she said, causing Allison head to snap up in

surprise.

"Right. An old woman like me, wishing for something she could never

have. You're so sweet to say this."

"I'm not being patronizing, Allison. It could have easily been you

there being loved, if it was what you wanted."

Allison blinked in surprise at the sudden warmth spreading through her

body. "You can't be serious!"

"I'm always serious about these things, Allison - love is not to be

taken lightly."

"You are saying," Allison began - and hoping it was true - "if I asked

you to make love to me, you'd do it."

"Absolutely."

Allison chuckled. "I wouldn't know what to do. I've never had the

experience."

"You underestimate yourself. Besides, what's there to know? You just

let go of your feelings and bring them to the surface; love will take care

of the rest."

"You make it sound so easy," Allison said wistfully. "And so tempting."

Kendra reached over to take Allison's hands, not surprised to find them

trembling. To Kendra's experienced eye, she knew the older Mrs. Harrison

was ready to take the plunge, right here, right now. "It really is that

easy and, as far as tempting, well, would you like to find out?"

At Kendra's offer, Allison felt as if all the blood had drained from her

head to collect in the deepest reaches of her body. What had she gotten

herself into and why? The concerned mother in her had wanted to know the

answers to the questions asked but the woman in her had been jealous of her

daughter for having a chance to experience an intimacy she had only read

about. Allison could readily remember the look on Andrea's face as Kendra

eased orgasm after orgasm from her - the sheer pleasure and ecstasy clearly

taking her daughter to places unexplored.

And she wanted to know what Andrea knew.

"I'd like that, Kendra," Allison said, all the while wondering who had

uttered the words.

"Then let's explore the possibilities, shall we?" Kendra asked before

moving close and planting a kiss on Allison's cheek. "You wanted answers

and the only way to get them is to experience it for yourself."

Her voice a mere whisper, Allison said, "Yes..."

"Let's begin," Kendra whispered, her hands undoing the buttons on

Allison's sundress.

Part V, Chapter Eighteen

Allison's back arched, her whole body one gigantic spasm as yet another

orgasm rippled its way along her nerves, inflaming her soul. Each

practiced touch from Kendra sent Allison tumbling further out of control -

and not giving a flying fuck about it.

"Please... stop for a moment!" Kendra did as she was asked, absently

wiping the copious flow of juices from her face.

"Are you okay?"

"Yes. No. Shit, I don't even know! I need to know something before

you drive me insane!"

"What's that?"

"Can we do this together? I mean, it's not right for you to, shit, do

all the work."

"I don't mind, really," Kendra replied. "But, yes, we can do this

together, if you're ready to try it."

"Why the hell not," Allison replied, smiling at her own raunchiness.

"I've gone this far."

"Suit yourself," Kendra said, rising from her place between Allison's

quivering legs. Turning until her luscious bottom pointed in the right

direction, Kendra gently and slowly straddled Allison's face until she

could feel her hot, moist breath on her flesh. When Kendra knew her own

sex was within easy reach, she prepared to return to the task at hand,

spreading Allison's legs high and wide.

"Now where were we? Oh, yes - right about... here!" Kendra returned to

eating Allison with relish, not really caring whether the other woman

returned the favor or not - but knowing she would. Kendra wasn't

disappointed when she felt Allison's tentative first licks, her soft yet

raspy tongue teasing along the outer folds of her sex.

Deep inside of Allison, a jumble of emotions was taking place. To begin

with, there was the joy of making love; once her initial nervousness wore

off, Allison found it easy to settle into the sights, sounds, and smells of

sex. Well, almost easy. While the familiar sensations of being eaten were

working their way along Allison's nerve endings, it was the not-so-familiar

feelings which made what was happening less familiar than normal. Where

Roger's hands were rougher and stronger, the hands under her ass were

perhaps not as strong, but definitely softer. The tongue working between

the heated, slick folds of her pussy was more insistent yet gentler than

anything she'd ever experienced.

Allison laughed softly against the downy softness of Kendra muff.

Experience? What experience could she be thinking of? Allison had only

seen women making love in the tacky movies she and Roger watched when they

were years younger. But now she was living it, feeling Kendra's clitoris

sliding between her hungry lips.

The two women ate at each other - it was heady and wild - mother-in-law

and daughter-in-law, locked in the throes of primal passion. Kendra, with

practiced ease, brought Allison into orgasm after orgasm while Allison,

inexperienced at the ways of Sappho, tried to give as good as she was

getting.

At the moment, Allison's attention was focused on Kendra's anal opening,

flicking her tongue over the wrinkled opening. Reflex took hold as

Kendra's buttocks tightened in response, emboldening Allison to experiment

further. While her tongue busied itself in the wet confines of Kendra's

pussy, Allison slipped the tip of one finger into Kendra's ass, feeling the

younger woman respond by pushing against the invading digit until it was in

up to the second knuckle.

Pleased she had found something to give Kendra in return, Allison got

busy working her finger into Kendra's forbidden entrance. It didn't take

long before the other woman was thrashing against the dual stimulation and,

seconds later, Allison was rewarded with the hot gush of Kenny's release,

feeling Kenny's clit (Christ, it was big) pulsing and jerking with each

spurt of liquid.

Not to be outdone, Kendra lifted her head slightly and with a quick

stab, inserted her thumb into Allison ass and two fingers into her pussy.

The older woman stiffened at the assault, surprised at the suddenness of

the intrusion and knowing she was close to the edge.

"No..." Allison moaned. "Not yet, please! Make it last a little

longer!" It was hard fighting against the building pleasure wave as fingers

and tongue worked feverishly to accomplish their task.

"The time for waiting is over, Allison," Kendra said softly. "You have

to experience the love we have to offer you." Having said that, Kendra

launched into a vicious attack on Allison's vulnerable body and emotions,

letting the wave build then recede over and over, deriving her own pleasure

from the sounds of protest and pleasure streaming from her mother-in-law.

The wave crested inside Allison and this time she knew there would be no

stopping it. It hit her hard, washing over her tortured senses, searing

her nerves in white hot flames. Allison was dimly aware of an incredible

wetness between her splayed legs, just as she barely registered the obscene

sounds of slurping and sucking.

"Oh, my God... NO!" Allison screamed as the torrent of pleasure rushed

through her in all its forbidden glory. Nothing she and Roger ever did

together compared to this singular joy. Even in her emotional ruin,

Allison's mind frantically searched for some familiar ground to latch onto,

a vain effort to anchor what was left of her soul. In a moment which

seemed to last forever, Allison felt conflict explode inside of her,

momentarily feeling the guilt and shame of what was happening to her.

Women shouldn't do these things to each other - only a man can make a woman

feel this way! The attempt failed and Allison gave in to the ecstasy,

burning in the flames of lust.

* * *

Kendra moved away from Allison's sweating, writhing body, placing a

comforting hand on the older woman's exposed thigh. Some instinct was

telling her Allison was in distress despite being caught in the throes of

orgasm, so she sat and waited, her own body unwinding from the sexual

tension it had been exposed to.

After long minutes, Allison's brown eyes opened, her skin flushed a

dusky red hue and she shook her head attempting to clear the fuzziness.

Lips parted, Allison took a couple of deep breaths before sitting up, only

to feel the room start to spin.

"Lie back, Allison," Kendra said softly.

"I feel so strange," Allison muttered. "Like I've been drinking all

day."

Kendra smiled at the analogy. "That was a pretty strong orgasm - it'll

take a few minutes before you get it all together."

Allison did as she was told, immediately relieved when the spinning

stopped. Once her head cleared, Allison took stock of her condition.

Perspiration and other fluids soaked the sheets beneath her and, certainly,

her hair was a mess. Looking up and to her right a little, she saw

Kendra's pregnant and naked form, absently taking note of the more than

gentle swelling abdomen and the larger than usual breasts, filling with

milk for the yet-to-be-born infant. An intense feeling of guilt and shame

lowered itself onto Allison's thoughts, drowning out the pleasurable

feelings which now felt very distant. Tears welled up and flowed over

clenched eyelids as the realization took hold.

"My God, what have I done?" Allison sobbed.

"Nothing you didn't want to do, Allison."

Ignoring the words meant to comfort her, Allison continued. "What would

Roger think of me if he found out?"

Kendra placed a hand on Allison's thigh. "He'd think you are one sexy

lady. I know that's what I think." Kendra stood, looking for her discarded

clothing. Turning, she looked back at Allison and added, "That's what Adam

and Andrea would think, too."

At the mention of her children, Allison became a little more agitated.

"What are you trying to say, Kendra? That my own children would think I'm

sexy? That's sick."

"A while ago, you felt the same way about two women making love," Kendra

replied, watching with some satisfaction as Allison's face went beet red.

Still, she continued to protest, albeit weakly.

"That's different," Allison said, her face burning. "We're two

consenting adults and you're only related to me by marriage."

"So? What's your point?"

Allison turned toward Kendra, her eyes ablaze. "The point is it makes a

difference. I would never do something like this with one of my children."

"That's a shame - your children wouldn't - and don't - agree." Kendra

delivered the coup de grace without malice.

Allison was stunned at the implication. "What are you saying?"

"I think you know what I'm talking about."

"Adam and Andrea... no. That's not possible." Allison started to rise,

only to be gently pushed back to a sitting position.

"Please sit, Allison. There's something we have to talk about..."

Part VI, Chapter One

Allison didn't know how long she remained sitting on the bed in Andrea's

old room. Kendra had left... hours? ago, leaving Allison to ponder a

great many things.

The time had slipped by without notice as Allison alternated between

sobbing silently and crying hysterically. Where had she gone wrong? What

had she done to deserve to have these things dumped onto her life? Gone

were the euphoric feelings provided by Kendra a lifetime ago. Even through

the tears, Allison's body remembered the passionate heights she'd flown

with her daughter-in-law.

Unbidden, a smile broke through as Allison relived the moment just

before her climatic explosion carried her off, scattering her soul to the

four corners of the world. Such intensity! Such raw, vital passion! The

smile grew wider.

"I haven't been that wicked in years," she said aloud. At hearing her

own voice, the smile cracked and fell and was quickly replaced by a thought

so crystal clear and focused, the emotional turmoil shied back into a dark

corner of her mind.

"Yes," she quietly said to no one. "It was wicked and, my Lord, so very

much wrong!" Truth came into the room and sat on Allison's lap as she

realized just how much enjoyment and pleasure Kendra had given her, not to

mention her amateurish attempts to give back to that wonderful young woman.

"But what makes loving the best it can be?" Truth asked. "Could it be

the more wrong a thing is, the more enjoyable it is?"

Truth had a point Allison had to admit. She could easily remember all

those times when she and Roger would be making love in the parlor, hot and

heavy, afraid Roger's parents would come home and catch them, and not

really caring. Oh, and how about the time in the park? In broad daylight?

Allison's smile returned with the memory.

The human mind is a fabulous organ. So simple in its construction, so

complex in its workings, capable of taking seemingly unrelated items and

putting them all together into one neat package. Allison's mind was no

different; it delivered the goods right on time - and the revelation it

revealed caused her to abruptly stand.

"My God," she whispered. "It all makes sense! I think..."

"That's right, Allie," Truth said. "Nothing wrong with a girl getting

her fun, even if it was with another girl! Hey, who cares as long as you

had fun, right?" Looking into the dressing table mirror, Allison nodded to

herself.

"And," Truth continued, "It was hot and nasty and the kind of thing you

don't tell the girls over a hand of Bridge. And that's what you really

liked about it, huh?" Oh, Truth could be such a pain in the ass!

Truth was on a roll. "See, Allie, people are animals. Oh, a little

more evolved and all that, but an animal with basic needs just the same.

People, hon, like to do what feels good and the more it feels good, the

more they do it. And, to top it off, people really don't care who makes

them feel good."

It was really all coming together for Allison, as Truth finally went

quiet, leaving her to think it out. Society, such as it is, says women

making love to women was wrong. Still, as Allison learned, it felt good.

The mental picture of herself and Kendra faded to black, to be replaced by

the images of her son and daughter.

Some girl to girl stuff being one thing, incest was something entirely

different. The ultimate sin, mankind's greatest taboo - and her children

had broken it. A wave of despair flowed through Allison's soul, leaving

cold, ugly tendrils of guilt in its wake. Where had she and Roger gone

wrong? Sure, they knew such things happened and did everything they could

to make sure it never happened in their home. In her mind, Allison could

see Adam and Andrea as they played together, always hugging and touching,

showing their love for each other. The coldness was pushed back a little

as the warmth of the memory enveloped her.

Sure, they would fight - what brother and sister didn't? At the end,

they'd always "kiss and make up," renewing their bond - just as they were

taught. The damp, cold feeling intensified as Allison remembered vividly

the day she told them they could no longer bathe together.

* * *

"But, Mom! We have fun taking a bath together!" Andrea complained, her

features contorted in that way only kids can do.

"Yeah, except when she tries to push my head underwater," Adam griped.

"Oh, honey," Allison started, tucking each under an arm. "I know you

have fun. But, you're both getting bigger now."

"So?" Andrea said.

"So... big boys and girls don't take baths together."

"Why?" asked Adam, clearly not understanding.

"They just don't," Allison said firmly, putting an end to a very

difficult conversation and sending the children out to play. Once outside,

brother and sister took a moment to talk about what had just taken place.

"What was mom talking about?" Adam asked, kicking a loose stone across

the yard.

"I dunno," replied Andrea. "I hate it when she gets all weird like

that. Remember the day she stormed into my room?"

"When we were reading and fell asleep on your bed?"

"Yeah. She freaked out!"

Adam's face darkened as he remember the savage tongue-lashing his mother
had laid on them. He couldn't remember ever seeing his mother so angry

before! Well, not since the time he painted the cat Day-Glo orange,

anyway.

"Andrea? Do you think that had something to do with what she said?"

"I dunno, Squirt. mom has been acting strange lately, just like Daddy."

"What do you mean?"

Andrea sat in the tree swing her father had put up two summers ago.

"Well, remember he use to give me a big hug and kiss every time he came

home from work?"

"Yeah," Adam replied. "You always griped about his moustache tickling

you."

"Well, he doesn't do it any more. As a matter of fact, he hardly even

talks to me like he used to."

"I wonder why?" Adam asked, his young mind unable to understand their

parents' behavior.

"I wish I knew," was all Andrea could say.

* * *

"You knew why, didn't you Allie old girl?" Truth was back and whispering

seductively in the recesses of her soul. "You knew but were afraid to tell

the truth. Didn't want them to know about the dirty deed. Didn't want

them experimenting with each other, did you?"

Oh, yes - Allison knew and her mind showed her the error of her ways.

Kendra had been right when she told Allison of the mistake made with the

siblings. In her mind, a glowing, naked (and pregnant) Kendra sat down

next to Truth.

"You and your husband taught them to love each other, to share with each

other. Then, before they would naturally take the next step, you turned

around and told them it was wrong for them to do so - even though they had

done nothing." Truth nodded in agreement, smiling.

"So, to keep them from finding out, you kept them apart as much as you

could. And, to make sure neither of you got any ideas, you and Roger began

to put distance between yourself and them." Truth was nodding so

vigorously, it's head would have fallen off - if it had one.

"When was the last time you hugged or kissed them? No, I don't mean one

of those motherly pecks on the cheek, either. Hugged or kissed them as you

did when they were babies, when you loved them with all your heart?"

Allison could feel the tears welling in her eyes as she replayed her answer

to Kendra's "accusations."

"But, I do love them!" she had protested. "I'd give my life for them,

then and now."

"Yes, you would," Kendra had answered. "Still, you and Roger prevented

them from discovering the depth of their love for each other - and you

never told them why."

"I thought we were doing the right thing," was Allison's somewhat lame

reply. "Incest, well, it just isn't done. That happens in homes where

parents just don't care what their children do."

"Does it?" Kendra had asked. "I think you know better."

Part VI, Chapter Two

Allison's introspective view was dispelled as her husband stuck his head

into the near empty room.

"Allie," Roger said, stepping into the room. "What are you doing in

here? Didn't you hear me calling you when I came in?"

"No," Allison replied, shaking her head. "I didn't. I guess my mind

was a million miles away."

"Hmpf - I'd say it was," Roger grumbled, taking a moment to look around

the room. "Hey, what happened to Andy's stuff?"

Allison looked around the room, as if she'd never been in it before

answering. "Oh. Kendra was here a little while ago to pick it up."

Allison stepped around her befuddled husband into the hallway, who darted

out of the door right behind her.

"Pick it up? For what? Allison!?"

Allison continued to ignore Roger, descending the stairs and entering

the living room, stopping before the large family portrait taken a year

ago.

"Woman, will you answer me? What the hell is going on around here? Why

are Andrea's things gone - and why did Kendra pick them up?"

"Roger," Allison said, sighing. "She's staying with Kendra and her

brother."

"What the hell for?" Roger Harrison could feel his blood pressure

increasing.

"She's decided to leave Dale. Doesn't make sense to go home to a man
you don't love anymore, does it?" Allison was surprised at how calm she'd

become during the last few moments.

"I know that, Allie!" Roger could barely contain his anger. "What's

wrong with her staying with us?"

Allison turned to face her husband. "Obviously, she didn't want to,

Grumpy. Besides, she needs to be around people her own age, not two old
fuddy-duddies like us. She's a grown woman and can make up her mind about

where she lives and who she lives with."

"But you know how I feel about... those people." Roger's voice was low

and dangerous, his mood darkening.

Allison's own temper flared. "Who cares if you like them or not, Roger?

Huh? I mean, who gives a fuck who you like or don't like? Can't you get

it through your thick skull? You don't have to like them; as long as Adam

and Andrea likes them and they're happy, it's the only thing which

matters."

Roger was taken aback at his wife's outburst; as it happened, he also

remembered the last time he'd ever seen her this pissed off - the day she

found Adam and Andrea cuddled up and asleep in Andrea's bed. Then there

was the deal with the cat... Macho pride took over as Roger picked his jaw

up.

"Yeah? And how do you know they'll be happy?"

Once again calm - and not knowing where it came from, Allison looked

into her husband's eyes. "Trust me, I know. I just know. Call it a

mother's instinct. What do you want for dinner?" Allison turned and headed

for the kitchen.

"Women!" Roger grumbled, plopping down in his favorite chair and making

a vow to find out just what was going on in the Williams household. With

God as his witness, Roger Hamilton Harrison will find out!

Part VI, Chapter Three

Unknown to Roger, he wasn't the only father wanting to know what was

going on. Lorne paced the spacious living room of his hillside retreat.

In various states of repose, the entire Williams family, along with Andrea,

watched at the elderly doctor and inventor walked a groove in the plush

carpeting. Halfway across the room, he stopped and turned to look at Devon

before shaking his head and continuing his pacing.

Devon, for his part, knew his father was doing everything he could not

to explode at this latest turn of events. Still, he sat calmly - or as

about as calm as any son could knowing his father was pissed at him - and

waited for him to speak his mind.

Beside him, Andrea leaned over and whispered, "He's pissed, isn't he?"

Devon nodded, not taking his eyes off of Lorne.

"It's because of me, isn't it?" Another nod.

Sitting on the sofa, Ellie turned to speak to her mother, nodding at

Andrea and Devon. "They look good together, don't they?"

Etienne took a final glance at her father before turning to her

daughter. "They do at that, Ellie. How do you feel about it?"

Ellie shrugged. "How do I feel? I'm not jealous or anything, if that's

what you mean. Hey, I'm happy for them; Lord knows Andrea needs someone in

her life who can make her happy." Parked on the floor in front of the sofa,

Kendra, Adam and Kymber eavesdropped on the conversation taking place above

them.

"But, Mom," Adam began, still having a little trouble calling Ellie

"mom", especially after having made love to her. "It's been you and Dad

for, what, your entire life? How can you be happy to see him spending time

with my sister?"

"Why not?" quipped Ellie, smiling lustily at her son-in-law.

"Indeed. I'd like to hear this myself." Lorne had stopped his pacing,

his voice breaking up the discussions, commanding their attention. Seeing

he had them, he continued.

"Devon, I'd like to know why Andrea is here with us."

Stupidly, and caught a little by surprise, Devon answered. "Because she

wants to?" That drew a frosty look from his father.

"Very funny, Devon - you know what I mean."

"Yes, sir, I do; I'm sorry. I simply agreed with Kendra when she said

Andrea needed our help. And, might I point out I'm not responsible for her

finding out about the family?" Devon made it a point to look at his

daughter who, in turn, was examining the ceiling for some reason or

another.

"You're right, son. Well, Kenny? Let's hear it."

All eyes were on Kendra as she responded to her grandfather. "She

needed love, I gave it to her. She wanted to know why Adam and I are so

happy with each other, so I told her."

"Not that I believe Andrea would broadcast her knowledge, but why did

you feel it necessary to involve her like this?"

"She's family, my sister-in-law. For that reason alone, I love her,

just as I love her brother." Straightening, Kendra held her head high; not

in defiance, but with the confidence bred into her.

"I remember someone telling me a long time ago that it's all about the

family, love and happiness. They also told me it is our place in life to

bring happiness to those of us; without it, love cannot grow, cannot be

strong. I wonder who told me this?"

Lorne nodded as Kendra's point scored. "We've all told you this at one

time or another, as you well know. Still, I'd like to know why."

Kendra looked across the room to where Andrea and Devon sat hanging on

her every word. "Because it was the right thing to do, it was what I was

born to do. I am the result of the love you and Grandmother discovered all

those years ago. You loved me, loved my parents and I am bound by this

love to spread it to those whom I love."

"This is so," said Kymber. "Lorne, darling, you didn't seem to have

much of a problem when it was my time to join the family. I pray you're

not saying it was okay for you to do it then and wrong for Kendra to do it

now."

Lorne emphatically shook his head. "No, I'm not saying that at all; I

think you all understand this. It's just a matter of us being, well, safe

from those who can't understand the way we are. Take their parents, for

example."

"What about them?" asked Adam.

"They come from a different school of thought, Adam," answered Lorne.

"Were they to discover what their children have gotten themselves into,

indeed, what they've done with each other, how do you think they'd feel

about them and us?"

"Does it matter?" asked Kendra, all the while knowing it did.

"Of course it does!" exclaimed Lorne. "Do you have any idea what could

happen?"

"As a matter of fact, I do," said Kendra; around the room, heads turned

as everyone present suddenly got the impression things were about to get

even more interesting.

"Kenny, honey?" asked Ellie. "What did you do? Better yet, who did you

do it to this time?"

"Oh, my God," breathed Andrea. "Not my father! Please, God, not him!"

"Relax, Andrea; your father knows nothing about any of this."

"My mother. You got to my mother, didn't you?" Adam said, his voice

filled with a mixture of awe and flat-out astonishment. "That's what took

you so long in getting back to the house!"

"Oh, shit," Andrea exclaimed, realization dawning.

Kendra shrugged, not feeling in the least bit guilty. "She, too, wanted

to know. After all, it wasn't so long ago she caught me and Andrea

together."

Devon turned and looked at Andrea. "That would explain why your mother
didn't have a stroke. Remember? You told me she didn't really seem to be

upset about it."

"Yeah, it fits, doesn't it," Andrea offered. "Mom was turned on by what

she stumbled onto. Then, when Kenny went for my things, I'll bet mom
cornered her and asked for an explanation."

"I think it's safe to say she found Kendra's answer a bit more than she

expected," Etienne stated.

Lorne raised his hand, taking back the floor. "Well, this does make

thing rather interesting, doesn't it? Allison wanted to know and, true to

your nature, you showed and told her. Everything."

"What else was I supposed to do? Ignore her? Act as if it never

happened? Look, she's family, just like Adam, just like Kymber, just like

Andrea. We've always lived by the rule that with the family, nothing is

held in secret. We share everything; not only our bodies and our love, but

also the truth."

Truth, fresh from his trip through Allison's soul, nodded in agreement

with Kendra, taking a seat in the center of the room.

"You understand Allison will be paying us a visit, don't you?" asked

Ellie.

"I expect so, Mom."

"You also understand she's going to be asking a lot of questions we'll

have to answer?"

"Yes, Mother."

"Then you also understand once she finds out about these two," Ellie

said while nodding at Adam and Andrea, "She'll find out about everyone."

"I understand this as well. However, I'll ask again; if she's family,

does it matter?"

"I am going to hope it doesn't," Lorne said solemnly. "For all of our

sakes. Kendra, despite all your good intentions, you may have jeopardized

our existence."

"I understand, Grandfather - but I don't think so."

"I hope to God you're right, child."

Part VI, Chapter Four

"What the hell am I doing here?" Allison asked herself, just seconds

after ringing the doorbell. "I should be at the supermarket, not checking

up on my children." Twenty minutes earlier, Allison was in the car, headed

for the store to pick up a few items for dinner.

Instead, she found herself standing in front of the place where her

children lived, ringing the doorbell. She looked around the expansive

area, noticing how well-kept the land was and noting how right Adam was

when he said there was plenty of room for everyone. Turning to her right,

Allison could see a larger house nestled into the hillside on the other

side of the lake. Memory kicked in and Allison remembered Kendra

mentioning her grandparents' home overlooked the lake.

Breaking the enchantment of the beauty surrounding her, Allison began to

lose her nerve and moved to step away from the door when it opened.

Caught, Allison turned to find Andrea standing in the open doorway.

"Mother? What are you doing here?"

With bravado she didn't feel, Allison looked into Andrea's eyes. "What?

Can't I just drop in to visit my own children? I know I didn't call, but I

just happened to be in the area - I was on my way to the market."

Andrea stepped aside to admit her mother, puzzled. "Oh, don't be silly,

Mom. Of course you can! We just didn't expect you." Not this early

anyway, Andrea silently added as she took her mother's coat and hung it in

a nearby closet. "Come in, make yourself comfortable."

Allison stepped from the foyer into the tastefully decorated living

room, her practiced eye noting how everything was well coordinated in

design and color. Nothing flashy - just fine examples of good, if not a

little expensive, taste.

"This is a lovely home, Andy," Allison said, sitting on one end of

sectional sofa. "Must have cost them a pretty penny.

"I suppose it did," Andrea replied taking a seat a couple of sections

down. "I never bothered to ask Devon how much all of this cost."

"His father is a famous doctor and inventor." Allison took in more of

the room, especially the large picture window overlooking - what else? -

the lake.

"I don't know how much it cost, but I do know Devon paid for this

himself, without his parent's help."

Allison blinked. "He did? What does he do for a living?"

"Research, like his father. Some bioengineering stuff," Andrea

commented, all the while wondering when her mother was going to get to the

real point of her visit.

"Hmm."

"Would you like something to drink, Mom? Coffee? Juice?"

"Some juice would be fine, thanks." Allison watched as her daughter
disappeared around a corner with some very confused emotions. For probably

the first real time in her life, Allison was looking at her child as the

beautiful woman she'd become. Allison felt a rush of warmth; if mother and

daughter never had anything in common, they did now. Both had been loved

by the same woman.

Allison took a deep breath, hoping to chase away the feelings creeping

up her spine, mildly surprised to now find herself thinking of Andrea in

sexual terms. "That's not why you're here," she admonished herself. Right

on time, too, because Andrea was returning with a glass of juice, which

Allison accepted gratefully.

As her mother took a sip of the juice, Andrea was beside herself,

anxious to learn the reason for her mother's visit. After Allison had put

the glass onto the coaster, Andrea finally spoke up. "Mom?"

"Yes, baby?"

"Would you like to see the rest of the house?" Inside, Andrea slapped

herself - this wasn't what she had wanted to ask!

"Some other time, Andy. Listen, there's something we need to talk

about. Is Adam here?"

"I think so; let me check." Andrea did all she could not to run to the

intercom system. Reaching the unit, she looked at the labels for a moment

before pressing one. She was rewarded with a soft tone.

"Yes? Is that you Andy?" Kendra's voice sounded far away coming through

the tiny speaker.

"Yep. Listen, is Adam there? My mother wants to talk to him."

"Oh, is she on the phone?"

"Not exactly. She here, in the house." Andrea could imagine the looks

being exchanged on the other end of the intercom, barely containing her

amusement.

Adam's voice floated through the wiring. "Mom? I'll be there in a few

minutes."

Allison had joined her daughter at the intercom. "Have to get dressed?"

she teased, surprising the hell out of Andrea.

"No! We're not where you are - our place is behind this one and it'll

take me a few minutes to walk up the hill. See you in a few!" The

connection was broken with an audible click.

"Their place?" Allison asked. "I thought they stayed here."

Andrea didn't answer. Instead, she guided her mother through the dining

room and into kitchen, pointing to a medium-sized structure about a hundred

yards or so in the distance. From there, she could see someone walking up

the hill. "There's where they stay - wedding present from Devon and his

parents."

"I'm impressed!" Allison admitted. The building Adam had emerged from

was just the right size for a new or small family. Like the rest of the

things she'd seen, it didn't appear to be overdone or outlandish.

Andrea sat at the kitchen table, unable to contain herself. Taking a

deep breath, she looked up at her mother. "Mom, what do you want to talk

to us about? Is Dad okay?"

Allison turned to look at Andrea. "Your father is his usual grouchy

self, but he's fine."

"Then, what..."

"All in good time. Your brother's almost here."

On cue, the patio door slid open; Andrea watched her brother step

through and close the door behind him. He stood for a moment, taking in

the scene, trying to keep any worry from showing on his face.

"Hey, Andy, Mom. Is Dad okay?" Adam asked, going to his mother and

placing a kiss on her cheek.

Allison smiled, suddenly feeling warm while embracing her son. "Like I

told your sister, your father's okay. No, I'm here for another reason."

"And what might that be?" Adam asked, taking a seat opposite his sister
at the table.

Allison also sat, positioning herself so she could see both of her

children, taking a few extra seconds to compose herself. Suddenly, with

the two of them present, this wasn't going to be as easy as she originally

thought. Finally, she spoke, breaking the silence while easing the tension

in the sunlit room.

"Did you get everything you needed?"

Andrea swallowed. "Most of it. What things I didn't get I'll pick up

in a few days, after Dale leaves for Norfolk."

"I take it you've told him about your, ah, plans?"

"Yes, and, needless to say, he didn't take it very well."

"To say it was ugly was an understatement," added Adam.

Allison sighed. The moment of truth was fast approaching. "I see.

Well, you know you can count on me and your father if he gives you any

problems."

"Thanks, Mom. I filed the divorce petition yesterday; Devon's lawyer

says he'll have this settled in no time."

Out of patience, Adam changed the course of the conversation. "Okay,

Mom. Now that we've got the small talk out of the way, you wanna tell us

what's really on your mind?"

"You know, don't you? About what's been going on." Andrea said, taking

the plunge.

"I know what I've been told," Allison said gratefully. "Is it true?"

Brother and sister looked at each other nervously.

"No point in lying about it," Adam said quietly, reading the acceptance

in Andrea's eyes. "Yes, it's true."

"You fucked your sister," Allison said, more statement than question.

Allison felt a peculiar thrill racing through her.

"Yes, we've made love to each other. I guess you'll want to know why."

Allison relaxed a little. "Actually, the 'why' is easy to figure out. I

mean, you're both young and all that."

"I don't understand..." began Andrea, only to be silenced by a gesture

from her mother.

"I wanted to know a few things. One, if what Kendra told me was true

about the two of you and, two, if what she told me about this whole family
was true. Then, I wanted to know how you two felt about it."

"It's a hard thing to deal with, Mom," Adam said. "On the one hand, it

feels so wrong because it goes against everything you and Dad ever taught

us. Then again, it makes all the sense in the world. I just don't have

the words to explain it." Beside him, Andrea nodded in agreement.

Allison nodded as well. "Kendra did a very good job of explaining it to

me."

"I'll bet," said Andrea.

"Meaning what?" Allison could feel a trickle of perspiration run down

her back.

"Let's not play games, Mother," Andrea said, grinning. "I'll bet

anything she explained it to you the same way she explained it to me."

Allison flushed a deep crimson "I have to admit I've never been, well,

loved like that before."

"It was really something, wasn't it?" Andrea asked, feeling the bond

between them connecting.

"Like nothing I've ever experienced before in my life," admitted

Allison, feeling an exciting twinge in her crotch.

"Kenny does have that 'something' about her, doesn't she?" chimed in

Adam.

"She does, at that." At the table, heads turned in surprise at the new

voice which had entered the conversation. Three pairs of astonished eyes

took in the sight of Lorne standing in the entrance to the kitchen.

"Sorry to just walk in on you like this, but I was looking for Devon and

Ellie. Mrs. Harrison, it's good to see you again." Lorne took a seat at

the table, folding his hands.

"You can call me Allison if I can call you Lorne," Allison said

smoothly, even though her heart was pounding in her chest.

"Deal. I couldn't help but overhear your conversation." Lorne looked

expectantly at each of them.

"From what I've been told, you're a bit of a godhead around here."

Lorne smiled. "I wouldn't go that far."

Allison turned to face Lorne, looking into his deep brown eyes.

"Perhaps, but you are held in very high esteem by those around you."

"I love my family, Allison and they love me."

"No doubt," Allison agreed. "Still, what you do with your family is

your business; including my children in this is something else."

"I'm sure you know they made the choice freely," Lorne responded,

unruffled by the accusatory tone of Allison's voice.

"So I've been made to understand. How do you expect me to deal with

this? Hell, we're not even going to talk about what could happen if Roger

found out about any of this."

"As with everything in life, it's a risk we're all willing to take,"

Lorne said, shrugging his broad shoulders as if the consequences didn't

exist.

"You state the obvious, sir. This... situation has some far reaching

implications, as I'm sure you know."

"We live with them every day. As long as we remain together, as a

family, we can survive. We will survive."

"May I ask you a question?"

"Certainly."

"Do you have a problem with my children being involved in all of this?"

"Yes and no. Yes because it is more of a risk to them than to us. In

essence, we've asked them to take everything they ever learned about loving

and sexuality and through it all away. Please keep in mind, this by no

means is meant to disrespect you or your husband."

Allison dismissed Lorne's disclaimer with a wave of her hand. "I

understand this. So, why don't you have a problem with it?"

Lorne stood, holding up a long finger. "Just a moment, before I

answer." Crossing to the refrigerator, he withdrew a pitcher of the juice

Allison had been drinking, placing it on the table before going to the

cabinet and taking our some glasses. After pouring everyone some

refreshment, he took his seat, savoring the cool tanginess of the juice.

"Sorry, folks - got a little thirsty. Okay, why I don't disagree.

Allison, you've sampled our version of being loved; what did you think

about it?"

Allison blushed hotly. "It was intense and soothing all at once. As

the kids used to say, it was a rush."

Lorne nodded. "Then you know why I don't object; everyone should

experience that kind of love. Not just for the sex, mind you." Allison's

eyes flew open at Lorne's words.

"That's it!" she exclaimed. "It just wasn't about getting laid - it was

the way I felt with Kendra." Turning to her children, she added, "It's the

way you feel with each other."

"Mom, I never realized how much I love Adam until the night we made

love. Yeah, I'll admit I was horny as hell, but it was more than that."

"Mom, I was inside of Andrea and had never been so close to her," Adam

said, swallowing a lump which had magically appeared in his throat. "It

wasn't just because we were making love; it was like we made a long overdue

connection with each other."

Allison turned once again to look at the author of all this love and

happiness, tears now flowing freely and unashamedly. "I think I understand

now. I have only one question for all of you."

"What's that, Mom?" Andrea and Adam asked in unison.

"Where do I sign up?"

"Mom," Adam said quietly. "I think I speak for everyone here when I ask

if you're sure you want to involve yourself in this."

"Why wouldn't I be sure?" Allison was clearly puzzled. "I'm old enough

to make up my own mind!"

"I don't think that's what Adam is asking, Allison," Lorne said.

"You're right, Lorne. Mom, do you understand this kind of loving makes

you, um, fair game for all of us? I mean, you could wind up making love

with anyone. Even me."

Allison did, indeed, understand this. In fact, she was already looking

forward to it. "I know."

"Why, Mom?" This from Andrea. "You've got Dad..."

"For the same reasons why you are in this, Andy. I had a chance to

experience love on a level I've never known before. I've never felt so

alive before in my life! I still love your father, but I want to share the

love and happiness you've found with Lorne and his family. Maybe I want to

make up for not letting you two do what would have happened naturally. I

don't know!" Allison's frustration was beginning to show.

"All I know is I want to be a part of this, if you'll allow me to."

Allison looked to Lorne for... what? Approval? Understanding?

"It's not up to me, Allison. It is up to your children to decide.

Adam, would you tell Devon to call me when he returns?" Lorne stood,

stretching. To Allison, he said, "Whether you join us or not, I'm glad we

had this chance to talk." With that, he left Allison alone with her

children and, he suspected, some major decisions.

"So now what?" Adam asked, watching his wife's grandfather leave.

"Yeah, Mom. What do we do now?"

What indeed?

Part VI, Chapter Five

Lorne stood before the large bay window that overlooked the lake, his

mind troubled. The fading sunlight glinted off metal for an instance as a

car traveled down the tree-lined drive on the far side of the lake.

Nodding to himself, Lorne felt some of the pressure lift from his thoughts

as he recognized Allison Harrison's car as it turned into the flow of

traffic on the main road.

Once the car was out of sight, Lorne once again turned his eyes to the

sprawling land before him. Even though he'd seen this sight for years, it

never failed to fill him with a sense of awe. Taking a moment, Lorne

thought about his humble beginnings and how his work at Carlton was

catapulted him to this level of living. Sure enough, his inventions had

made him millions, enabling him to buy Carlton Pharmaceuticals, which

continued to do well under his brilliant, innovative guidance.

Then there was his family. Despite all the fame and riches, nothing

could replace the wealth a loving family such as his could provide.

Etienne was a constant fixture in his life, as was Kymber. Between them

they had given birth to a legacy of love beyond anything they could have

hoped for - hence the reason for his reflective mood.

Turning away from the window, Lorne crossed the room, instinct guiding

him to his favorite place to think. The plush recliner molded itself to

his contours as Lorne continued to ponder this latest event in their lives.

"What do you suppose he's thinking about?"

Etienne cast a glance at Kymber, who stood beside her before looking

back at her father.

"I don't know," replied Eti, slowing shaking her head. "I can't begin

to guess. You have any thoughts?"

Kymber took a moment to swipe a stray lock of red and silver hair from

her forehead before shrugging. "Damned if I know. I can't remember ever

seeing him this pensive before." Etienne nodded agreement.

"Come on - let's find out what's on his mind." Eti led the way into the

family room, Kymber right behind her. As they approached, Etienne took a

very close look at her father, her only true love, noting how the years

were starting to catch up to him. thick hair, once coal black, had given

way to thinning gray while his neatly trimmed beard and moustache was shot

through with more gray than black these day. Still, she noted, his eyes

hadn't lost their fire, even though they now reflected some inner turmoil.

"Whatever the problem is, it can't be as bad as you may think," Eti said

quietly.

Startled, Lorne looked up. "What? Oh, hi."

"Hi yourself, dearest," said Kymber sitting on one arm of the recliner

while Eti perched on the other. "What's on your mind?"

Lorne looked from wife to daughter before answering. "I think we've got

a big problem."

The announcement was delivered in Lorne's usual calm manner; however,

the effect it had on the women was anything but calm.

"Problem? What problem?" asked Eti, suddenly focused.

"Come on, out with it!" Kymber urged, no less focused than her

step-daughter.

Lorne took a deep breath. "I just came from Devon's. Guess who I found

there?" Both women exchanged baffled looks.

"Okay, Dad. We'll play your little game. Who did you find at Devon's?"

Eti asked, clearly in no mood to play word games.

"Allison Harrison."

Kymber's face reflected her confusion, frowning so hard her eyebrows

almost came together. "So?" she asked. "Her children live there, right?

So why wouldn't she stop by to see them?"

Lorne looked up at his wife, shaking his head. "You don't understand,"

he said.

"No kidding?" Eti said sarcastically. "Why don't you enlighten us?"

Lorne cast a stony glance at his still very lovely daughter.

"What you don't understand," he started, adjusting himself in the chair,

"Is what she was talking about with her children when I walked in." Looking

up at Kymber and Etienne, Lorne's voice dropped to a near whisper. "She

knows about us... all of us."

Etienne could feel the jolt of surprise run down her spine; Kymber's

emerald green eyes widened.

"Oh, shit," Kymber exclaimed, breaking the moment of silence which had

pervaded the room. "Let me guess - Kendra." Lorne's exasperated look

provided the answer.

"Before we get all bent out of shape, let me ask you something, Dad,"

Eti said, taming the rush of panic threatening to take over.

"Go ahead."

"I assume she's going to spill the beans, right?"

"Worse than that, I'm afraid," Lorne replied.

"I don't get it," Kymber confessed. "If she's not going to go to the

authorities, then how..." Kymber's voice trailed off.

"Dad, you don't mean...?"

"Allison wants to be a part of this," Lorne said, ending the verbal

stalemate.

Etienne rolled her eyes, letting out an explosive puff of breath. "You

know," she started, getting up from the chair's arm and going over to the

sofa. "If Kenny was still a little girl, I'd say she deserves a spanking."

Kymber still didn't get it - and said so. "So she wants to be loved

like the rest of us. What's the big deal?" Before Lorne could answer, Eti

provided the answer.

"Roger Harrison. Sooner or later, the man is going to get very

suspicious when his wife starts spending more time over here and will want

to know why."

If Kymber didn't understand the implications before, she did now. "Oh,

fuck..."

"Exactly," Lorne said, relieved they were all on the same page. "He may

be a good man and all that, but if he ever finds out what's going on around

here, things are going to get interesting."

"Has anyone ever told you that you've got a great knack for

understatement?" Kymber smiled wryly. "'Interesting' is hardly the word

I'd use."

* * *

Half a county away, Roger Harrison was pacing between the living room

and kitchen, wondering what was keeping Allison so long. Frustration

dogged his every step.

"Send the woman to the store after a few things and she takes forever,"

he grumbled to himself, once more going to the front door and peering

outside for any signs of Allison's car.

"Damn it!" Roger slammed the door in frustration, his pulse pounding in

his temples. "Where the fuck is she?" Any further outbreaks were suspended

as Roger heard the sound of a car approaching. Racing back to the door, he

flung it open just as Allison pulled into the driveway. Seething with

anger, Roger waited until the garage door began to open before slamming the

front door closed, stomping off to the garage. Allison was already out of

the car, getting bags out of the trunk by the time he arrived.

"It's about time you got back!" Roger's angry voice exploded in the

enclosed space, startling Allison into dropping a bag, breaking something.

"Jesus, Roger!" Allison exclaimed. "Look at what you made me do!"

"To hell with that! Where have you been? I though you were just going

to the market!"

"As you can see," Allison said dryly, carefully picking up the dropped

bag, "I did go to the store."

"For two hours?" Roger was incredulous. "It couldn't have been that

crowded!"

"It wasn't," Allison said, pushing her way past her husband. God, she

hated him when he got like this!

Roger followed his wife into the kitchen, determined to get to the

bottom of this. "If the place wasn't crowded, what took you so fucking

long?"

Allison had enough of the verbal abuse. Slamming the bags down onto the

counter, she turned on Roger so fast he took a step backwards. "If you

have to know," she started, her own anger flaring, "I went to see Adam and

Andrea. Satisfied?"

Roger blinked at the rebuke. "You went over there?" he asked, spitting

out the words as if they had a bad taste. "What the hell for? You know I

don't like that Devon and his family!"

"I don't give a fuck what you like, Roger. I wanted to see my children,

so I went to see them. You don't like it? Too fucking bad. Get out of my

way."

"You're not going anywhere, woman. Not until you tell me why you felt

it necessary to go over there."

"Weren't you listening? No, I can see you weren't - as usual." Allison

moved to her right, almost making it past Roger before he grabbed her arm.

"Look," he said. "I'm sorry, Allie. I didn't mean to bite your head

off, but I don't like not knowing where you are. And I really don't like

you going over there - those people are up to something and they've

involved our children."

Allison's mood softened at the attempted apology; still, the battle had

been joined. "Our children are there because they want to be - and they

are quite happy. Besides," Allison said, wriggling out of his grasp.

"What do you care?"

"They're my children, too," Roger said lamely. "I have the right to be

worried about them."

"Then perhaps you should go over there and see them," Allison said. "Or

pick up the phone and invite them over. Or write them a letter."

"Never!" Roger's response made him sound like a spoiled brat.

"And, while I'm at it, if you didn't like Kendra's family, why didn't

you object to Kendra and Adam getting married? You had the opportunity to

voice your opinion - and you didn't."

Roger answered his wife with silence as she walked away, disappearing

into the garage. As she returned with the last of the groceries, Roger was

still standing in the same place, with the same dumb look on his face. In

that moment, Allison realized she didn't know who he was any longer.

"The kids have invited me to spend the weekend with them."

"What?"

"You heard me, Roger."

"Well, it's a good thing you told them no."

Allison's head snapped around so fast she almost gave herself whiplash.

"What makes you think I told them no?"

"You did, didn't you?"

"I most certainly did not. I'm going."

"Like hell you are!"

It was Allison's turn to take several steps backwards as Roger

approached, his glare savage and menacing. For a moment, Allison thought

Roger would actually hit her, something he never did. Still, she held her

ground.

"Like hell I am," came her defiant reply. Roger stuck a shaking index

finger between them, making Allison blink.

"You go over there, don't think about coming back here! If you are

going to have dealings with that family, I don't want anything to do with

you! Ever!"

Allison shuddered - but not because of Roger's threat. A cool, blanket

of calm descended upon Allison, deflecting the heat of her husband's anger.

"What do you have against these people, Roger? They've done nothing to

you."

Roger was, as they used to say back in the day, "feeling his Cheerios"

as he began pacing the room frantically. "What to I have against them?

They think they're all high and mighty! They look down on us, throwing

their wealth into our faces like we're garbage!"

"Where in the name of God did you get an idea like that?" Allison

couldn't believe what she was hearing.

"Would they let me pay for the wedding? No! They as much said I

couldn't afford it!"

"They said no such thing, honey," Allison said in her best soothing

voice. "Besides, it's tradition for the bride's family to pay for the

wedding."

"Fuck tradition!" Roger spat, his eyes wild and out of focus. "They

just wanted to make us look like fools!"

Tired of trying to reason with him, Allison left Roger standing in the

middle of the room, cursing and raving like a lunatic. Going upstairs to

the bedroom they'd shared for so many years, Allison began to pack. Even

with the distance between them, she could still hear him carrying on.

Crossing to her dressing table, Allison caught a glimpse of her reflection

in the mirror as she selected the items needed for the weekend. And came

to a decision.

"Why just make it for the weekend?" Reason asked her. "You heard what

he said - you go, you stay. Why come back?"

"Right or wrong, he's still my husband," she said to herself. "My place

is with him, for better or worse." A loud crash came from the downstairs

area, followed by the sound of something breaking.

"Then again," Allison muttered, "It might be safer if I give him some

time to cool off."

"Good answer," agreed Reason.

* * *

A half hour later, Allison was all packed and ready to go, her bags

resting at her feet, ready for loading in the back of her car. Roger's

rage continued; the dining room and most of the living room was in

shambles. Looking at the carnage, Allison found her troubled man sitting at

what was left of the wet bar, a glass of something in his trembling hands.

"You decided to go didn't you, bitch?"

"Yes. You need some time to get your head screwed on right." She looked

around the wrecked memories of her life with Roger. "And, I don't think

it's safe for me to stay here."

"Whatever." Roger belted back his drink, feeling the alcohol burn his

throat raw. "You just remember what I said - don't come back." Roger

looked up sharply at his wife, hurling the crystal tumbler in her

direction.

"Go ahead, bitch! Go running off to those rich, snotty bastards! I

don't need you! Get the fuck out!"

Allison barely dodged the glass, which missed her head by mere inches,

shattering against the wall behind her and showering her with a spray of

lead crystal. Tears sprung to her eyes, unable to figure out what had gone

wrong with Roger's mind.

Opening her mouth to say goodbye, Allison thought better of it - Roger's

aim might improve. Without a glance back, Allison loaded her bags quickly

and started the car. As she waited for the garage door to open, she could

hear Roger screaming at the top of his lungs, rending her heart into little

pieces. For a moment, she sat there, some instinct telling her to go to

him, to calm his anguish.

And decided discretion was the better part of valor. Shifting the car

into reverse, Allison backed out of the garage, taking a look at her home -

and somehow knowing she would never return. A spattering of rain began to

fall, blurring the windshield.

"You can still go back and make things right," something inside of

Allison said. "Despite what he's said, you still love him." Allison sat in

the middle of the street, hesitating for only a moment. The only sounds

around her were those of the car's engine and the flip-flop of the wiper

blades before another sound crashed into the relative silence.

A loud sound...

Part VI, Chapter Six

"And we commend the soul of our departed brother, Roger Allan Harrison,

into your care. Ashes to ashes, dust to dust..." The minister's voice

droned until, finally, the service came to an end. Kendra watched, her

hazel eyes overflowing with tears, as one by one, family members laid

flowers across the top of the coffin.

Adam stood beside her, his face expressionless as he placed the red and

white-laced carnation on the wooden lid. Kendra knew the anguish her

husband was feeling on the inside. To Adam's far right stood Andrea, her

face showing the emotions Adam chose to conceal. Andrea supported her

mother, who seemed as emotionless as Adam as the rest of the family passed

by, paying their last respects and placing a single white carnation on the

casket.

Allison was barely aware of the people speaking to her, voicing their

condolences and sorrow over such a terrible event in her life. In the

deepest reaches of her mind, Allison struggled to determine why Roger had

chosen to end his life. Surely things hadn't been so bad to warrant such

an action.

She sighed, wishing Roger had lived long enough to answer the question.

As the rain continued to fall from gray, overcast skies, Allison's thoughts

flashed back to those last moments.

* * *

The gunshot echoed through the development as Allison threw the car back

into park, fumbling with the door handle. The damned thing refused to

cooperate as Allison's panic took hold. With mounting frustration, she

pounded the steering wheel before taking a moment to collect herself. That

done, she managed to escape from the vehicle's confines, running toward the

still-open garage. On the fringe of her vision, she could see her

neighbors approaching, roused by the disturbance.

Allison crashed through the entrance to the house, instinct guiding her

to Roger's last known location. She glanced into the dining room briefly

before heading toward the living room. She nearly fell over in her haste

to stop, the gruesome scene unfolding before her, a scream escaping her.

"NOOOOOOO! ROGGGERRRR!"

Roger sat at the foot of the bar, his chest covered in an endless river

of blood. Upon hearing Allison's voice, he looked up, his face graying

with the shock from the bullet wound or the loss of so much blood - Allison

didn't know which and, frankly, didn't give a damn.

"You... you came, um, back," Roger managed to say between gasps of

air.r He winced as another bolt of pain ripped through him. Despite

himself, Roger tried to sit up as Allison rushed to his side.

"Oh, baby! Why? Why did you do this?" Allison wailed. Behind her, she

could hear someone yelling about calling the police and an ambulance, even

though she could hear sirens in the distance.

Roger's breathing became raspy and he coughed, sending more waves of

pain through his shattered chest, blood foaming from his parted lips. His

eyes closed and Allison shook him.

"Oh, God, oh Jesus! WHY?" Allison knew her husband was quickly fading,

his skin cold and clammy. "Answer me, damn you! ANSWER ME!"

Instead, Roger looked at Allison, trying to focus eyes which refused to

cooperate with him. Another cough wracked him; years of manners caused him

to cover his mouth with one blood-covered hand. Returning his gaze upon

his wife, Roger smiled. "Hi," he said weakly.

Tears cascaded along Allison's face. "Hi. Baby, why did you do this?"

Her whole body shook with the effort to control the panic which has taken

roost in her heart and soul.

"For... you. Couldn't stand living without you."

"Me? Oh, dear God... Roger? ROGER!"

Roger's head snapped up, his eyes blinking. "Huh?"

"Baby, I would have been back after you calmed down - you didn't have to

do this!"

"Maybe. Allie?"

"What?"

"What's that over there?" Roger pointed over Allison's right shoulder.

Instinctively, she turned to look, realizing too late Roger had pulled the

oldest trick in the book on her. As her head snapped back around, she saw

the silver-plated .32 caliber pistol in Roger's hand.

"Be happy, Allison," Roger whispered, placing the little handgun to his

head and pulling the trigger, spraying Allison with a ghastly shower of

blood, bone and brains.

"ROOOOOOGGGGGGGERRRR!!!!" Allison screamed forever, not feeling the

hands of the police trying to pull her away. Nor did she hear the

questions of the paramedic, who was asking her if she was hurt. The last

thing Allison remembered was the other paramedic covering her Roger's

lifeless body with a blanket, shaking his head, as the inevitable darkness

grabbed Allison and pulled her into its embrace.

* * *

"Allison?"

Allison blinked away the haze of remembering, looking into Lorne

Williams' face. It took her a few seconds to compose herself. "Oh, I'm

sorry Lorne. My mind's a million miles away. Did you say something?"

Lorne gave Allison a nod of understanding. "I was asking if there's

anything else we can do for you."

Allison took Lorne's strong hand in hers. "I don't know right now.

Lord, so much has happened over the last few days, I just can't think

straight."

"I understand," Lorne said. "Listen, why don't you come back to the

house with us?" He didn't need to add the fact there was nothing at home

for her.

"I couldn't..." Allison protested weakly. "I've got to finish cleaning

up..." Tears welled into her eyes, spilling onto her cheek.

"Mom, come home with us," Andrea said. "We can get someone to clean up

for you. Please?"

"Yeah, Mom," Adam added. "There's no point in going back there."

Allison shook off the hands unnecessarily supporting her, taking a much

needed deep breath. "Okay, okay. I'll come with you. But only for a

little while."

"That's fine, Allison," Kymber said, taking the other woman's hand.

"Come on, let's get out of the rain." Kymber and Eti led Allison to the

waiting limo, with Andrea and Kendra right behind them.

The rain continued to fall as one of the cemetery's caretakers moved in

and flipped a lever. Lorne, Devon, and Adam watched quietly as Roger

Harrison's coffin was slowly lowered into the open grave, each man lost in

private thoughts. Finally, the coffin disappeared and the caretakers

removed the green tarpaulin from the mound of dirt as the lid to the vault

was lowered, sealing the casket for eternity.

"You okay, Adam?" asked Devon, shuddering as the lid clunked home.

"Yeah, I suppose," Adam answered hollowly. "Devon?"

"Yes, son?"

"Why do you think he did it?" Adam asked, turning to follow a departing

Lorne.

Devon dropped into step beside his son-in-law, wishing he could say

something which would ease the younger man's sorrow. "I don't know, Adam.

All I know is what your mother told us."

Adam nodded absently. "They were arguing about mom coming over to see

us. She said it was hard to believe he'd get so upset over it." Adam

looked up into the steady rain, the water stinging his face.

"Parents argue," Devon said. "That isn't what bothers me, though."

"I know," agreed Adam. "It's what my father had to say about you -

about us. mom said Dad wasn't very fond of the family."

"I can't imagine why," Devon allowed, shaking the excess water from him

before getting into the car. "We've never done or said anything to anger

him." Lorne signaled the driver, who put the limo in gear and rolled off.

"Well, now that I remember it, he wasn't really all that thrilled when I

told him I was going to marry Kenny."

"No, he wasn't, was he?" Lorne, like everyone else in the family, was

trying hard to learn why Roger Harrison killed himself.

"Yeah, but I didn't find anything wrong with that," said Devon. "Adam

said he was very overprotective."

"Mom said he was upset over the fact that you wouldn't let him pay for

the wedding - stuff like that."

"It wasn't like it was a lot of money," Lorne commented. "Besides, the

bride's family..."

"Is supposed to pay for the wedding," Adam finished. "I know that. So

do you." Adam looked out the window at the driving rain as it splattered

against the car.

"So did my father. The only thing I can figure he was envious of the

wealth you represented."

"Huh?" Devon said, not understanding at all. "What does money have to

do with it?"

Lorne, on the other hand, understood. "Dev, you have to remember

something. Roger Harrison worked all of his life providing for his

family."

"Yeah? So?"

Lorne shook his head. "Son, the man worked hard for everything. Double

shifts, weekends. Always on the road." Lorne paused for a moment,

gathering his thoughts.

"Imagine how he must have felt. His only son meets a girl and falls in

love with her. Finds out her parents and grandparents are not only famous,

but loaded to boot."

"My father always saw himself as king of his castle," Adam supplied.

"That's right," agreed Lorne. "Then we unwittingly come along, showing

him his castle looked like an outhouse compared to the splendor we live

in."

"Are you telling me it wasn't us he hated? It was what we represented?"

Devon couldn't believe it.

Lorne and Adam both nodded. "In his eyes, we were doing things for his

family he could never do. Doesn't mean his heart wasn't in the right

place, mind you; he wanted to do these things but, you can imagine how

tough it is when your heart and your finances don't agree."

It was Adam's turn to look a little mystified. "But, my father knew I

wasn't marrying Kenny for her money. Or whatever."

"Of course he knew it," Lorne said. "Didn't mean he agreed with it.

His mind was made up, Adam."

"Then, to make matters worse, you show up at his house, pregnant wife in

hand and still living on the grounds with us. For a self made man like

your father, it was unheard of."

Adam was beginning to see the big picture. "That would explain why he

was always harping about me getting my own place for me and Kenny instead

of staying where we were."

"Right. Now, to add more fuel to the fire. You and Kenny leave and

take his only daughter with you. Then he finds out later she's not coming

back and, for added measure, she's going to divorce her husband and stay

with us."

Adam jumped up, hitting his head on the roof of the car, causing the

driver to glance in his rear-view mirror.

"Ow! Damn it!" Adam said, rubbing the top of his head. As the moment

of pain passed, Adam continued his thought. "My father hated Dale. He

knew how badly he was treating Andrea, practically turning her into a

slave."

"That may be true. But, look at the differences here," Lorne said as

the limo made a left turn onto the drive leading to Devon's house. "Dale

was a lot like him."

"What are you saying?" Adam asked, his voice low. Lorne waved him off.

"You didn't let me finish, Adam. I was going to say that Dale, like

your father, worked hard for everything. House, cars, furnishings and the

like. Roger may have thought Dale was a snake in the grass, but at least

he was doing things on his own."

"Like I wasn't?"

"Ah!" exclaimed Devon. "You know you were and we knew it. Your father
just didn't want to listen."

The limo stopped in front of the house and the men climbed out, dashing

across the short distance to the door. Once inside, each shed their wet

overcoats; Devon led them to the dining room, offering to fix drinks. That

done, they returned to their conversation.

"Imagine, if you will," Lorne said after sipping his drink, "How much he

must have resented us. To him, we'd stolen his children."

"Then, it looked like we were stealing his wife when she announced

spending the weekend with us." Devon added.

"But, that wasn't the case." exclaimed Adam. "Mom was just coming over

to spend some time with us. Why couldn't he see that?"

"We'll never know, Adam." Lorne said.

Part VI, Chapter Seven

In Adam's living room, a couple of hundred yards away from the main

house, Kendra and Andrea were making Allison comfortable. Well, as

comfortable as she'd let them. During the silent ride from the cemetery,

Allison had come to the same conclusion the men had come to. The

revelation rocked her to the foundation of her soul.

"So stubborn," she muttered, causing the other women in the room to look

at her.

"Who?" asked Ellie as she passed Allison a cup of coffee, generously

laced with a dollop of brandy.

Allison took the proffered cup, smiling for the first time in a long

time. "Roger. The man just refused to see the truth of things. No wonder

it haunted him all this time."

The women of the Williams family, along with Andrea, looked at each

other, not understanding what Allison was talking about.

"Mom? Are you okay?" Andrea didn't even try to hide the concern in her

voice.

"Of course I am, darling." Allison sipped at her coffee, feeling the

brandy's warmth coursing through her. "But," she added, "I've got more

decisions to make."

"Like?" asked Ellie, sitting next to Allison.

"Like, do I want to go back to that house. It'll be so empty and lonely

with Roger gone." Allison stifled a sob which threatened to escape.

Kendra went to her mother-in-law, taking the older woman's hands in her.

"This might be the wrong time to suggest this, but..."

"But what, honey?"

Kenny looked around at the other women in the room before answering, her

eyes meeting and locking onto theirs for a moment. "You can always stay

with us."

"Kendra!" Etienne said reproachfully. "What are you saying, child?"

"Nothing, Grandmother. Except she's welcome to stay with us, that's

all. Why should she go back to her house? It's only going to bring back a

lot of bad memories."

"She's got a point there, Mom," said Ellie, taking her daughter's side.

"Kendra," Kymber said quietly. "Now's not the time for Allison to make

such a decision." Eti nodded vigorously in agreement.

Undaunted, Kendra locked her odd-colored eyes with Allison's, letting

love and warmth flow from her soul, hoping the other woman could feel it.

"No better time than the present. What about it, Mom? Will you stay?"

"I've already imposed upon you enough, dear heart. I've been here all

week and it's time for me to put things back in order."

"Yeah," Andrea scowled. "The house is a mess, everything broken to

pieces." She laughed. "Oh, and not to mention the chalk on the floor and

Dad's brains and blood everywhere. Yeah, I'd want to go back into that

shit."

"Andrea!" Kymber admonished, feeling a sudden urge to slap the younger

woman silly for being so disrespectful.

"No, Kymber. Let her finish," said Allison, carefully setting the

coffee cup on the table. "Let her get it out of her system."

Pent up grief flowed from every pore of Andrea's being. "What have you

got left? Huh? Me and Adam, that's what! You need to listen to Kenny and

take her advice, mom - stay with us. Put all this dumb shit behind you and

get on with your fucking life!"

"Andrea, your father loved me very much..."

"Did he? If he loved you so much, why did blow his fucking brains all

over the place? Why? This is bullshit!" Andrea was red-faced with

exertion, practically walking around in circles, waving her hands in the

air.

"Mom, I don't mean to sound disrespectful or diss everything you and

Daddy built together. But, damn, he started acting strange ever since Adam

brought Kendra home. He just couldn't let things flow, could he? No, he

had to go stirring up a bunch of shit. And for what? Not one mother
fucking thing."

"I know, Andy. Please baby, sit down before you pass out or something.

All this yelling isn't going to make you feel any better about this."

"I agree with your mother," Eti said, clearly disturbed over Andrea's

emotional outburst. "Sit down and take a few deep breaths."

Wearily, Andrea plopped down into a nearby chair, her eyes still

wild-looking but becoming clearer by the second. "I'm okay - I think.

Mom, I'm so sorry..." Andrea covered her face, weeping openly.

Allison went to her daughter, taking the sobbing woman into her arms.

"I know, baby. I really do know. There, there. It's going to be okay."

As she comforted Andrea, she turned to Kendra, capturing Ellie, Kymber and

Etienne in her gaze.

"I'll stay, if it's all the same to you. My children need me, now more

than ever."

"No problem, Allison," said Ellie, joining the older woman at Andrea's

side. She offered a hand, which Allison took. Turning, she looked towards

the rest of the women, offering her free hand.

One by one, they joined hands, all now sobbing openly, purging the grief

from their souls.

Part VI, Chapter Eight

Pressure, friction, motion, anxiety, calm. One moment, fullness, the

next, emptiness. Allison Harrison experienced all these sensations as the

hard penis invaded her body again, restoring the feeling of fullness. She

held her breath as her weight nearly doubled, pressed into the firm but

yielding mattress as the man above her increased his movement inside her.

Wet, slurping sounds mingled with their breathing adding their special

arousal factors to the heavy, heady scents generated during lovemaking.

Allison sighed with contentment as the thick, hard cock filled her

completely, feeling the engorged head collide with the entrance of her

womb. The man's mouth captured an erect nipple, sending another pleasurable

sensation through her to be added to those already present. The older
woman added her own movements to those of the man, thrusting her hips

upward to meet his, causing him to grunt in appreciation.

The man's strokes were getting longer and faster, the force of his body

meeting hers caused her full breasts to move in perfect counterpoint to his

thrusts. Allison lifted her legs higher, to give the man greater access to

her sweltering sex. "Oh, yeah," she thought. "He's gonna blow...!" Her

senses were becoming overloaded, her body literally rebounding from the

bedding, only to be met by the man's savage thrusts, their bodies slapping

together wetly.

More friction, the woman felt more heat as she felt a very familiar

tingling. A deep thrust by the man, causing the tingling to increase

twofold. Another long, deep, thrust - the feeling quadrupled and her eyes

closed tightly in anticipation of what was to happen next.

The man's strokes, once sure and steady, were becoming erratic as his

thick tool grew larger inside her. Her own sex was already contracting

sporadically, sending rippling waves of moist flesh against the smooth

hardness inside her. A white hot, intense explosion ripped through her,

causing her inner muscles to clamp down tightly on the invading meat.

Darkness also clamped down on her, her breathing barely noticeable. Then

she felt the first spurts of the man's seed, hot and sticky inside her.

Allison floated on the edge of consciousness as the man hammered his

spurting cock into her as if he could get further intoher body. The

frantic pounding sensation triggered another release somewhere deep inside

her, further pushing down the veil of darkness, causing her to shake as if

electrocuted.

Allison could hear a low keening - his? - as she clamped down on the

man's shaft with her overheated sex repeatedly. Another contraction, a

splash of juices to mix with his as, finally, the intensity began to

subside, leaving her with a drained, tingly feeling. The man's last spurts

of semen flowed into her as he collapsed against her, breathing heavily.

"A'int that 'bout a bitch?" Allison asked as Adam rolled to one side,

panting heavily. Allison looked at her son with a brand new appreciation,

feeling his seed trickling along the crack of her ass, warm and sticky.

Even though she felt strangely empty now, the feeling was overwritten by

the near overwhelming warmth left behind by their love.

It was the climax of the most unforgettable night in Allison's life.

Beside her, Devon continued to pound his way into Kendra, oblivious to

those around them.

"What's a bitch, Mom?" Adam asked, propping himself up on one elbow,

toying with Allison's nipple.

Allison squirmed deliciously under Adam's touch, delighting in the warm

feelings he produced. "Look at me, in here fucking like a young girl
again. And fucking my own son!"

"Mom, you were wonderful," Adam said truthfully.

"You think so?" Allison had been worried about not pleasing Adam.

"Shit, I know so! You might be, ah, older, but you haven't lost

anything!"

"Oh, you're just saying that to make an old woman feel good," Allison

said, feeling her face flush.

"Perhaps you need a second opinion," asked Devon, moving between

Allison's parted legs, his cock waving before him. Before Allison could

utter a protest, Devon slid into Allison's warmth easily, filling her

completely.

"Oh, my!" she exclaimed as Devon settled into a steady rhythm. Allison

reached down and pulled Devon further into her, feeling the younger man's

buttocks flex powerfully with each thrust.

Devon smiled at Adam. "You're right, son - this is some good pussy!"

Adam laughed, looking around the room for the others.

He found Andrea and Kymber locked in a vicious 69, each woman going at

the other like it was their last meal. Not far from them, Ellie was riding

Lorne's maleness, cursing like a sailor while Etienne rode Lorne's mouth

into orgasm after orgasm. Adam rolled off the bed, hurriedly rounding it

in order to get to his wife, who had suddenly found herself unfilled. Adam

fell into Kendra's welcoming embrace, his cock finding her center.

Kendra sighed as her husband filled her with his very familiar

thickness, their bodies meshing together as they had over the years. "Oh,

yeah, baby! Fill my cunt with honey! Fuck me, Adam!"

Adam replied by withdrawing a little, the crown of his erection nestled

just inside Kenny's quivery folds, before plunging into her, causing her to

grunt with the impact.

"Ugh! Shit, yeah! That's it, baby. Ride my ass! Tear it up, Adam!

Ooooh! You son-of-a-bitch! Yeah, yeah! Feels so damned good!"

Adam smiled - Kenny was off and running again. He looked up into

another pair of eyes that had been quietly watching the whole thing. His

smile grew wider.

"How are you doing, sweetheart?" Adam asked the watcher.

"Fine, Daddy. You're not hurting Mommy, are you?"

Adam and Kendra both looked at their nine-year old daughter, Samantha.

"No, baby," Kendra answered, feeling Adam deep inside her. "Daddy's not

hurting me. In fact, he's making me feel good."

Samantha looked around at the sexual carnage taking place around her,

her eyes wide. "Oh. Then Grandpa is making great-grandma feel good, too?"

She nodded at Devon and Allison.

"He sure is, Sam," Adam said, the first spurt of his seed surging into

his beloved Kendra.

The youngster pouted. "How come nobody's making me feel good?" She

looked at her father as he plopped out of Kendra's wet - and sloppy -

embrace. He gathered Sam into his arms.

"All in good time, baby," Kendra said. "Do you want me to make you feel

good?"

"Yeah," Samantha said, continuing to pout. "I like it when you make me

feel good down there. But..."

"But, what, Sam?"

"How come Daddy won't put his thing in me?" the youngster asked,

pointing at Adam's shrinking manhood. It was all Adam could do not to

laugh.

"Because you're not quite ready for Daddy yet."

"Am too!"

Kendra laughed, remembering the time she had the same argument with her

own mother over the very same thing. "You think so?"

Samantha looked at her mother with a challenging look. "Uh huh. If you

can do it, so can I."

"Well," Adam said. "Daddy's not quite ready to put, ah, my thing in you

right now."

"I know - it takes a little while for it to rest, right?"

"Right you are!" Adam said, watching Samantha beam at getting the right

answer.

While Adam was engrossed with his conversation with Samantha, Kendra

slid off the bed, going over to where the other participants sat, taking a

seat on the floor next to her mother.

Ellie turned and stroked Kendra's hair. "Does she remind you of

anyone?"

Kendra smiled at her mother, hearing the others with her chuckle.

"Yeah, well, you made me wait until I was 13 before I got a piece of

Daddy."

"Time's change, Kenny," Lorne said. To Eti and Kymber, he said, "Kids

grow up so fast, don't they?"

Allison also laughed, toying with Andrea's nipple. "You're telling me,"

she agreed. "One day they're so cute and precious, the next they're

screwing your brains out."

Andrea looked over at Devon, absently fingering the set of rings on her

finger. She and Devon had been married only a couple of years, but what a

couple of years it had been.

* * *

"Well? Will you?" Andrea waited patiently for her question to be

answered, coming down off the orgasmic high she'd just experienced.

"Will I what?" asked Ellie.

"Will you be upset if I ask Devon to marry me?"

Ellie was exasperated. "Andy, how many times do I have to tell you?

No, I won't be upset! There! Are you happy?"

"I just don't want you to be upset, that's all. I know how you feel

about him."

Ellie reach out, touching Andrea's breast, watching her nipple grow

erect and inviting. Bending her head, Ellie's tongue flashing out wetly,

teasing the now-firm nipple, causing Andrea to shiver.

"Oh, no! Not again - I can't take any more!" Andrea protested as Ellie

melted into her arms. Their lips met and Andrea could feel Ellie's tongue

roaming around in her mouth, feeling her passion returning. Her back

arched to meet Ellie's thrusts, their pubic mounds grinding together

deliciously. Andrea winced slightly as Ellie latched onto the tender flesh

of her neck, feeling the welt beginning to rise.

"Hmm, you taste so good," Ellie whispered, basking in the warmth their

bodies created. She let her tongue trail wetly over Andrea's throat,

savoring the taste.

"Oh, Ellie," moaned Andrea, feeling the other woman's fingers probing

her outer labia. "I can't do this again..."

"Of course you can - and I'll tell you why," Ellie cooed, finding

Andrea's clitoris and manipulating it into hardness with her fingers.

"Why?" Andrea gasped, her whole body melting under Ellie's expert touch.

"Because I love doing this to you, for one. Two, I'm horny. Three..."

she said, slipping a finger into Andrea's wetness. "It's the only way I'll

let you marry my brother." Another gasp escaped from Andrea as Ellie's

fingers worked their magic on her, sweeping her into Passion's wake.

"I love Devon, Andrea," Ellie said, rubbing her thumb across Andrea's

exposed clit. "I'd do anything to see him happy, even if it means marrying

you."

Andrea's squirming increased under Ellie's touch, the beginning of yet

another orgasm making its presence felt along her nerves. Andrea's back

continued to arch, lifting her ass off the bed. "Ooooh, please, don't

stop."

Ellie's tongue began a slick journey down Andrea's body, sucking each

nipple into tense erection before leaving a wake of wetness along Andrea's

ample cleavage. Ellie's tongue beat a rapid tattoo in and around Andrea's

navel, raising the heat, increasing their mutual desire.

"No..." Andrea pleaded.

"Too late, my dear Andy," Ellie husked, her breath hot against Andrea's

flesh. "I'm going to eat you alive! Call it an early wedding present..."

* * *

Andrea's body shivered involuntarily, remembering the dizzying heights

Ellie had taken her. She had spoken to Devon alone, putting a twist on the

ages-old tradition by proposing to him. Her heart had been in her throat

as her love pondered the question, finally agreeing to become her husband.

Andrea chuckled softly to herself, also remembering the intense sexual

activity that followed their announcement. Hell, she couldn't walk without

it hurting for a week. A gasp from across the room broke through Andrea's

reminiscing and she looked up to see her niece's head bobbing like a cork,

her young face stuffed with man meat.

The room grew quiet as Samantha sucked her father into hardness, her

small mouth barely accommodating the enormous bulb of his cock, two hands

grasping the hardening shaft, massaging it in time with the motion of her

tongue.

Adam was taking great care not to move while Samantha worked on him,

watching her head bobbing through half-closed eyes. Within minutes, his

cock was fully erect and he disengaged his daughter.

"No, I wasn't finished!" Sam protested, feeling her father lift and turn

her. Seconds later, she was being tickled in that wonderful place by her

father's moustache, momentarily forgetting her disappointment. Samantha

giggled happily as Adam's tongue wormed its way along her growing bud, the

tip lodging inside her snatch.

"That tickles!" Sam said between giggles, causing the other adults to

chuckle themselves.

"Are you okay, hon?" Kendra asked, running her fingers along Sam's

developing body.

"Oh, yes! I'm fine, thank you!"

Adam was losing himself in Samantha's young, fresh taste, feeling the

young girl wriggling her bottom onto his face as she experienced her

version of an intense orgasm. Continuing to giggle, Samantha turned to

face her father.

"I'm ready now," she announced to everyone, the giggles continuing to

flow from her. Around the room, the assembled adults found Samantha's

delight contagious as smiles spread on their collective faces.

"Okay, Sam," Adam said, starting to get up. Samantha place a small hand

on his chest.

"No, I wanna get on it, just like Grandma Eti did," Sam announced,

looking toward Etienne, who nodded approval.

"As you wish, Princess," Adam conceded, lying back and awaiting.

Samantha positioned her tiny orifice just above her father's cock, her

face a study in concentration. Beside her, Kendra spoke quietly.

"Remember honey, try to take it easy. This is going to hurt, but it'll go

away."

Sam nodded, squeezing her eyes shut just before plunging herself onto

her father's sword. Her eyes grew wide as the spongy head lodged itself

into her slit - and stopped!

"Awww," complained Samantha. "It won't go in!" Hearing her daughter's

plight, Kendra's eyes searched the room until she found what she was

looking for.

"Don't move, Sam; I'll be right back." Kenny jumped off the bed,

retrieved something off the dressing table, and returned to the bed. A few

seconds later, Adam could feel the cool slickness of a lubricant being

applied to his maleness, hearing Samantha's startled gasp as the same lube

was introduced to her.

"Now try it, Sam," Kendra said. "But, be careful honey - this stuff is

pretty slippery."

Sam acknowledged her mother's warning with a nod. Once again, her face

took on an almost adult-like seriousness as she positioned herself over her

father. "One, two, THREE!" Samantha plunged herself downward as hard as

she could.

Samantha's gasp was lost in the gasps of the adults as Adam's shaft

vanished inside of the youngster as far as her young body could take it.

"OH, MY!" Samantha cried out, feeling her hymen tear and Adam's cock

filling her. Sam's body trembled at the unexpected invasion, causing

everyone to move toward her, concern written on their faces. Frantically,

Sam waved her hand.

"No, don't! I'm okay! Mom?

"Yes, honey?" Kendra answered, concern lacing her voice.

"You were right - that stuff is slippery! And, you know what?"

"What, darling?" Kendra relaxed upon hearing Samantha's happiness.

"Daddy does feel good inside me, just like you said!"

"I'm glad, Sam." Turning to Adam, Kendra kissed him. "Congratulations,

darling! You've made Sam a woman. Now, finish the job, lover - fill her

with love!"

"My pleasure," Adam said. Holding Sam's slender hips in place, he began

fucking into Samantha slowly and carefully, allowing his little girl to

enjoy the loving at an easy pace.

The excitement of the moment, combined with his previous exertions and

Samantha's very tight canal, was too much for Adam as he exploded inside of

his daughter.

"Hey! I can feel it!" Sam said happily, leaning forward as far as she

could to hug her father. "I can feel your stuff in me!"

Allison watched the whole moment in awe. Turning to Lorne, she asked,

"Is this some kind of ceremony? Like a rite of passage?"

Lorne looked at Allison, smiling. "Sort of. What do you think?"

Allison's face softened. "Even after making love with my children for

the first time, I don't think I've ever seen anything more beautiful." She

tilted her head up, her lips meeting with Lorne's. "And, I have you to

thank."

"Me? What did I do?"

"You let Etienne have her way with you. Just think; had she not been so

bold back then, none of this would have taken place."

"I suppose you're right," Lorne said, watching Samantha gingerly remove

herself from Adam's spent cock before collapsing into his waiting arms.

"I love you, Daddy!" Samantha said, snuggled against her father's chest.

"I love you, too, Sam," Adam said, as the rest of the family crowded

onto the bed, surrounding the newest of the breed with their love.

Finis?